Location via proxy:   [ UP ]  
[Report a bug]   [Manage cookies]                

Kabbalah Unveiled

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 185

KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

S. L. MACGREGOR MATHERS, translator


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Table of Contents
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED..........................................................................1
S. L. MACGREGOR MATHERS, translator..........................................................................................1
Dedication................................................................................................................................................3
PREFACE................................................................................................................................................3
KABBALAH........................................................................................................................................................6
INTRODUCTION...................................................................................................................................7
SPRA DTzNIOVThA (SIPHRA DTZENIOUTHA); OR, THE BOOK OF CONCEALED MYSTERY........28
CHAPTER I...........................................................................................................................................28
CHAPTER II..........................................................................................................................................39
CHAPTER III........................................................................................................................................47
CHAPTER IV........................................................................................................................................52
CHAPTER V.........................................................................................................................................54
HADRA RBA QDIShA (HA IDRA RABBA QADISHA); OR, THE GREATER HOLY ASSEMBLY........60
CHAPTER I. THE INGRESS AND THE PREFACE.........................................................................60
CHAPTER II. OF THE CONDITION OF THE WORLD OF VACANCY........................................62
CHAPTER III. CONCERNING THE ANCIENT ONE, OR MACROPROSOPUS, AND CONCERNING 3 HIS
CHAPTER IV. CONCERNING THE DEW, OR MOISTURE OF THE BRAIN, OF THE ANCIENT 4 ONE, O
CHAPTER V. FURTHER CONCERNING THE SKULL OF MACROPROSOPUS........................64
CHAPTER VI. CONCERNING THE MEMBRANE OF THE BRAIN OF MACROPROSOPUS....65
CHAPTER VII. CONCERNING THE HAIR OF MACROPROSOPUS............................................65
CHAPTER VIII. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF MACROPROSOPUS...............................67
CHAPTER IX. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MACROPROSOPUS.............................................68
CHAPTER X. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MACROPROSOPUS..............................................71
CHAPTER XI. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS IN GENERAL.................73
CHAPTER XII. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS IN PARTICULAR; AND, 8 IN THE
CHAPTER XIII. CONCERNING THE SECOND PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS. 0
CHAPTER XIV. CONCERNING THE THIRD PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS.1
CHAPTER XV. CONCERNING THE FOURTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS. 3
CHAPTER XVI. CONCERNING THE FIFTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS.4
CHAPTER XVII. CONCERNING THE SIXTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS. 5
CHAPTER XVIII. CONCERNING THE SEVENTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS. 5
CHAPTER XIX.....................................................................................................................................86
CONCERNING THE EIGHTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS.........................87
CHAPTER XX. CONCERNING THE NINTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS.8
CHAPTER XXI. CONCERNING THE TENTH AND ELEVENTH PARTS OF THE BEARD OF MICROPR
CHAPTER XXII. CONCERNING THE TWELFTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS. 8
CHAPTER XXIII. CONCERNING THE THIRTEENTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS. 9
CHAPTER XXIV. CONCLUSION OF THE MATTER CONCERNING MACROPROSOPUS......91
THE SCHEMAHAMPHORASCH.......................................................................................................92
CHAPTER XXV. THE INGRESS OF MICROPROSOPUS...............................................................94
CHAPTER XXVI. CONCERNING THE EDOMITE KINGS............................................................95
CHAPTER XXVII. CONCERNING THE SKULL OP MICROPROSOPUS AND ITS APPURTENANCES; 6 N
CHAPTER XXVIII. CONCERNING THE BRAIN AND MEMBRANE OF THE BRAIN OF MICROPROSO 7
CHAPTER XXIX. CONCERNING THE HAIR OF MICROPROSOPUS.........................................98
CHAPTER XXX. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF MICROPROSOPUS...............................99
CHAPTER XXXI. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MICROPROSOPUS.......................................100
CHAPTER XXXII. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MICROPROSOPUS.....................................104

i
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Table of Contents
CHAPTER XXXIII. CONCERNING THE EARS OF MICROPROSOPUS....................................107
CHAPTER XXXIV. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS................................110
CHAPTER XXXV. CONCERNING THE FIRST PART OF THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS. 14
CHAPTER XXXVI. CONCERNING THE SECOND PART OF THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS. 17
CHAPTER XXXVII. CONCERNING THE THIRD PART OF THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS. 17
CHAPTER XXXVIII. CONCERNING THE SEVEN LAST PORTIONS OF THE BEARD OF MICROPROS 18
CHAPTER XXXIX. CONCERNING THE BODY OF MICROPROSOPUS IN GENERAL, UNDER 20 THE CO
CHAPTER XL. CONCERNING THE FEMININE PORTION OF MICROPROSOPUS; AND CONCERNING 22
CHAPTER XLI. CONCERNING THE SEPARATE MEMBERS OF EACH PERSONIFICATION, 25AND ESP
CHAPTER XLII. CONCERNING THE SEPARATION OF THE MASCULINE AND THE FEMININE, 27 AND
CHAPTER XLIII. CONCERNING THE JUDGMENTS..................................................................128
CHAPTER XLIV. FURTHER REMARKS CONCERNING THE SUPERNAL MAN...................129

CHAPTER XLV. .........................................................................................................................................134


CONCLUSION....................................................................................................................................134
HADRA ZVTA QDIShA (HA IDRA ZUTA QADISHA) OR THE LESSER HOLY ASSEMBLY............137
CHAPTER I. WHICH CONTAINETH THE INTRODUCTION......................................................137
CHAPTER II. CONCERNING THE SKULL OF THE ANCIENT ONE, AND CONCERNING HIS 40 BRAIN;
CHAPTER III. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT ONE.......142
CHAPTER IV. CONCERNING THE EYES OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT ONE..................143
CHAPTER V. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT ONE...................144
CHAPTER VI. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT ONE...............145
CHAPTER VII. CONCERNING THE BRAIN AND THE WISDOM IN GENERAL....................146
CHAPTER VIII. CONCERNING THE FATHER AND THE MOTHER IN SPECIAL..................149
CHAPTER IX. CONCERNING MICROPROSOPUS AND HIS BRIDE IN GENERAL................156
CHAPTER X. CONCERNING MICROPROSOPUS IN ESPECIAL, WITH CERTAIN DIGRESSIONS; 58 AND
CHAPTER XI. CONCERNING THE BRAIN OF MICROPROSOPUS AND ITS CONNECTIONS. 61
CHAPTER XII. CONCERNING THE HAIR OF MICROPROSOPUS...........................................163
CHAPTER XIII. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF MICROPROSOPUS...............................164
CHAPTER XIV. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MICROPROSOPUS..........................................165
CHAPTER XV. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MICROPROSOPUS...........................................168
CHAPTER XVI. CONCERNING THE EARS OF MICROPROSOPUS.........................................169
CHAPTER XVII. CONCERNING THE COUNTENANCE OF MICROPROSOPUS....................172
CHAPTER XVIII. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS...................................173
CHAPTER XIX. CONCERNING THE LIPS AND MOUTH OF MICROPROSOPUS..................175
CHAPTER XX. CONCERNING THE BODY OF MICROPROSOPUS..........................................177
CHAPTER XXI. CONCERNING THE BRIDE OF MICROPROSOPUS........................................177
CHAPTER XXII. CONCERNING THE REMAINING MEMBERS OF MICROPROSOPUS.......179

ii
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH
UNVEILED
S. L. MACGREGOR MATHERS, translator
This page copyright © 2002 Blackmask Online.

http://www.blackmask.com

• Dedication
• PREFACE
• KABBALAH.
• INTRODUCTION.
• SPRA DTzNIOVThA (SIPHRA DTZENIOUTHA); OR, THE BOOK OF CONCEALED MYSTERY.
• CHAPTER I.
• CHAPTER II.
• CHAPTER III.
• CHAPTER IV.
• CHAPTER V.
• HADRA RBA QDIShA (HA IDRA RABBA QADISHA); OR, THE GREATER HOLY ASSEMBLY.
• CHAPTER I. THE INGRESS AND THE PREFACE.
• CHAPTER II. OF THE CONDITION OF THE WORLD OF VACANCY.
• CHAPTER III. CONCERNING THE ANCIENT ONE, OR MACROPROSOPUS, AND
CONCERNING HIS PARTS, AND ESPECIALLY CONCERNING HIS SKULL.
• CHAPTER IV. CONCERNING THE DEW, OR MOISTURE OF THE BRAIN, OF THE ANCIENT
ONE, OR MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER V. FURTHER CONCERNING THE SKULL OF MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER VI. CONCERNING THE MEMBRANE OF THE BRAIN OF MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER VII. CONCERNING THE HAIR OF MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER VIII. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER IX. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER X. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XI. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS IN GENERAL.
• CHAPTER XII. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS IN PARTICULAR; AND,
IN THE FIRST PLACE, CONCERNING ITS FIRST PART.
• CHAPTER XIII. CONCERNING THE SECOND PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XIV. CONCERNING THE THIRD PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XV. CONCERNING THE FOURTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XVI. CONCERNING THE FIFTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XVII. CONCERNING THE SIXTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XVIII. CONCERNING THE SEVENTH PART OF THE BEARD OF
MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XIX
• CONCERNING THE EIGHTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XX. CONCERNING THE NINTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXI. CONCERNING THE TENTH AND ELEVENTH PARTS OF THE BEARD OF
MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXII. CONCERNING THE TWELFTH PART OF THE BEARD OF

KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED 1


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXIII. CONCERNING THE THIRTEENTH PART OF THE BEARD OF
MACROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXIV. CONCLUSION OF THE MATTER CONCERNING MACROPROSOPUS.
• THE SCHEMAHAMPHORASCH.
• CHAPTER XXV. THE INGRESS OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXVI. CONCERNING THE EDOMITE KINGS.
• CHAPTER XXVII. CONCERNING THE SKULL OP MICROPROSOPUS AND ITS
APPURTENANCES; NAMELY, CONCERNING THE SUBTLE AIR, AND THE FIRE, AND THE
DEW.
• CHAPTER XXVIII. CONCERNING THE BRAIN AND MEMBRANE OF THE BRAIN OF
MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXIX. CONCERNING THE HAIR OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXX. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXXI. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXXII. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXXIII. CONCERNING THE EARS OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXXIV. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXXV. CONCERNING THE FIRST PART OF THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXXVI. CONCERNING THE SECOND PART OF THE BEARD OF
MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXXVII. CONCERNING THE THIRD PART OF THE BEARD OF
MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXXVIII. CONCERNING THE SEVEN LAST PORTIONS OF THE BEARD OF
MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXXIX. CONCERNING THE BODY OF MICROPROSOPUS IN GENERAL, UNDER
THE CONDITION OF AN ANDROGYN.
• CHAPTER XL. CONCERNING THE FEMININE PORTION OF MICROPROSOPUS; AND
CONCERNING THE REMAINING PARTS OF THE BODY OF EACH.
• CHAPTER XLI. CONCERNING THE SEPARATE MEMBERS OF EACH PERSONIFICATION,
AND ESPECIALLY CONCERNING THE ARMS OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XLII. CONCERNING THE SEPARATION OF THE MASCULINE AND THE
FEMININE, AND CONCERNING THEIR CONJUNCTION.
• CHAPTER XLIII. CONCERNING THE JUDGMENTS.
• CHAPTER XLIV. FURTHER REMARKS CONCERNING THE SUPERNAL MAN.
CHAPTER XLV.
• CONCLUSION.
• HADRA ZVTA QDIShA (HA IDRA ZUTA QADISHA) OR THE LESSER HOLY ASSEMBLY.
• CHAPTER I. WHICH CONTAINETH THE INTRODUCTION.
• CHAPTER II. CONCERNING THE SKULL OF THE ANCIENT ONE, AND CONCERNING HIS
BRAIN; AND CONCERNING THE THREE HEADS, AND THE HAIR, AND THE
DISCRIMINATORY PATHS.
• CHAPTER III. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT ONE.
• CHAPTER IV. CONCERNING THE EYES OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT ONE.
• CHAPTER V. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT ONE.
• CHAPTER VI. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT ONE.
• CHAPTER VII. CONCERNING THE BRAIN AND THE WISDOM IN GENERAL.
• CHAPTER VIII. CONCERNING THE FATHER AND THE MOTHER IN SPECIAL.
• CHAPTER IX. CONCERNING MICROPROSOPUS AND HIS BRIDE IN GENERAL.
• CHAPTER X. CONCERNING MICROPROSOPUS IN ESPECIAL, WITH CERTAIN
DIGRESSIONS; AND CONCERNING THE EDOMITE KINGS.

KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED 2


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

• CHAPTER XI. CONCERNING THE BRAIN OF MICROPROSOPUS AND ITS CONNECTIONS.


• CHAPTER XII. CONCERNING THE HAIR OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XIII. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XIV. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XV. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XVI. CONCERNING THE EARS OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XVII. CONCERNING THE COUNTENANCE OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XVIII. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XIX. CONCERNING THE LIPS AND MOUTH OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XX. CONCERNING THE BODY OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXI. CONCERNING THE BRIDE OF MICROPROSOPUS.
• CHAPTER XXII. CONCERNING THE REMAINING MEMBERS OF MICROPROSOPUS.
Scanned at sacred−texts.com, August, 2002. J. B. Hare, Redactor.

Dedication
TO

THE AUTHORS OF 'THE PERFECT WAY'

ANNA KINGSFORD, M.D.

AND

EDWARD MAITLAND

THIS TRANSLATION IS

DEDICATED

PREFACE
TO THE NEW EDITION

By M. MACGREGOR MATHERS

As a pupil of my late husband and in later years collaborator in his more esoteric studies, I take this
opportunity to say a few words in regard to himself and his work. Moreover, since his death at the end of
1918, I have received innumerable visits, letters and enquiries from all parts of the world from students of his
writings. As most of these questions would appear to bear on his more esoteric knowledge, I will quote his
own words (see page 13, paragraph 22, of the Introduction): "The term 'Unwritten Qabalah' is applied to
certain knowledge which is never entrusted to writing, but communicated orally. I may say no more on this
point, nor even whether I myself have or have not received it."

Simultaneously with the publication of the Qabalah in 1887, he received instructions from his occult teachers
to prepare what was eventually to become his esoteric school. In this connection were associated with him the
late Dr. Woodman and the late Dr. Wynn−Westcott, both eminent Masons and Qabalists. They, with my
husband, held high Office in the Societas Rosicruciana in Anglia, and other Masonic bodies.

Since the year 1887, when the first edition of the Qabalah Unveiled appeared, the whole attitude of the
thinking world has changed considerably towards occult philosophy and science. The gigantic strides made

Dedication 3
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

by science since the end of the last century, the staggering facts disclosed by its practical demonstrations,
simultaneously with the development of the great occult movement, must strike all thoughtful people as the
evidence of some imminent change in the evolution of this planet. Material science would appear to be
spiritualizing itself and occult science to be materializing itself. If not clasping hands, they are certainly
making tentative attempts in that direction. The Ancient Wisdom, the Sacred Books, taught. that we cannot
understand Matter without understanding Spirit, that we cannot understand Spirit without understanding
Matter. That Matter and Spirit are only opposite poles of the same universal substance. All through the
Qabalah runs this axiom: "that Malkuth is in Kether, that Kether is in Malkuth." The same idea is repeated
through the Gnostic teaching: "the earth that is in the heaven, the heaven that is in the earth."

Religion has its word, science its promises and demonstrations, philosophy its systematized theories, art its
creations and ideals, and yet these in their fundamental separations fall short of that Synthetical ideal which
the Spirit of Humanity unceasingly demands. There remains always the perpetual cry of humanity, that plaint
of a world in pain demanding apparently in vain some solution to the problem of existence. The answer of the
ancient world to this cry of the Spirit of Humanity is to be found in the establishment of the Mysteries, as
containing in their penetralia that which even the highest then known forms of religion had not, namely, a
philosophico−religious reply resumed in Formulas and Ceremonies, to the problems of Life and Death, of
Nature, of the Gods, of Spiritual Beings, etc., and lastly of the linking of these as a whole back to the First
Cause of all things.

In 1888, after the publication of the Qabalah Unveiled, my husband started the working of his esoteric school.
To write the consecutive history of an occult Order is a difficult matter, as difficult as to write the life of an
Adept, there being so much of an inner and secret nature necessarily involved in both; so much of the
symbolical in the historical, so much of the latter in the symbology.

The general constitution of the teaching, the skeleton of the work, was handed to him by his occult teachers
together with a vast amount of oral instruction. The object of the establishment of this school was similar to
that of the foundation in ancient times of centres for the Celebration of the Mysteries. The literature of this
school, with a few exceptions, was written by my husband under the direction of these teachers, based upon
the ancient mysteries, chiefly those of Egypt, Chaldea and Greece, and brought up to date to suit the needs of
our modern mentalities. It is a system eminently suited to Western occultism, which a man can follow while
living the ordinary life of the world, given that this is understood in its highest sense. Dr. Woodman and Dr.
Wynn−Westcott aided in the administrative side of this school and its teaching to a certain extent.

As a pioneer movement, for the first ten or twelve years it encountered many of the difficulties that beset
work that is given ahead of its time, but we had been told that the beginning would be in the nature of an
experiment and that the students would be sifted. Dr. Woodman had died in the year 1890, and in 1897 Dr.
Wynn−Westcott resigned, after which my husband entirely reorganized the school under orders, and further
teachings were given him. The teaching is principally by Ceremony, Ritual, and Lecture. Purity of aspiration
and of life are the first and essential qualities demanded of the student. A simultaneous development of soul,
mind and body is insisted upon. The curriculum comprises the study of the intelligent forces behind Nature,
the Constitution of man and his relation to God. The whole aim and object of the teaching is to bring a man to
the knowledge of his higher self, to purify himself, to strengthen himself, to develop all qualities and powers
of the being, that he may ultimately regain union with the Divine Man latent in himself, that Adam Qadmon,
whom God hath made in His Own Image.

Great stress is laid on the ideal of Fraternity. The potency of Fraternity has ever been an essential factor in an
Occult order, apart from its altruistic aspect; there are. also the spiritual and psychic. Any breach in the
harmony of a circle will permit the entry of an opposing force. A Spiritualist of experience will bear witness
to the truth of this statement.

Dedication 4
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Through all the Sacred Books, be they our Bible, the Qabalah, the Egyptian Books, the Vedantic Teachings,
the Druidic traditions, etc., the Symbols of the Rose and of the Lily or Lotus and of the Cross, reveal
themselves as veritable living images of some great fundamental truth. I am prepared to affirm that any
Order, Society, group of students, etc., forming themselves with the aim of studying the composition and
nature of the manifested Universe, must inevitably fall under the symbolism of the Rose, of the Lily or Lotus,
and of the Cross. The Rose with its mysterious centre, its nucleus, the central Sun, is a symbol of the infinite
and harmonious separations of nature.

The symbol of the Lily or Lotus is very similar to that of the Rose, with some slight differentiations.

We know that the symbol of the Cross is practically the Key−note of the New Testament. It is the Quaternary
in Nature, the four letters of the Holy Name, I.H.V.H., the Tetragrammaton, Jehovah, which with the addition
of the letter of the Holy Spirit, Shin, becomes Yeheshuah, the Name of the Messiah. In Alchemy, whether
Spiritual or physical, we are told that the ultimate secret is to find the centre of the Cross. A true
understanding of the four−lettered Name, containing as it does the powers of the four elements of nature, Air,
Water, Fire, and Earth, from their lowest degree to their highest aspect, would imply a knowledge and power
of creation as well as that of death and destruction. Is it not for this reason that its pronunciation has been
forbidden by the Qabalist? The Ancient Wisdom implied that this Name might only be pronounced by the
Initiate who has attained the Supreme Initiation, that is to say "He who has learnt to be One with the FIRST
MOVER and be His Will."

Regarding the distinction between monotheism, polytheism and pantheism, this distinction hardly exists for
the Initiate. Verily there is little difference between a single God and a harmony of Supreme Forces, so
absolutely linked that the effect would be that of an indivisible unit, a plurality whose action is unified, an
unity whose action is pluralised.

Concerning Science and its "missing links," occult Science has asserted that there exists no void in the
Universe, and that the "missing links" are to be found in the invisible world. Modern Science and Philosophy
are continually demonstrating that our physical senses are limited and cognize but little in proportion to that
perceived by the more subtle methods. Sir Oliver Lodge says: "A physicist is never limited to direct sensory
impressions. He has to deal with a multitude of conceptions and things for which he has no physical organ:
the dynamical theory of heat, for instance, and of gases, the theory of electricity, of Magnetism, of chemical
affinity, of cohesion, aye, and his apprehension of the ether itself, lead him into regions where sight and
hearing and touch are impotent as direct witnesses . . . . . . . in such regions everything has to be interpreted in
terms of the insensible, the apparently unsubstantial, and in a definite sense, the imaginary." Again he says: "I
am reasonably convinced of the existence of grades of beings not only lower in the scale than man, but higher
also, grades of every order of magnitude, from zero to infinity, and I know from experience that among these
Beings are some who care for and help and guide humanity . . . . . and further it is my faithhowever humbly
it may be heldthat among these lofty beings, highest of those who concern themselves directly with this
earth, of all the myriads of worlds in infinite space, is ONE on Whom the right instinct of Christianity has
always lavished heartfelt reverence and devotion." Here is an almost parallel idea taken from Egyptian
Symbolism: "Concerning the harmonious linking together of the divine and the natural; as in the vision of
the ladder of Jacob whereon the Angels of God ascended and descended. As also in the very ancient ideals of
Egypt, Chaldea, China, India, etc., there was the conception of an unbroken chain proceeding from the
highest Godhead, through Gods; angels; spirits, genii; souls, whether in our life or another; spiritual beings;
and ultimating through the sacred animals upon the very Ground of Earth Itself, and also even through the
trees, plants and minerals. What, then, can be such a chain that links all things unto their divine Origin?
Surely it cannot be other than the Descending Divine Influence MEZLA; the Influence of the HOLY and
DIVINE SPIRIT."

Take this Divine Spirit in its Triune Manifestation, call it Light, Life, and Love, call it Father, Son, and Holy

Dedication 5
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Spirit, or Father, Mother, Son; take Radium as being so very close in nature to the one element of the
Ancients and note its triune manifestation, through the alpha, beta and gamma rays.

Regarding seers and mediums, as before remarked, our school lays great stress on the simultaneous
development of, crudely speaking, the three planes of being. which development must precede psychic
experiment. The methods employed to equilibrate the nature entail considerable study, time and patience.
There is no royal road to any science, let alone the science of the occult. Before touching such experiments as
obtain in spiritualism, the student would be supposed to be in a measure aware of the nature of the entities he
would be likely to encounter, and especially to have some idea of the constitution of Man. When this is
achieved he will be equipped and enabled to face the many dangers and difficulties he will encounter in the
invisible world.

Take the astral plane in its varied divisions, where some of the adventures described by the seer take place.
This plane may be described as a hall panelled with mirrors, where one is confronted with bewildering
reflexes. Manifesting therein are numerous and varying entities.

Spiritualism is distinctly a Western movement and has certainly been the means of bringing conviction of the
after life to many. The methods employed by spiritualists may be very dangerous, in that they frequently lack
the preliminary preparation and knowledge necessary before approaching psychic phenomena. The
spiritualist who lacks this specialized knowledge must be prepared to encounter all the dangers with which
explorers in unknown lands are beset. He who enters into these regions has sometimes found it easier to open
the door than to close it.

A few words which may be of interest on my husband's life. As a very young boy he was intensely interested
in mysticism and symbolism generally. He was educated at Bedford Grammar School, −specializing on the
Classical side. During his spare moments he collected and made a special study of Celtic tradition and
symbolism. This love of Celtic Symbology was inherited from his Highland ancestry. His ancestor, Ian
MacGregor of Glenstrae, an ardent Jacobite, after the /45 Rebellion went over to France and under Lally
Tolendal fought at Pondicherry. This ancestor was created Comte de Glenstrae by Louis XV. This French
title was inherited by my husband and he always used it when living in France. As a young man he came into
contact with Kenneth Mackenzie, with whom he had a strong occult link. Kenneth Mackenzie, author of the
Encyclopædia of Masonry, had been a great friend of Bulwer Lytton. After some years of seclusion in the
country, where my husband led a student's life in preparation for his future work, he met Anna Kingsford,
who introduced him to Madame Blavatsky. Madame Blavatsky invited him to collaborate with her in the
formation of her Society. After deliberation, notwithstanding his profound admiration for that remarkable
woman, this invitation he was compelled to decline. Their ideals were not entirely the same. At that time he
was more in sympathy with Anna Kingsford's ideals of esoteric Christianity and of the advancement of
woman. Moreover he was profoundly interested in her campaign against vivisection, in which he vigorously
aided her. Three or four years later he was told by his Occult teachers to transfer his centre to Paris, where my
husband and I lived for the rest of his life. I wish here to record my thanks to my occult masters, and the
deepest gratitude to the memory of my husband, comrade and teacher, all of whom have shed such light upon
my path.

M. MACGREGOR MATHERS.

KABBALAH.

KABBALAH. 6
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

INTRODUCTION.
I. THE first questions which the non−qabalistical reader will probably ask are: What is the Qabalah? Who
was its author? What are its sub−divisions? What are its general teachings? And why is a translation of it
required at the present time?

2. I will answer the last question first. At the present time a powerful wave of occult thought is spreading
through society; thinking men are beginning to awake to the fact that "there are more things in heaven and
earth than are dreamed of in their philosophy;" and, last but not least, it is now felt that the Bible, which has
been probably more misconstrued than any other book ever written, contains numberless obscure and
mysterious passages which are utterly unintelligible without some key wherewith to unlock their meaning.
THAT KEY IS GIVEN IN THE QABALAH. Therefore this work should be of interest to every biblical and
theological student. Let every Christian ask himself this question: "How can I think to understand the Old
Testament if I be ignorant of the construction put upon it by that nation whose sacred book it formed; and if I
know not the meaning of the Old Testament, how can I expect to understand the New?" Were the real and
sublime philosophy of the Bible better known, there would be fewer fanatics and sectarians. And who can
calculate the vastness of the harm done to impressionable and excitable persons by the bigoted enthusiasts
who ever and anon come forward as teachers of the people? How many suicides are the result of religious
mania and depression! What farragos of sacrilegious nonsense have not been promulgated as the true
meanings of the books of the Prophets and the Apocalypse! Given a translation of the sacred Hebrew Book,
in many instances incorrect, as the foundation, an inflamed and an ill−balanced mind as the worker thereon,
what sort of edifice can be expected as the result? I say fearlessly to the fanatics and bigots of the present day:
You have cast down the Sublime and Infinite One from His throne, and in His stead have placed the demon
of unbalanced force; you have substituted a deity of disorder and of jealousy for a God of order and of love;
you have perverted the teachings of the crucified One. Therefore at this present time an English translation of
the Qabalah is almost a necessity, for the Zohar has never before been translated into the language of this
country, nor, as far as I am aware, into any modern European vernacular.

3. The Qabalah may be defined as being the esoteric Jewish doctrine. It is called in Hebrew QBLH, Qabalah,
which is derived from the root QBL, Qibel, meaning "to receive." This appellation refers to the custom of
handing down the esoteric knowledge by oral transmission, and is nearly allied to "tradition."

4. As in the present work a great number of Hebrew or Chaldee words have to be used in the text, and the
number of scholars in the Shemitic languages is limited, I have thought it more advisable to print such words
in ordinary Roman characters, carefully retaining the exact orthography. I therefore append a table showing at
a glance the ordinary Hebrew and Chaldee alphabet (which is common to both languages), the Roman
characters by

which I have expressed its letters in this work; also their names, powers, and numerical values. There are
no separate numeral characters in Hebrew and Chaldee; therefore, as is also the case in Greek, each letter has
its own peculiar numerical value, and from this circumstance results the important fact that every word is a
number, and every number is a word. This is alluded to in Revelations, where "the number of the beast" is
mentioned, and on this correspondence between words and numbers the science of Gematria (the first
division of the so−called literal Qabalah) is based. I shall refer to this subject again. I have selected the
Roman letter Q to represent the Hebrew Qoph or Koph, a precedent for the use of which without a following
m may be found in Max Müller's "Sacred Books of the East." The reader must remember that the Hebrew is
almost entirely a consonantal alphabet, the vowels being for the most part supplied by small points and marks
usually placed below the letters. Another difficulty of the Hebrew alphabet consists in the great similarity
between the forms of certain letterse.g., V, Z, and final N.

5. With regard to the author and origin of the Qabalah, I cannot do better than give the following extract from

INTRODUCTION. 7
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Dr. Ginsburg's "Essay on the Kabbalah," first premising that this word has been spelt in a great variety of
waysCabala, Kabalah, Kabbala, &c. I have adopted the form Qabalah, as being more consonant with the
Hebrew writing of the word.

6. "A system of religious philosophy, or, more properly, of theosophy, which has not only exercised for
hundreds of years an extraordinary influence on the mental development of so shrewd a people as the Jews,
but has captivated the minds of some of the greatest thinkers of Christendom in the sixteenth and seventeenth
centuries, claims the greatest attention of both the philosopher and the theologian. When it is added that
among its captives were Raymond Lully, the celebrated scholastic metaphysician and chemist (died 1315);
John Reuchlin, the renowned scholar. and reviver of Oriental literature in Europe (born 1455, died 1522);
John Picus de Mirandola, the famous philosopher and classical scholar (1463−1494); Cornelius Henry
Agrippa, the distinguished philosopher, divine, and physician (1486−1535); John Baptist Von Helmont, a
remarkable chemist and physician (1577−1644); as well as our own countrymen, Robert Fludd, the famous
physician and philosopher (1574−1637); and Dr. Henry More (1614−1687); and that these men, after
restlessly searching for a scientific system which should disclose to them 'the deepest depths' of the divine
mature, and show them the real tie which binds all things together, found the cravings of their minds satisfied
by this theosophy, the claims of the Kabbalah on the attention of students in literature and philosophy will
readily be admitted. The claims of the Kabbalah, however, are not restricted to the literary man and the
philosopher; the poet too will find in it ample materials for the exercise of his lofty genius. How can it be
otherwise with a theosophy which, we are assured, was born of God in Paradise, was nursed and reared by
the choicest of the angelic hosts in heaven, and only held converse with the holiest of man's children upon
earth. Listen to the story of. its birth, growth, and maturity, as told by its followers.

7. "The Kabbalah was first taught by God himself to a select company of angels, who formed a theosophic
school in Paradise. After the Fall the angels most graciously communicated this heavenly doctrine to the
disobedient child of earth, to furnish the protoplasts with the means of returning to their pristine nobility and
felicity. From Adam it passed over to Noah, and then to Abraham, the friend of God, who emigrated with it
to Egypt, where the patriarch allowed a portion of this mysterious doctrine to ooze out. It was in this way that
the Egyptians obtained some knowledge of it, and the other Eastern nations could introduce it into their
philosophical systems. Moses, who was learned in all the wisdom of Egypt, was first initiated into the
Qabalah in the land of his birth, but became most proficient in it during his wanderings in the wilderness,
when he not only devoted to it the leisure hours of the whole forty years, but received lessons in it from one
of the angels. By the aid of this mysterious science the law−giver was enabled to solve the difficulties which
arose during his management of the Israelites, in spite of the pilgrimages, wars, and frequent miseries of the
nation. He covertly laid down the principles of this secret doctrine in the first four books of the Pentateuch,
but withheld them from Deuteronomy. Moses also initiated the seventy elders into the secrets of this doctrine,
and they again transmitted them from hand to hand. Of all who formed the unbroken line of tradition, David
and Solomon were the most deeply initiated into the Kabbalah. No one, however, dared to write it down, till
Schimeon Ben Jochai, who lived at the time of the destruction of the second temple . . . . . After his death, his
son, Rabbi Eleazar, and his secretary, Rabbi Abba, as well as his disciples, collated Rabbi Simon Ben Jochai's
treatises, and out of these composed the celebrated work called ZHR, Zohar, splendour, which is the grand
storehouse of Kabbalism."

8. The Qabalah is usually classed under four heads:

(±The practical Qabalah.

(²The literal Qabalah.

(³The unwritten Qabalah.

INTRODUCTION. 8
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

(´The dogmatic Qabalah.

9. The practical Qabalah deals with talismanic and ceremonial magic, and does not come within the scope of
this work.

10. The literal Qabalah is referred to in several places, and therefore a knowledge of its leading principles is
necessary. It is divided into three parts: GMTRIA, Gematria; NVTRIQVN, Notariqon; and ThMVRH,
Temura.

11. Gematria is a metathesis of the Greek word 553±It is based on the relative numerical values of words, as I
have before remarked. Words of similar numerical values are considered to be explanatory of each other, and
this theory is also extended to phrases. Thus the letter Shin, Sh, is 300, and is equivalent to the number
obtained by adding up the numerical values of the letters of the words RVCh ALHIM, Ruach Elohim, the
spirit of the Elohim; and it is therefore a symbol of the spirit of the Elohim. For R = 200, V = 6, Ch = 8, A =
z, L = 30, H = 5, I = 10, M = 40; total = 300. Similarly, the words AChD, Achad, Unity, One, and AHBH,
Ahebah, love, each = 13; for A = 1, Ch = 8, D = 4, total = 13; and A = 1, H = 5, B = 2, H = 5, total = 13.
Again, the name of the angel MTTRVN, Metatron or Methraton , and the name of the Deity, ShDI, Shaddaï,
each make 314; so the one is taken as symbolical of the other. The angel Metraton is said to have been the
conductor of the children of Israel through the wilderness, of whom God says, "My Name is in him." With
regard to Gematria of phrases (Gen. xlix. 10), IBA ShILH, Yeba Shiloa, "Shiloh shall come" = 358, which is
the numeration of the word MShICh, Messiah. Thus also the passage, Gen. xviii. 2 VHNH ShLShH, Vehenna
Shalisha, "And lo, three men," equals in numerical value ALV MIKAL GBRIAL VRPAL, Elo Mihkael
Gabriel Ve−Raphael, "These are Mikhael, Gabriel and Raphael;" for each phrase = 70l. I think these
instances will suffice to make clear the nature of Gematria, especially as many others will be found in the
course of the ensuing work.

12. Notariqon is derived from the Latin word nothrius, a shorthand writer. Of Notariqon there are two forms.
In the first every letter of a word is taken for the initial or abbreviation of another word, so that from the
letters of a word a sentence may be formed. Thus every letter of the word BRAShITh, Berashith, the first
word in Genesis, is made the initial of a word, and we obtain BRAShITh RAH ALHIM ShIQBLV IShRAL
ThVRH, Besrashith Rahi Eloim Sheyequebelo Israel Torah: "In the beginning the Elohim saw that Israel
would accept the law." In this connection I may give six very interesting specimens of Notariqon formed
from this same word BRAShITh by Solomon Meir Ben Moses, a Jewish Qabalist, who embraced the
Christian faith in 1665, and took the name of Prosper Rugers. These have all a Christian tendency, and by
their means Prosper converted another Jew, who had previously been bitterly opposed to Christianity. The
first is BN RVCh AB ShLVShThM IChD ThMIM, Ben, Ruach, Ab, Shaloshethem Yechad Themim : "The
Son, the Spirit, the Father, Their Trinity, Perfect Unity." The second is, BN RVCh AB ShLVShThM IChD
ThOBVDV, Ben, Ruach, Ab, Shaloshethem Yechad Thaubodo: "The Son, the Spirit, the Father, ye shall
equally worship Their Trinity." The third is, BKVRI RAShVNI AShR ShMV IShVO ThOBVDV, Bekori
Rashuni Asher Shamo Yeshuah Thaubodo: "Ye shall worship My first−born, My first, Whose Name is Jesus."
The fourth is, BBVA RBN AShR ShMV IShVO ThOBVDV, Beboa Rabban Asher Shamo Yesuah
Thaubado: "When the Master shall come Whose Name is Jesus ye shall worship." The fifth is, BThVLH
RAVIH ABChR ShThLD IShVO ThAShRVH, Bethulah Raviah Abachar Shethaled Yeshuah Thrashroah: "I
will choose a virgin worthy to bring forth Jesus, and ye shall call her blessed." The sixth is, BOVGTh
RTzPIM ASThThR ShGVPI IShVO ThAKLV, Beaugoth Ratzephim Assattar Shegopi Yeshuah Thakelo: "I
will hide myself in cake (baked with) coals, for ye shall eat Jesus, My Body." The Qabalistical importance of
these sentences as bearing upon the doctrines of Christianity can hardly be overrated.

13. The second form of Notariqon is the exact reverse of the first. By this the initials or finals, or both, or the
medials, of a sentence, are taken to form a word or words. Thus the Qabalah is called ChKMh NSThRH,
Chokhmah Nesethrah, "the secret wisdom;" and if we take the initials of these two words Ch and N, we form

INTRODUCTION. 9
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

by the second kind of Notariqon the word ChN, Chen, "grace." Similarly, from the initials and finals of the
words MI IOLH LNV HShMIMH, Mi Iaulah Leno Ha−Shamayima, "Who shall go up for us to heaven?"
(Deut. xxx. 12), are formed MILH, Milah, "circumcision," and IHVH, the Tetragrammaton, implying that
God hath ordained circumcision as the way to heaven.

14. Temura is permutation. According to certain rules, one letter is substituted for another letter preceding or
following it in the alphabet, and thus from one word another word of totally different orthography may be
formed. Thus the alphabet is bent exactly in half, in the middle, and one half is put over the other; and then by
changing alternately the first letter or the first two letters at the beginning of the second line, twenty−two
commutations are produced. These are called the "Table of the Combinations of TzIRVP," Tzirupa. For
example's sake, I will give the method called ALBTh, Albath, thus:

11 10 9 8 7 6 5 4 3 2 1

K I T Ch Z V H D G B A

M N S O P Tz Q R Sh Th L

Each method takes its name from the first two pairs composing it, the system of pairs of letters being the
groundwork of the whole, as either letter in a pair is substituted for the other letter. Thus, by Albath, from
RVCh, Ruach, is formed DTzO, Detzau. The names of the other twenty−one methods are: ABGTh, AGDTh
ADBG, AHBD, AVBH, AZBV, AChBZ, ATBCh, AIBT, AKBI, ALBK, AMBL, ANBM, ASBN, AOBS,
APBO, ATzBP, AQBTz, ARBQ, AShBR, and AThBSh. To these must be added the modes ABGD and
ALBM. Then comes the "Rational Table of Tziruph," another set of twenty−two combinations. There are also
three "Tables of the Commutations," known respectively as the Right, the Averse, and the Irregular. To make
any of these, a square, containing 484 squares, should be made, and the letters written in. For the "Right
Table" write the alphabet across from right to left; in the second row of squares do the same, but begin with R
and end with A; in the third begin with G and end with B; and so on. For the "Averse Table" write the
alphabet from right to left backwards, beginning with Th and ending with A; in the second row begin with Sh
and end with Th, &c. The "Irregular Table" would take too long to describe. Besides all these, there is the
method called ThShRQ, Thashraq, which is simply writing a word backwards. There is one more very
important form, called the "Qabalah of the Nine Chambers," or AIQ BKR, Aiq Bekar. It is thus formed:

300 30 3 200 20 2 100 10 1

000 00 0 000 00 0 000 00 0

INTRODUCTION. 10
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Sh L G R K B Q I A

600 60 6 500 50 5 400 40 4

000 00 0 000 00 0 000 00 0

M final S V K final N H Th M D

900 90 9 800 80 8 700 70 7

000 00 0 000 00 0 000 00 0

T final Tz T P final P Ch N final O Z

I have put the numeration of each letter above to, show the affinity between the letters in each chamber.
Sometimes this is used as a cipher, by taking the portions of the figure to show the letters they contain,
putting one point for the first letter, two for the second, &c. Thus the right angle, containing AIQ, will answer
for the letter Q if it have three dots or points within it. Again, a square will answer for H, N, or K final,
according to whether it has one, two, or three points respectively placed within it. So also with regard to the
other letters. But there are many other ways of employing the Qabalah of the Nine Chambers, which I have
not space to describe. I will merely mention, as an example, that by the mode of Temura called AThBSh,
Athbash, it is found that in Jeremiah xxv. 26, the word ShShK, Sheshakh, symbolizes BBL, Babel.

15. Besides all these rules, there are certain meanings hidden in the shape of the letters of the Hebrew
alphabet; in the form of a particular letter at the end of a word being different from that which it generally
bears when it is a final letter, or in a letter being written in the middle of a word in a character generally used
only at the end; in any letter or letters being written in a size smaller or larger than the rest of the manuscript,
or in a letter being written upside down; in the variations found in the spelling of certain words, which have a
letter more in some places than they have in others; in peculiarities observed in the position of any of the
points or accents, and in certain expressions supposed to be elliptic or redundant.

16. For example the shape of the Hebrew letter Aleph, A (see Plate I.), is said to symbolize a Vau, V, between
a Yod, I, and a Daleth, D; and thus the letter itself represents the word IVD, Yod. Similarly the shape of the
letter He, H, represents a Daleth, D, with a Yod, I, written at the lower left−hand corner, &c.

INTRODUCTION. 11
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

17. In Isaiah ix. 6, 7, the word LMRBH, Lemarbah, for multiplying, is written with the character for M final
in the middle of the word, instead of with the ordinary initial and Medial M. The consequence of this is that
the total numerical value of the word, instead of being 30 +40+ 200+ 2+5 = 277, is 30 + 600 + 200 + 2 + 5 =
837 = by Gematria ThTh ZL, Tat Zal, the profuse Giver. Thus, by writing the M final instead of the ordinary
character, the word is made to bear a different qabalistical meaning.

18. In Deuteronomy vi. 4, &c., is the prayer known as the "Shema Yisrael." It begins, "ShMO IShRAL IHVH
ALHINV IHVH AChD, Shemaa Yisrael, Tetragrammaton Elohino Tetragrammaton Achad: "Hear, O Israel,
Tetragrammaton your God is Tetragrammaton Unity." In this verse the terminal letter O in ShMO, and the D
in AChD are written much larger than the other letters of the text. The qabalistical symbology contained in
this circumstance is thus explained: The letter O, being of the value of 70, shows that the law may be
explained in seventy different ways, and the D = 4 = the four cardinal points and the letters of the Holy
Name. The first word, ShMO, has the numerical value of 410, the number of years of the duration of the first
temple, &c. &c. There are many other points worthy of consideration in this prayer, but time will not permit
me to dwell on them.

19. Other examples of deficient and redundant spelling, peculiarities of accent and pointing, &c., will be
found in various places in the ensuing work.

20. It is to be further noted with regard to the first word in the Bible, BRAShITh, Berashith, that the first
three letters, BRA, are the initial letters of the names of the three persons of the Trinity: BN, Ben, the Son;
RVCh, Ruach, the Spirit; and AB, Ab, the Father. Furthermore, the first letter of the Bible is B, which is the
initial letter of BRKH, Berakhah, blessing; and not A, which is that of ARR, Arar, cursing. Again, the letters
of Berashith, taking their numerical powers, express the number of years between the Creation and the birth
of Christ, thus: B = 2,000, R = 200, A = 1000, Sh = 300, I = 10, and Th = 400; total = 3910 years, being
the time in round numbers. Picus de Mirandola gives the following working out of BRAShITh,
Berashith:By joining the third letter, A, to the first, B, A B, Ab = Father, is obtained. If to the first letter B,
doubled, the second letter, R, be added, it makes BBR, Bebar = in or through the Son. If all the letters be read
except the first, it makes RAShITh, Rashith = the beginning. If with the fourth letter, Sh, the first B and the
last Th be connected, it makes ShBTh, Shebeth = the end or rest. If the first three letters be taken, they make
BRA, Bera = created. If, omitting the first, the three following be taken, they make RASh, Rash = head. If,
omitting the two first, the next two be taken, they give ASh, Ash = fire. If the fourth and last be joined, they
give ShTh, Sheth = foundation. Again, if the second letter be put before the first, it makes RB, Rab = great. If
after the third be placed the fifth and fourth, it gives AISh, Aish = man. If to the two first be joined the two
last, they give BRITh, Berith = covenant. And if the first be added to the last, it gives ThB, Theb, which is
sometimes used for TVB, Thob = good.

21. Taking the whole of these mystical anagrams in proper order, Picus makes the following sentence out of
this one word BRAShITh: Pater in filio (aut per filium), principium et finem (sive quietum) creavit caput,
ignem, et fundamentum magni hominis fœdere bono: "Through the Son hath the Father created that Head
which is the beginning and the end, the fire−life and the foundation of the supernal man (the Adam Qadmon)
by His righteous covenant." Which is a short epitome of the teachings of the "Book of Concealed Mystery."
This notice of the literal Qabalah has already extended beyond its proper limits. It was, however, necessary to
be thus explicit, as much of the metaphysical reasoning of the ensuing work turns on its application.

22. The term "Unwritten Qabalah" is applied to certain knowledge which is never entrusted to writing, but
communicated orally. I may say no more on this point, not even whether I myself have or have not received
it. Of course, till the time of Rabbi Schimeon Ben Jochai none of the Qabalah was ever written.

23. The Dogmatic Qabalah contains the doctrinal portion. There are a large number of treatises of various
dates and merits which go to make up the written Qabalah, but they may be reduced to four heads:

INTRODUCTION. 12
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

(±The Sepher Yetzirah and its dependencies.

(²The Zohar with its developments and commentaries.

(³The Sepher Sephiroth and its expansions.

(´The Asch Metzareph and its symbolism.

24. The SPR ITzIRH, Sepher Yetzirah, or "Book of Formation," is ascribed to the patriarch Abraham. It treats
of the cosmogony as symbolized by the ten numbers and the twenty−two. letters of the alphabet, which it
calls the "thirty−two paths." On these latter Rabbi Abraham Ben Dior has written a mystical commentary.
The term "path" is used throughout the Qabalah to signify a hieroglyphical idea, or rather the sphere of ideas,
which may be attached to any glyph or symbol.

25. The ZHR, Zohar, or "Splendour," besides many other treatises of less note, contains the following most
important books, of which the three first are translated in this volume:

(±The SPRA DTzNIOVThA, Siphra Dtzenioutha, or "Book of Concealed Mystery," which is


the root and foundation of the Zohar.

(²The ADRA RBA QDIShA, Idra Rabba Qadisha or "Greater Holy Assembly:" this is a
development of the "Book of Concealed Mystery."

(³The ADRA ZVTA QDIShA, Idra Zuta Qadisha, or "Lesser Holy Assembly;" which is in
the nature of a supplement to the "Idra Rabba." These three books treat of the gradual
development of the creative Deity, and with Him the

Creation. The text of these works has been annotated by Knorr von Rosenroth (the author of
the "Qabalah Denudata,") from the Mantuan, Cremonensian, and Lublinensian Codices,
which are corrected printed copies; of these the Mantuan and Cremonensian are the oldest. A
species of commentary is also given, which is distinguished from the actual text by being
written within parentheses.

(´The pneumatical treatise called BITh ALHIM, Beth Elohim, or the "House of the Elohim,"
edited by Rabbi Abraham Cohen Irira, from the doctrines of Rabbi Yitzchaq Loria. It treats
of angels, demons, elemental spirits, and souls.

(µThe "Book of the Revolutions of Souls" is a peculiar and discursive treatise, and is an
expansion of Rabbi Loria's ideas.

26. The SPR SPIRVTh, Sepher Sephiroth, or "Book of the Emanations," describes, so to speak, the gradual
evolution of the Deity from negative into positive existence.

27. The ASh MTzRP, Asch Metzareph, or "Purifying Fire," is hermatic and alchemical, and is known to few,
and when known is understood by still fewer.

28. The principal doctrines of the Qabalah are designed to solve the following problems:

(±The Supreme Being, His nature and attributes.

(²The Cosmogony.

INTRODUCTION. 13
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

(³The creation of angels and man.

(´The destiny of man and angels.

(µThe nature of the soul.

(¶The nature of angels, demons, and elementals.

(·The import of the revealed law.

(¸The transcendental symbolism of numerals.

(¹The peculiar mysteries contained in the Hebrew letters.

(ºThe equilibrium of contraries.

29. The "Book of Concealed Mystery" opens with these words: "The Book of Concealed Mystery is the book
of the equilibrium of balance." What is here meant by the terms "equilibrium of balance"? Equilibrium is that
harmony which results from the analogy of contraries, it is the dead centre where, the opposition of opposing
forces being equal in strength, rest succeeds motion. It is the central point. It is the "point within the circle" of
ancient symbolism. It is the living synthesis of counterbalanced power. Thus form may be described as the
equilibrium of light and shade; take away either factor, and form is viewless. The term balance is applied to
the two opposite natures in each triad of the Sephiroth, their equilibrium forming the third Sephira in each
ternary. I shall recur again to this subject in explaining the Sephiroth. This doctrine of equilibrium and
balance is a fundamental qabalistical idea.

30. The "Book of Concealed Mystery" goes on to, state that this "Equilibrium hangeth in that region which is
negatively existent." What is negative existence? What is positive existence? The distinction between these
two is another fundamental idea. To define negative existence clearly is impossible, for when it is distinctly
defined it ceases to be negative existence; it is then negative existence passing into static condition. Therefore
wisely have the Qabalists shut out from mortal comprehension the primal AIN, Ain, the negatively existent
One, and the AIN SVP, Ain Soph, the limitless Expansion; while of even the AIN SVP AVR, Ain Soph Aur ,
the illimitable Light, only a dim conception can be formed. Yet, if we think deeply, we shall see that such
must be the primal forms of the unknowable and nameless One, whom we, in the more manifest form speak
of as GOD. He is the Absolute. But how define the Absolute? Even as we define it, it slips from our grasp,
for it ceases when defined to be the Absolute. Shall we then say that the Negative, the limitless, the Absolute
are, logically speaking, absurd, since they are ideas which our reason cannot define? No; for could we define
them, we should make them, so to speak, contained by our reason, and therefore not superior to it; for a
subject to be capable of definition it is requisite that certain limits should be assignable to it. How then can
we limit the Illimitable?

31. The first principle and axiom of the Qabalah is the name of the Deity, translated in our version of the
Bible, "I am that I am," AHIH AShR AHIH, Eheieh Asher Eheieh. A better translation is, "Existence is
existence," or "I am He who is."

32. Eliphaz Levi Zahed, that great philosopher and Qabalist of the present century, says in his "Histoire de la
Magie" (bk. i. ch. 7): "The Qabalists have a horror of everything that resembles idolatry; they, however,
ascribe the human form to God, but it is a purely hieroglyphical figure. They consider God as the intelligent,
living, and loving Infinite One. He is for them neither the collection of other beings, nor the abstraction of
existence, nor a philosophically definable being. He is in all, distinct from all, and greater than all. His very
name is ineffable; and yet this name only expresses the human ideal of His Divinity. What God is in Himself

INTRODUCTION. 14
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

it is not given to man to know. God is the absolute of faith; existence is the absolute of reason, existence
exists by itself, and because it exists. The reason of the existence of existence is existence itself. We may ask,
'Why does any particular thing exist?' that is, 'Why does such or such a thing exist?' But we cannot ask,
without its being absurd to do so, Why does existence exist?' For this would be to suppose existence prior to
existence." Again, the same author says (ibid. bk. iii. ch. 2): "To say, 'I will believe when the truth of the
dogma shall be scientifically proved to me,' is the same as to say, 'I will believe when I have nothing more to
believe, and when the dogma shall be destroyed as dogma by becoming a scientific theorem.' That is to say,
in other words: 'I will only admit the Infinite when it shall have been explained, determined, circumscribed,
and defined for my benefit; in one word, when it has become finite. I will then believe in the Infinite when I
am sure that the Infinite does not exist. I will believe in the vastness of the ocean when I shall have seen it put
into bottles.' But when a thing has been clearly proved and made comprehensible to you, you will no longer
believe ityou will know it."

33. In the "Bhagavadgîtâ," ch. ix., it is said: "I am Immortality and also death; and I, O Arguna! am that
which is and that which is not." And again (ch. ix.): "And, O descendant of Bharata! see wonders in
numbers, unseen before. Within my body, O Gudâkesa! see to−day the whole universe, including everything
movable and immovable, all in one." And again (ibid.) Arguna said: "O Infinite Lord of the Gods! O Thou
who pervadest the universe! Thou art the Indestructible, that which is, that which is not, and what is beyond
them. Thou art the Primal God, the Ancient One; Thou are the highest support of this universe. By Thee is
this universe pervaded, O Thou of the infinite forms . . . . Thou art of infinite power, of unmeasured glory;
Thou pervadest all, and therefore Thou art all!"

34. The idea of negative existence can then exist as an idea, but it will not bear definition, since the idea of
definition is utterly incompatible with its nature. "But," some of my readers will perhaps say, "your term
negative existence is surely a misnomer; the state you describe would be better expressed by the title of
negative subsistence." Not so, I answer; for negative subsistence can never be anything but negative
subsistence; it cannot vary, it cannot develop; for negative subsistence is literally and truly no thing.
Therefore, negative subsistence cannot be at all; it never has existed, it never does exist, it never will exist.
But negative existence bears hidden in itself, positive life; for in the limitless depths of the abyss of its
negativity lies hidden the power of standing forth from itself, the power of projecting the scintilla of the
thought unto the utter, the power of re−involving the syntagma into the inner. Thus shrouded and veiled is the
absorbed intensity in the centreless whirl of the vastness of expansion. Therefore have I employed the term
"Ex−sto," rather than "Sub−sto."

35. But between two ideas so different as those of negative and positive existence a certain nexus, or
connecting−link, is required, and hence we arrive at the form which is called potential existence, which while
more nearly approaching positive existence, will still scarcely admit of clear definition. It is existence in its
possible form. For example, in a seed, the tree which may spring from it is hidden; it is in a condition of
potential existence; is there; but it will not admit of definition. How much less, then, will those seeds which
that tree in its turn may yield. But these latter are in a condition which, while it is somewhat analogous to
potential existence, is in hardly so advanced a stage; that is, they are negatively existent.

36. But, on the other hand, positive existence is always capable of definition; it is dynamic; it has certain
evident powers, and it is therefore the antithesis of negative existence, and still more so of negative
subsistence. It is the tree, no longer hidden in the seed, but developed into the outer. But positive existence
has a beginning and an end, and it therefore requires another form from which to depend, for without this
other concealed negative ideal behind it, it is unstable and unsatisfactory.

37. Thus, then, have I faintly and with all reverence endeavoured to shadow forth to the minds of my readers
the idea of the Illimitable One. And before that idea, and of that idea, I can only say, in the words of an
ancient oracle: "In Him is an illimitable abyss of glory, and from it there goeth forth one little spark which

INTRODUCTION. 15
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

maketh all the glory of the sun, and of the moon, and of the stars. Mortal! behold how little I know of God;
seek not to know more of Him, for this is far beyond thy comprehension, however wise thou art; as for us,
who are His ministers, how small a part are we of Him! "

38. There are three qabalistical veils of the negative existence, and in themselves they formulate the hidden
ideas of the Sephiroth not yet called into being, and they are concentrated in Kether, which in this sense is the
Malkuth of the hidden ideas of the Sephiroth. I will explain this. The first veil of the negative existence is the
AIN, Ain = Negativity. This word consists of three letters, which thus shadow forth the first three Sephiroth
or numbers. The second veil is the AIN SVP, Ain Soph = the Limitless, This title consists of six letters, and
shadows forth the idea of the first six Sephiroth or numbers. The third veil is the AIN SVP AVR, Ain Soph
Aur = the Limitless Light. This again consists of nine letters, and symbolizes the first nine Sephiroth, but of
course in their hidden idea only. But when we reach the number nine we cannot progress farther without
returning to the unity, or the Dumber one, fur the number ten is but a repetition of unity freshly derived from
the negative, as is evident from a glance at its ordinary representation in Arabic numerals, where the circle 0
represents the Negative, and the 1 the Unity. Thus, then, the limitless ocean of negative light does not
proceed from a centre, for it is centreless, but it concentrates a centre, which is the number one of the
manifested Sephiroth, Kether, the Crown, the First Sephira; which therefore may be said to be the Malkuth or
number ten of the hidden Sephiroth. (See Plate II.). Thus, "Kether is in Malkuth, and Malkuth is in Kether."
Or, as an alchemical author of great repute (Thomas Vaughan, better known as Eugenius Philalethes) says,

apparently quoting from Proclus: "That the heaven is in the earth, but after an earthly manner; and that the
earth is in the heaven, but after a heavenly manner." But inasmuch as negative existence is a subject
incapable of definition, as I have before shown, it is rather considered by the Qabalists as depending back
from the number of unity than as a separate consideration therefrom; wherefore they frequently apply the
same terms and epithets indiscriminately to either. Such epithets are "The Concealed of the Concealed," "The
Ancient of the Ancient Ones," the "Most Holy Ancient One," &c.

39, I must now explain the real meaning of the terms Sephira and Sephiroth. The first is singular, the second
is plural. The best rendering of the word is "numerical emanation." There are ten Sephiroth, which are the
most abstract forms of the ten numbers of the decimal scalei.e., the numbers 1, 2, 3, 4, 5, 6, 7, 8, 9, 10.
Therefore, as in the higher mathematics we reason of numbers in their abstract sense, so in the Qabalah we
reason of the Deity by the abstract forms of the numbers; in other words, by the SPIRVTh, Sephiroth. It was
from this ancient Oriental theory that Pythagoras derived his numerical symbolic ideas.

40. Among these Sephiroth, jointly and severally, we find the development of the persons and attributes of
God. Of these some are male and some female. Now, for some reason or other best known to themselves, the
translators of the Bible have carefully crowded out of existence and smothered up every reference to the fact
that the Deity is both masculine and feminine. They have translated a feminine plural by a masculine
singular in the case of the word Elohim. They have, however, left an inadvertent admission of their
knowledge that it was plural in Gen. iv. 26; "And Elohim said: Let Us make man." Again (V. 27), how could
Adam be made in the image of the Elohim, male and female, unless the Elohim were male and female also?
The word Elohim is a plural formed from the feminine singular ALH, Eloh, by adding IM to the word. But
inasmuch as IM is usually the termination of the masculine plural, and is here added to a feminine noun, it
gives to the word Elohim the sense of a female potency united to a masculine idea, and thereby capable of
producing an offspring. Now, we hear much of the Father and the Son, but we hear nothing of the Mother in
the ordinary religions of the day. But in the Qabalah we find that the Ancient of Days conforms Himself
simultaneously into the Father and the Mother, and thus begets the Son. Now, this Mother is Elohim. Again,
we are usually told that the Holy Spirit is masculine. But the word RVCh, Ruach, Spirit, is feminine, as
appears from the following passage of the Sepher Yetzirah: "AChTh RVCh ALHIM ChIIM,

INTRODUCTION. 16
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Achath (feminine, not Achad, masculine) Ruach Elohim Chiim : "One is She the Spirit of the Elohim of Life."

41. Now, we find that before the Deity conformed Himself thus i.e., as male and femalethat the worlds of
the universe could not subsist, or, in the words of Genesis, "The earth was formless and void." These prior
worlds are considered to be symbolized by the "kings who reigned in Edom before there reigned a king in
Israel," and they are therefore spoken of in the Qabalah as the "Edomite kings." This will be found fully
explained in various parts of this work.

42. We now come to the consideration of the first Sephira, or the Number One, the Monad of Pythagoras. In
this number are the other nine hidden. It is indivisible, it is also incapable of multiplication; divide 1 by itself
and it still remains 1, multiply 1 by itself and it is still 1 and unchanged. Thus it is a fitting representative of
the great unchangeable Father of all. Now this number of unity has a twofold nature, and thus forms, as it
were, the link between the negative and the positive. In its unchangeable one−ness it is scarcely a number;
but in its property of capability of addition it may be called the first number of a numerical series. Now, the
zero, 0, is incapable even of addition, just as also is negative existence. How, then, if 1 can neither be
multiplied nor divided, is another 1 to be obtained to add to it; in other words, how is the number 2 to be
found? By reflection of itself. For though 0 be incapable of definition, 1 is definable. And the effect of a
definition is to form an Eidolon, duplicate, or image, of the thing defined. Thus, then, we obtain a duad
composed of 1 and its reflection. Now also we have the commencement of a vibration established, for the
number 1 vibrates alternately from changelessness to definition, and back to changelessness again. Thus,
then, is it the father of all numbers, and a fitting type of the Father of all things.

The name of the first Sephira is KThR, Kether, the Crown.

The Divine Name attributed to it is the Name of the Father given in Exod. iii. 4: AHIH, Eheieh, I am. It
signifies Existence.

Among the Epithets applied to it, as containing in itself the idea of negative existence depending back from it,
are:

TMIRA DTMIRIN, Temira De−Temirin, the Concealed of the Concealed.

OThIQA DOThIQIN, Authiqa De−Authiqin, the Ancient of the Ancient Ones.

OThIQA QDIShA, Authiqa Qadisha, the Most Holy Ancient One.

OThIQA, Authiqa, the Ancient One.

OThIQ IVMIN, Authiq Iomin, the Ancient of Days.

It is also called:

NQDH RAShVNH, Nequdah Rashunah, the Primordial Point.

NQDH PShVTh, Nequdah Peshutah, the Smooth Point.

RIShA HVVRH, Risha Havurah, the White Head.

RVM MOLH, Rom Meolah, the Inscrutable Height. Besides all these there is another very important name
applied to this Sephira as representing the great Father of all things. It is ARIK ANPIN, Arikh Anpin, the Vast
Countenance, or Macroprosopus. Of Him it is said that He is partly concealed (in the sense of His connection

INTRODUCTION. 17
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

with the negative existence) and partly manifest (as a positive Sephira). Hence the symbolism of the Vast
Countenance is that of a profile wherein one side only of the countenance is seen; or, as it is said in the
Qabalah, "in Him all is right side." I shall refer to this title again.

The whole ten Sephiroth represent the Heavenly Man, or Primordial Being, ADM OILAH, Adam Auilah.

Under this Sephira are classed the angelic order of ChIVTh HQDSh, Chioth Ha−Qadesh, holy
living−creatures, the kerubim or sphinxes of Ezekiel's vision and of the Apocalypse of John. These are
represented in the Zodiac by the four signs, Taurus, Leo, Scorpio, and Aquariusthe Bull, Lion, Eagle, and
Man: Scorpio, as a good emblem, being symbolized by the eagle, as an evil emblem by the scorpion, and as
of a mixed nature by the snake.

This first Sephira contained the other nine, and produced them in succession, thus:

43. The number 2, or the Duad. The name of the second Sephira is ChKMH, Chokmah, Wisdom, a masculine
active potency reflected from Kether, as I have before explained. This Sephira is the active and evident
Father, to whom the Mother is united, who is the number 3. This second Sephira is represented by the Divine
Names, IH, Yah, and IHVH; and among the angelic hosts by AVPNIM, Auphanim, the Wheels (Ezek. i.). It is
also called AB, Ab, the Father.

44. The third Sephira, or Triad, is a feminine passive potency, called BINH, Binah, the Understanding, who is
co−equal with Chokmah. For Chokmah, the number 2, is like two straight lines which can never enclose a
space, and therefore it is powerless till the number 3 forms the triangle. Thus this Sephira completes and
makes evident the supernal Trinity. It is also called AMA, Ama, Mother, and AIMA, Aima, the great
productive Mother, who is eternally conjoined with AB, the Father, for the maintenance of the universe in
order. Therefore is she the most evident form in whom we can know the Father, and therefore is she worthy
of all honour. She is the supernal Mother, co−equal with Chokmah, and the great feminine form of God, the
Elohim, in whose image man and woman are created, according to the teaching of the Qabalah, equal before
God. Woman is equal with man, and certainly not inferior to him, as it has been the persistent endeavour of
so−called Christians to make her. Aima is the woman described in the Apocalypse (ch. xii.). This third
Sephira is also sometimes called the great sea. To her are attributed the Divine names, ALHIM, Elohim, and
IHVH ALHIM; and the angelic order, ARALIM, Aralim, the Thrones. She is the supernal Mother, as
distinguished from Malkuth, the inferior Mother, Bride, and Queen.

45. The number 4. This union of the second and third Sephiroth produced ChSD, Chesed, Mercy or Love also
called GDVLH, Gedulah, Greatness or Magnificence; a masculine potency represented by the Divine Name
AL, El, the Mighty One, and the angelic name, ChShMLIM, Chashmalim, Scintillating Flames (Ezek. iv, 4).

46. The number 5. From this emanated the feminine passive potency GBVRH, Geburah, strength or
fortitude; or DIN, Deen, justice; represented by the Divine Names, ALHIM GBVR, and ALH, Eloh , and the
angelic name ShRPIM, Seraphim (Isa. vi. 6). This Sephira is also called PChD, Pachad, Fear.

47. The number 6. And from these two issued the uniting Sephira, ThPARTh, Tiphereth, Beauty or Mildness,
represented by the Divine Name ALVH VDOTh, Eloah

Va−Daath

, and the angelic names, Shinanim, ShNANIM (Ps. lxviii. 18), or MLKIM, Melakim, kings. Thus by the union
of justice and mercy we obtain beauty or clemency, and the second trinity of the Sephiroth is complete. This
Sephira, or "Path," or "Numeration"for by these latter appellations the emanations are sometimes
calledtogether with the fourth, fifth, seventh, eighth, and ninth Sephiroth, is spoken of as ZOIR ANPIN,

INTRODUCTION. 18
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Zauir Anpin, the Lesser Countenance, or Microprosopus, by way of antithesis to Macroprosopus, or the Vast
Countenance, which is one of the names of Kether, the first Sephira. The sixth Sephiroth of which Zauir
Anpin is composed, are then called His six members. He is also called MLK, Melekh, the King.

48. The number 7. The seventh Sephira is NTzCh, Netzach, or Firmness and Victory, corresponding to the
Divine Name Jehovah Tzabaoth, IHVH TzBAVTh, the Lord of Armies, and the angelic names ALHIM,
Elohim, gods, and ThRShIShIM, Tharshisim, the brilliant ones (Dan. x. 6).

49. The number 8. Thence proceeded the feminine passive potency HVD, Hod, Splendour, answering to the
Divine Name ALHIM TzBAVTh, Elohim Tzabaoth, the Gods of Armies, and among the angels to BNI
ALHIM, Beni Elohim, the sons of the Gods (Gen. vi. 4).

50. The number 9. These two produced ISVD, Yesod, the Foundation or Basis, represented by AL ChI, El
Chai, the Mighty Living One, and ShDI, Shaddaï; and among the angels by AShIM, Aishim, the Flames (Ps.
civ. 4), yielding the third Trinity of the Sephiroth.

51. The number 10. From this ninth Sephira came the tenth and last, thus completing the decad of the
numbers. It is called MLKVTh, Malkuth, the Kingdom, and also the Queen, Matrona, the inferior Mother, the
Bride of Microprosopus; and ShKINH, Shekinah, represented by the Divine Name Adonai, ADNI, and
among the angelic hosts by the kerubim, KRVBIM. Now, each of these Sephiroth will be in a certain degree
androgynous, for it will be feminine or receptive with regard to the Sephira which immediately precedes it in
the sephirotic scale, and masculine or transmissive with regard to the Sephira which immediately follows it.
But there is no Sephira anterior to Kether, nor is there a Sephira which succeeds Malkuth. By these remarks it
will be understood how Chokmah is a feminine noun, though marking a masculine Sephira. The
connecting−link of the Sephiroth is the Ruach, spirit, from Mezla, the hidden influence.

52. I will now add a few more remarks on the qabalistical meaning of the term MThQLA, Metheqela,
balance. In each of the three trinities or triads of the Sephiroth is a duad of opposite sexes, and a uniting
intelligence which is the result. In this, the masculine and feminine potencies are regarded as the two scales
of the balance, and the uniting Sephira as the beam which joins them. Thus, then, the term balance may be
said to symbolize the Triune, Trinity in Unity, and the Unity represented by the central point of the beam.
But, again, in the Sephiroth there is a triple Trinity, the upper, lower, and middle. Now, these three are
represented thus: the supernal, or highest, by the Crown, Kether; the middle by the King, and the inferior by
the Queen; which will be the greatest trinity. And the earthly correlatives of these will be the primum mobile,
the sun and the moon. Here we at once find alchemical symbolism.

53. Now in the world the Sephiroth are represented by:

(1) RAShITh HGLGLIM, Rashith Ha−Galgalim, the commencement of whirling motions, the primum mobile

(2) MSLVTh, Masloth, the sphere of the Zodiac.

(3) ShBThAI, Shabbathai, rest, Saturn.

(4) TzDQ, Tzedeq, righteousness, Jupiter.

(5) MADIM, Madim, vehement strength, Mars.

(6) ShMSh, Shemesh, the solar light, the Sun.

(7) NVGH, Nogah, glittering splendour, Venus. (8) KVKB, Kokab, the stellar light, Mercury.

INTRODUCTION. 19
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

(9) LBNH, Levanah, the lunar flame, the Moon.

(10) ChLM ISVDVTh, Cholom Yesodoth, the breaker of the foundations, the elements.

54. The Sephiroth are further divided into three pillarsthe right−hand Pillar of Mercy, consisting of the
second, fourth, and seventh emanations; the left−hand Pillar of judgment, consisting of the third, fifth, and
eighth; and the middle Pillar of Mildness, consisting of the first, sixth, ninth, and tenth emanations.

55. In their totality and unity the ten Sephiroth represent the archetypal man, ADM QDMVN, Adam Qadmon,
the Protogonos. In looking at the Sephiroth constituting the first triad, it is evident that they represent the
intellect; and hence this triad is called the intellectual world, OVLM MVShKL, Olahm Mevshekal. The
second triad corresponds to the moral world, OVLM MVRGSh, Olahm Morgash. The third represents power
and stability, and is therefore called the material world, OVLM HMVTBO, Olahm Ha−Mevetbau. These
three aspects are called the faces, ANPIN, Anpin. Thus is the tree of life, OTz ChIIM, Otz Chaiim, formed;
the first triad being placed above, the second and third below, in such a manner that the three masculine
Sephiroth are on the right, three feminine on the left, whilst the four uniting Sephiroth occupy the centre. This
is the qabalistical "tree of life," on which all things depend. There is considerable analogy between this and
the tree Yggdrasil of the Scandinavians.

56. I have already remarked that there is one trinity which comprises all the Sephiroth, and that it consists of
the crown, the king, and the queen. (In some senses this is the Christian Trinity of Father, Son, and Holy
Spirit, which in their highest divine nature are symbolized by the first three Sephiroth, Kether, Chokmah, and
Binah.) It is the Trinity which created the world, or, in qabalistic language, the universe was born from the

union of the crowned king and queen. But according to the Qabalah, before the complete form of the
heavenly man (the ten Sephiroth) was produced, there were certain primordial worlds created, but these could
not subsist, as the equilibrium of balance was not yet perfect, and they were convulsed by the unbalanced
force and destroyed. These primordial worlds are called the "kings of ancient time," and the "kings of Edom
who reigned before the monarchs of Israel." In this sense, Edom is the world of unbalanced force, and Israel
is the balanced Sephiroth (Gen. xxxvi. 31). This important fact, that worlds were created and destroyed prior
to the present creation, is again and again reiterated in the Zohar.

57. Now the Sephiroth are also called the World of Emanations, or the Atziluthic World, or archetypal world,
OVLM ATzILVTh, Olahm Atziloth; and this world gave birth to three other worlds, each containing a
repetition of the Sephiroth, but in a descending scale of brightness.

58. The second world is the Briatic world, OVLM HBRIAH, Olahm Ha−Briah, the world of creation, also
called KVRSIA, Khorsia , the throne. It is an immediate emanation from the world of Atziloth, whose ten
Sephiroth are reflected herein, and are consequently more limited, though they are still of the purest nature,
and without any admixture of matter.

59. The third is the Jetziratic world, OVLM HITzIRH, Olahm Ha−Yetzirah, or world of formation and of
angels, which proceeds from Briah, and though less refined in substance, is still without matter. It is in this
angelic world where those intelligent and incorporeal beings reside who are wrapped in a luminous garment,
and who assume a form when they appear unto man.

60. The fourth is the Asiatic world, OVLM HOShIH, Olahm Ha−Asia , the world of action, called also the
world of shells, OVLM HQLIPVTh, Olahm Ha−Qliphoth, which is this world of matter, made up of the
grosser elements of the other three. In it is also the abode of the evil spirits which are called "the shells" by

INTRODUCTION. 20
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

the Qabalah, QLIPVTh, Qliphoth, material shells. The devils are also divided into ten classes, and have
suitable habitations. (See Table.)

61. The Demons are the grossest and most deficient of all forms. Their ten degrees answer to the decad of the
Sephiroth, but in inverse ratio, as darkness and impurity increase with the descent of each degree. The two
first are nothing but absence of visible form and organization. The third is the abode of darkness. Next follow
seven Hells occupied by those demons which represent incarnate human vices, and torture those who have
given themselves up to such vices in earth−life. Their prince is Samael, SMAL, the angel of poison and of
death. His wife is the harlot, or woman of whoredom, AShTh ZNVNIM, Isheth Zenunim; and united they are
called the beast, CHIVA, Chioa. Thus the infernal trinity is completed, which is, so to speak, the averse and
caricature of the supernal Creative One. Samael is considered to be identical with Satan.

62. The name of the Deity, which we call Jehovah, is in Hebrew a name of four letters, IHVH; and the true
pronunciation of it is known to very few. I myself know some score of different mystical pronunciations of it.
The true pronunciation is a most secret arcanum, and is a secret of secrets. "He who can rightly pronounce it,
causeth heaven and earth to tremble, for it is the name which rusheth through the universe." Therefore when a
devout Jew comes upon it in reading the Scripture, he either does not attempt to pronounce it, but instead
makes a short pause, or else he substitutes for it the name Adonai, ADNI, Lord. The radical meaning of the
word is "to be," and it is thus, like AHIH, Eheieh, a glyph of existence. It is capable of twelve transpositions,

which all convey the meaning of "to be"; it is the only word that will bear so many transpositions without
its meaning being altered. They are called the "twelve banners of the mighty name," and are said by some to
rule the twelve signs of the Zodiac. These are the twelve banners:IHVH, IHHV, IVHH, HVHI, HVIH,
HHIV, VHHI, VIHH, VHIH, HIHV, HIVH, HHVI. There are three other tetragrammatic names, which are
AHIH, Eheieh, existence; ADNI, Adonai, Lord; and Agla , AGLA. This last is not, properly speaking, a
word, but is a notariqon of the sentence, AThH GBVR LOVLM ADNI, Ateh Gebor Le−Olahm Adonai :
"Thou are mighty for ever, O Lord!" A brief explanation of Agla is this: A, the one first; A, the one last; G,
the Trinity in Unity; L, the completion of the great work.

63. The first thing we notice is that both AHIH and IHVH convey the idea of existence; this is their first
analogy. The second is, that in each the letter H comes second and fourth; and the third is that by Gematria
AHIH equals IHV without the H (which, as we shall see presently, is the symbol of Malkuth, the tenth
Sephira). But now, if they be written one above the others, thus, within the arms of a cross,

AH IH

IH VH

they read downwards as well as across, AHIH, IHVH.

64. Now, if we examine the matter qabalistically we shall find the reason of these analogies. For Eheieh,

INTRODUCTION. 21
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

AHIH, is the Vast Countenance, the Ancient One, Macroprosopus, Kether, the first Sephira, the Crown of the
Qabalistical Sephirotic greatest Trinity (which consists of the Crown, King, and Queen; or Macroprosopus,
Microprosopus and the Bride), and the Father in the Christian acceptation of the Trinity.

65. But IHVH, the Tetragrammaton, as we shall presently see, contains all the Sephiroth with the exception
of Kether, and specially signifies the Lesser Countenance, Microprosopus, the King of the qabalistical
Sephirotic greatest Trinity, and the Son in His human incarnation, in the Christian acceptation of the Trinity.

Therefore, as the Son reveals the Father, so does IHVH, Jehovah , reveal AHIH, Eheieh.

66. And ADNI is the Queen "by whom alone Tetragrammaton can be grasped," whose exaltation into Binah
is found in the Christian assumption of the Virgin.

67. The Tetragrammaton IHVH is referred to the Sephiroth, thus: the uppermost point of the letter Yod, I, is
said to refer to Kether , the letter I itself to Chokmah, the father of Microprosopus; the letter H, or "the
supernal He," to Binah, the supernal Mother; the letter V to the next six Sephiroth, which are called the six
members of Microprosopus (and six is the numerical value of V, the Hebrew Vau); lastly, the letter H, the
"inferior He," to Malkuth, the tenth Sephira, the bride of Microprosopus.

68. Now, there are four secret names referred to the four worlds of Atziloth, Briah, Yetzirah, and Asiah; and
again, the Tetragrammaton is said to go forth written in a certain manner in each of these four worlds. The
secret name of Atziloth is Aub, OB; that of Briah is Seg, SG; that of Yetzirah is Mah, MH; and that of Asiah
is Ben, BN. The subjoined Table will show the mode of writing the name in each of the four worlds.

69. These names operate together with the Sephiroth through the "231 gates," as the various combinations of
the alphabet are called; but it would take too much space to go fully into the subject here.

70. Closely associated with the subject of the letters of the Tetragrammaton is that of the four kerubim, to
which I have already referred in describing the first Sephira.

Now it must not be forgotten that these forms in Ezekiel's vision support the throne of the Deity, whereon the
Heavenly Man is seatedthe Adam Qadmon, the sephirotic image; and that between the throne and the living
creatures is the firmament. Here then we have the four worldsAtziloth, the deific form; Briah, the throne;
Yetzirah, the firmament; Asiah, the kerubim. Therefore the kerubim represent the powers of the letters of the
Tetragrammaton on the material plain; and the four represent the operation of the four letters in each of the
four worlds. Thus, then, the kerubim are the living forms of the letters, symbolized in the Zodiac by Taurus,
Leo, Aquarius, and Scorpio, as I have before remarked.

71. And "the mystery of the earthly and mortal man is after the mystery of the supernal and immortal One;"
and thus was he created the image of God upon earth. In the form of the body is the Tetragrammaton found.
The head is I, the arms and shoulders are like H, the body is V, and the legs are represented by the H final.
Therefore, as the outward form of man corresponds to the Tetragrammaton, so does the animating soul
correspond to the ten supernal Sephiroth; and as these find their ultimate expression in the trinity of the
crown, the king, and the queen, so is there a principal triple division of the soul. Thus, then, the first is the
Neschamah, NShMH, which is the highest degree of being, corresponding to the crown (Kether), and
representing the highest triad of the Sephiroth, called the intellectual world. The second is Ruach, RVCH, the
seat of good and evil, corresponding to Tiphereth, the moral world. And the third is Nephesch, NPSh, the
animal life and desires, corresponding to Yesod, and the material and sensuous world. All souls are
pre−existent in the world of emanations, and are in their original state androgynous, but when they descend

INTRODUCTION. 22
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

upon earth they become separated into male and female, and inhabit

different bodies; if therefore in this mortal life the male half encounters the female half, a strong attachment
springs up between them, and hence it is said that in marriage the separated halves are again conjoined; and
the hidden forms of the soul are akin to the kerubim.

72. But this foregoing triple division of the soul is only applicable to the triple form of the intellectual, moral,
and material. Let us not lose sight of the great qabalistical idea, that the trinity is always completed by and
finds its realization in the quaternary; that is IHV completed and realized in IHVHthe trinity of

Crown; King; Queen;

Father; Son; Spirit;

Absolute; Formation; Realization;

completed by the quaternary of

Absolute One Father and Mother Son Bride.

Macroprosopus, the Vast Father and Mother Microprosopus, the Lesser Malkuth, the Queen and
Countenance Countenance Bride.

Atziloth Briah Yetzirah Asiah.

Archetypal Creative Formative Material.

And to these four the soul answers in the following four forms:Chiah to Atziloth; Neschamah to Briah;
Ruach to Yetzirah; and Nephesch to Asiah. See subjoined plate illustrating the analogy between the soul, the

INTRODUCTION. 23
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

letters of the Tetragrammaton, and the four worlds.

73. But Chiah is in the soul the archetypal form analogous to Macroprosopus. Wherefore Neschamah, Ruach,
and Nephesch represent as it were by themselves the Tetragrammaton, without Chiah, which is nevertheless
symbolized "in the uppermost point of the I, yod," of the soul; as Macroprosopus is said to be symbolized by
the uppermost point of the I, yod, of IHVH. For "yod of the Ancient One is hidden and concealed."

74. I select the following résumé of the qabalistical teachings regarding the nature of the soul from Eliphaz
Levi's "Clef des Mystères," as also the accompanying plate. This gives the chief heads of the ideas of Rabbi
Moses Korduero and of Rabbi Yitzchaq Loria.

"The soul is a veiled light. This light is triple:

"Neschamah = the pure spirit;

"Ruach = the soul or spirit;

"Nephesch = the plastic mediator.

"The veil of the soul is the shell of the image.

"The image is double because it reflects alike the good and the evil angel of the soul.

"Nephesch is immortal by renewal of itself through the destruction of forms;

"Ruach is progressive through the evolution of ideas;

"Neschamah is progressive without forgetfulness and without destruction.

There are three habitations of souls:

"The Abyss of Life;

"The superior Eden;

"The inferior Eden."

"The image Tzelem is a sphinx which propounds the enigma of life.

"The fatal image (i.e., that which succumbs to the outer ) endows Nephesch with his attributes, but Ruach can
substitute the image conquered by the inspirations of Neschamah.

"The body is the veil of Nephesch, Nephesch is the veil of Ruach, Ruach is the veil of the shroud of
Neschamah.

"Light personifies itself by veiling itself, and the personification is only stable when the veil is perfect.

"This perfection upon earth is relative to the universal soul of the earth (i.e., as the macrocosm or greater
world, so the microcosm or lesser world, which is man).

There are three atmospheres for the souls.

INTRODUCTION. 24
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

The third atmosphere finishes where the planetary attraction of the other worlds commences.

Souls perfected on this earth pass on to another station.

"After traversing the planets they come to the sun; then they ascend into another universe and recommence
their planetary evolution from world to world and from sun to sun.

"In the suns they remember, and in the planets they forget.

"The solar lives are the days of eternal life, and the planetary lives are the nights with their dreams.

"Angels are luminous emanations personified, not by trial and veil, but by divine influence and reflex.

"The angels aspire to become men, for the perfect man, the man−God, is above every angel.

"The planetary lives are composed of ten dreams of a hundred years each, and each solar life is a thousand
years; therefore is it said that a thousand years are in the sight of God as one day.

"Every weekthat is, every fourteen thousand yearsthe soul bathes itself and reposes in the jubilee dream of
forgetfulness.

"On waking therefrom it has forgotten the evil and only remembers the good."

75. In the accompanying plate of the formation of the soul there will be seen in the upper part three circles,
representing the three parts known as Neschamah, Ruach, and Nephesch. From Ruach and Nephesch,
influenced by the good aspirations of Neschamah, proceeds Michael, the good angel of the soul; that is to say,
the synthetical hieroglyph of the good ideas, or, in the esoteric Buddhist phraseology, the "Good Karma" of a
man. From Nephesch dominating Ruach, and uninfluenced by the good aspirations of Neschamah, proceeds
Samäel, the evil angel of the soul; that is to say, the synthetical hieroglyph of the evil ideas, the "evil Karma"
of a man. And the Tzelem, or image, is double, for it reflects alike Michael and Samäel.

76. The following is Dr. Jellinek's analysis of the sephirotic ideas, according to the ethics of Spinoza:

1. DEFINITION.By the Being who is the cause and governor of all things I understand the
Ain Sophi.e., a Being infinite, boundless, absolutely identical with itself, united in itself,
without attributes, will, intention, desire, thought, word, or deed.

2. DEFINITION.By Sephiroth I understand the potencies which emanated from the


Absolute, Ain Soph, all entities limited by quantity, which, like the will, without changing its
nature, wills diverse objects that are the possibilities of multifarious things.

I. PROPOSITION.The primary cause and governor of the world is the Ain Soph, who is
both immanent and transcendent.

(a) PROOF.Each effect has a cause, and everything which has order and design has a
governor.

(b) PROOF.Everything visible has a limit, what is limited is finite, what is finite is not
absolutely identical; the primary cause of the world is invisible, therefore unlimited, infinite,

INTRODUCTION. 25
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

absolutely identicali.e., he is the Ain Soph.

(c) PROOF.As the primary cause of the world is infinite, nothing can exist
without (EXTRA) him; hence he is immanent.

Scholion

.As the Ain Soph is invisible and exalted, it is the root of both faith and unbelief.

II. PROPOSITION.−The Sephiroth are the medium between the absolute Ain Soph and the
real world.

PROOF.As the real world is limited and not perfect, it cannot directly proceed from the Ain
Soph: still the Ain Soph must exercise his influence over it, or his perfection would cease.
Hence the Sephiroth, which, in their intimate connection with

the Ain Soph, are perfect, and in their severance are imperfect, must be the medium.

Scholion

.Since all existing things originated by means of the Sephiroth , there are a higher, a middle,
and a lower degree of the real world. ( Vide infra, Proposition VI.)

III.PROPOSITION.There are ten intermediate Sephiroth.

PROOF.All bodies have three dimensions, each of which repeats the other (3 x 3); and by
adding thereto space generally, we obtain the number ten. As the Sephiroth are the potencies
of all that is limited they must be ten.

(a) Scholion.The number ten does not contradict the absolute unity of the Ain Soph; as one is the basis of all
numbers, plurality proceeds from unity, the germs contain the development, just as fire, flame, sparks, and
colour have one basis, though they differ from one another.

(b) Scholion.Just as cogitation or thought, and even the mind as a cogitated object, is limited, becomes
concrete, and has a measure, although pure thought proceeds from the Ain Soph; so limit, measure, and
concretion are the attributes of the Sephiroth .

IV. PROPOSITION.The Sephiroth are emanations, and not creations.

1. PROOF.As the absolute. Ain Soph is perfect, the Sephiroth proceeding therefrom must also be perfect
hence they are not created.

2. PROOF.All created objects diminish by abstraction; the Sephiroth do not lessen, as their activity never
ceases; hence they cannot be created.

Scholion

.The first Sephira was in the Ain Soph as a power before it became a reality; then the second
Sephira emanated as a potency for the intellectual world; and afterwards the other Sephiroth emanated for the
moral and material worlds. This, however, does not imply a

INTRODUCTION. 26
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

prius and posterius

, or a gradation in the Ain Soph, but just as a light whose kindled lights, which shine sooner and later, and
variously, so it embraces all in a unity.

V. PROPOSITION.The Sephiroth are both active and passive (MQBIL VMThQBL, Meqabil
Va−Metheqabel.)

PROOF.As the Sephiroth do not set aside the unity of the Ain Soph, each one of them must receive from its
predecessor and impart to its successori.e., be receptive and imparting.

VI. PROPOSITION.The first Sephira is called Inscrutable Height , RVM MOLH, Rom Maaulah; the
second, Wisdom, ChKMH, Chokmah; the third, Intelligence, BINH, Binah; the fourth, Love, ChSD, Chesed;
the fifth, Justice, , Pachad; the sixth, Beauty, ThPARTh, Tiphereth; the seventh, Firmness, NTZCh, Netzach;
the eighth, Splendour, HVD, Hod; the ninth, the Righteous is the Foundation of the World, TzDIQ ISVD
OVLM, Tzediq Yesod Olahm ; and the tenth, Righteousness, TzDQ, Tzedeq.

(a) Scholion.The first three Sephiroth form the world of thought; the second three the world of soul; and the
four last the world of body; thus corresponding to the intellectual, moral, and material worlds.

(b) Scholion.The first Sephira stands in relation to the soul, inasmuch as it is called a unity, IChIDH,
Yechidah; the second, inasmuch as it is denominated living, ChIH, Chiah; the third, inasmuch as it is termed,
Spirit, RVCh, Ruach; the fourth, inasmuch as it is called vital principle, NPSh, Nephesch; the fifth, inasmuch
as it is denominated soul, NShMH, Neschamah; the sixth operates on the blood, the seventh on the bones, the
eighth on the veins, the ninth on the flesh, and the tenth on the skin.

(e) Scholion.The first Sephira is like the concealed light, the second like sky−blue, the third like yellow, the
fourth like white, the fifth like red, the sixth like white−red,

the seventh like whitish−red, the eighth like reddish−white, the ninth like white−red whitish−red
reddish−white, and the tenth is like the light reflecting all colours.

77. I will now revert to the subject of Arikh Anpin and Zauir Anpin, the Macroprosopus and the
Microprosopus, or the Vast and the Lesser Countenances. Macroprosopus is, it will be remembered, the first
Sephira, or Crown Kether; Microprosopus is composed of six of the Sephiroth. (See subjoined plate.) In
Macroprosopus all is light and brilliancy; but Microprosopus only shineth by the reflected splendour of
Macroprosopus. The six days of creation correspond to the six forms of Microprosopus. Therefore the symbol
of the interlaced triangles, forming the six−pointed star, is called the Sign of the Macrocosm, or of the
creation of the greater world, and is consequently analogous to. the two countenances of the Zohar. This,
however, is not the only occult reason that I have placed this symbol in the plate, for it typifies other ideas
upon which I shall not here enter. The "Book of Concealed Mystery" fully discusses the symbolism of
Macroprosopus and Microprosopus; therefore it is well, before reading it, to be cognizant of their similarities
and differences. The one is AHIH, Eheieh; the other is the V, Vau, of the Tetragrammaton. The first two
letters, I and H, Yod and He, are the father and mother of Microprosopus, and the H final is his bride. But in
these forms is expressed the equilibrium of severity and mercy; severity being symbolized by the two Hs,
Hes, the mother and the bride, but especially by the latter. But while the excess of Mercy is not an evil
tendency, but rather conveys a certain idea of weakness and want of force, too great an excess of severity
calls forth the executioner of judgment, the evil and oppressive force, which is symbolized by Leviathan.
Wherefore it is said, "Behind the shoulders of the bride the serpent rears his head:" of the bride, but not of the

INTRODUCTION. 27
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

mother, for she is the supernal H, and bruises his head. "But his head is broken by the waters of the great
sea." The sea is Binah, the supernal H, the mother. The serpent is the centripetal force, ever seeking to
penetrate into Paradise (the Sephiroth), and to tempt the supernal Eve (the bride), so that in her turn she may
tempt the supernal Adam (Microprosopus).

It is utterly beyond the scope of this Introduction to examine this symbolism thoroughly, especially as it
forms the subject of this work; so I will simply refer my reader to the actual text for further elucidation,
hoping that by the perusal of this introductory notice he will be better fitted to understand and follow the
course of qabalistic teaching there given.

SPRA DTzNIOVThA (SIPHRA DTZENIOUTHA); OR, THE


BOOK OF CONCEALED MYSTERY.
CHAPTER I.
1. Tradition."The Book of Concealed Mystery" is the book of the equilibrium of balance.

[The word "Dtzenioutha" is difficult to translate, but I think its meaning is best expressed by the words
"Concealed Mystery." I have explained in the Introduction the qabalistical meaning of the words
"equilibrium" and "balance," § 29.]

2. Tradition.For before there was equilibrium, countenance beheld not countenance.

[By the two countenances are mean, Macroprosopus and Microprosopus. See Introduction, §§ 42, 47, 64, 65,
67. 73, and 77.]

3. And the kings of ancient time were dead, and their crowns were found no more; and the earth was desolate.

[The "kings of ancient time" mean the same thing as the "Edomite Kings;" that is, they symbolize worlds of
"unbalanced force," which, according to the Zohar. preceded the formation of this universe. I have explained
this also in the Introduction, §§ 41 and 56. This and the immediately following sections are supposed to trace
the gradual development of the Deity from negative into positive existence; the text is here describing the
time when the Deity was just commencing His manifestation from His primal negative form. Therefore,
according to the qabalistical ideas, the universe is the garment as it were of the Deity; He not only contains
all, but is Himself all. and exists in all.]

4. Until that head (which is incomprehensible) desired by all desires (proceeding from AIN SVP, Ain Soph,
the infinite and limitless one), appeared and communicated the vestments of honour.

[This Head, which is here described as proceeding from the infinite and limitless One, the Ain Soph, is the
first Sephira, the Crown Kether, otherwise called Arikh Anpin, or Macroprosopus, the Vast Countenance.
From this first Sephira the other nine emanations are produced. I have explained all this in the Introduction,
§§ 38−57, in treating of the Sephiroth.]

5. This equilibrium hangeth in that region which is negatively existent in the Ancient One.

[By the expression "This equilibrium hangeth in that region which is negatively existent in the Ancient One,"
is meant that the other nine Sephiroth (which are equilibrated by their formation in trinities) are as yet not
developed in the first Sephira. but exist within it as the tree exists in the seed from which it springs. By "the
Ancient One", is intended the first Sephira, the Crown Kether, one of whose appellations is Autheqa, the

SPRA DTzNIOVThA (SIPHRA DTZENIOUTHA); OR, THE BOOK OF CONCEALED MYSTERY. 28


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Ancient One. From this Sephira, as I have before remarked. the idea of negative existence depends back
towards the AIN.]

6. Thus were those powers equiponderated which were not yet in perceptible existence.

[These powers are the other nine Sephiroth, which are, as it were powers of the first Sephira; as soon as they
are equated they become positively existent through correlation of force. The next two sections explain the
manner of their equilibration while yet negative entities, or rather ideas ]

7. In His form (in the form of the Ancient One) existeth the equilibrium: it is incomprehensible, it is unseen.

[But the first idea of equilibrium is the Ancient One (the first Sephira, or Crown Kether), because it is the
first potential limitation of the boundless light which proceeds from the Limitless One. That is, the central
point of Kether is the equilibrium, because the balance does not yet exist, the two opposite poles which form
the balance not being yet developed. We must not confuse these two terms, equilibrium and balance. The
balance consists of two scales (opposing forces), the equilibrium is the central point of the beam.]

8. Therein have they ascended, and therein do they ascendthey who are not, who are, and who shall be.

[Therein (in the equilibrium of Kether) have they ascended (developed when they became positively
existent), and therein (in the equilibrium) do they ascend (have their first existence), they (the Sephiroth) who
are not (exist negatively). who are (then become positive), and who shall. be (exist permanently. because they
we counterbalanced powers). This triple expression "are not, are, and shall be." also refers to the triple trinity
of the Sephiroth.] (See Introduction. §§ 52, 64, 65 And 66.)

9. The head which is incomprehensible is secret in secret.

[This head Is Macroprosopus, the Vast Countenance, and is the same as the Ancient One, or Crown Kether. It
is were, for therein axe hidden the other potentialities.]

10. But it hath been formed and prepared in the likeness of a cranium, and is filled with the crystalline dew.

[The crystalline dew is the creative lux or Aur, AVR, proceeding from the Limitless One. The Mantuan
Codex calls the skull or cranium the first, and the crystalline dew the second conformation of
Macroprosopus.]

11. His skin is of other, clear and congealed.

12. (His hair is as) most fine wool, floating through the balanced equilibrium.

[The ether is the clear and insupportable brilliance of his glory. The hair is whitei.e.; spotless as woolto
denote the utter absence of matter and of shell. The Mantuan Codex calls the ether the third conformation,
and the hair the fourth, which latter it refers to the Sephira Netzach, victory.]

13. (His forehead is) the benevolence of those benevolences which are manifested through the prayers of the
inferior powers. [The supernal benignity which transmits their qualities, powers and offices, to the lower
Sephiroth (the inferior powers). It must be remembered that each Sephira receives from that which
immediately precedes it, and transmits to that which next follows it. Thus, each Sephira is said to be feminine
or passive as regards its predecessor, and masculine or active in respect to its successor. (See Introduction, §§
43 and 51.) The Mantuan Codex calls this the fifth conformation, and refers it to the idea of the ninth Sephira,
Yesod, foundation.]

SPRA DTzNIOVThA (SIPHRA DTZENIOUTHA); OR, THE BOOK OF CONCEALED MYSTERY. 29


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

14. His eye is ever open and sleepeth not, for it continually keepeth watch. And the appearance of the lower is
according to the aspect of the higher light.

(Were the eye to close (the directing thought Divine to be abstracted from the Sephiroth), the whole universe
would give way, for its mainspring would be withdrawn. Because the appearance (development) of the lower
(nine Sephiroth) is according to (dependent on) the aspect (ruling thought) of the higher light (Kether, the
first Sephira). The Mantuan Codex terms this the sixth conformation of Macroprosopus, and refers it, as in
the case of the fourth conformation, to the primal idea of the Sephira Netzach, victory.]

15. Therein are His two nostrils like mighty galleries, whence His spirit rushes forth over all. (The Mantuan
Codex adds that this is the seventh conformation, which refers to MLKVTh, Malkuth, or "the kingdom," the
tenth emanation or Sephira of the Deity.)

[The creative spirit, or the "breath of life."]

16. (When, therefore, the Divine law beginneth) BRAShITh BRA ALHIM ATh HShMIM VATh HARTz,
Berashith Bera Elohim Ath Hashamaim Vaath Haaretz: "In the beginning the Elohim created the substance
of the heavens and the substance of the earth." (The sense is: Six members were created, which are the six
numerations of Microprosopusviz., benignity as His right arm; severity as His left arm; beauty as His body;
victory as His right leg; glory as His left leg; and the foundation as reproductive.) For instead of BRAShITh,
Berashith, "in the beginning," it may be read, BRAShITh, Bera

Shith

, "He created the six." Upon these depend all things which are below (principally the Queen, who is the
lowest path, or the bride of Microprosopus, and all the three inferior worlds.)

(The view which the Siphra Dtzenioutha here follows out is that the beginning of Genesis describes not only
the creation of the world, but the development of God, for it considers the universe as the outward and
material expression of the power of the thought Divine. Microprosopus is as it were the reflection of
Macroprosopus, for as Macroprosopus has six principal titles. so is Microprosopus composed of six of the
Sephiroth. (See Introduction, §§ 42. 47 and 77.) ShITh, Shith, is the Chaldee form of the Hebrew ShSh,
Shash, six. The queen is Malkuth, the tenth Sephira. The three inferior worlds are Briah, Yetzirah, and Asiah.
See Introduction, §§ 57−60.]

11. And the dignity of dignity hangeth from the seven conformations of the cranium. (This is the beard of the
venerable and Ancient One, which is divided into thirteen portions).

(The Ancient One is the first Sephira, Macroprosopus. as I have before remarked. The beard, in continuation
of the symbolic representation of the head. is divided Into thirteen portions, which answer by Gematria (see
Introduction, § 11) to the idea of unity. For AChD, Achad, unity, yields the number 13 by numerical value.]

18. And the second earth came not into the computation. (That is, the kingdom of the restored world, which
elsewhere is called the Bride of Microprosopus, came not into the computation when the six members were
said to be created. Or otherwise, when in Genesis iv. 2 it is said in another way, "And the earth," that earth is
not to be understood of which mention hath been first made; since by the first is to be understood the
kingdom of the restored world, and by the second the kingdom of the destroyed world), and this is elsewhere
said.

[The kingdom (of the destroyed world is that of unbalanced force, (See Introduction. §§ 41 and 56, and also
note Section 3. foregoing.) This refers to a period prior to the development of the Sephiroth. and must

SPRA DTzNIOVThA (SIPHRA DTZENIOUTHA); OR, THE BOOK OF CONCEALED MYSTERY. 30


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

therefore be referable to the Edomite kings.] 19. And it hath proceeded out of that which hath undergone the
curse, as it is written in Genesis v., 29, "From the earth which the Lord hath cursed." (The meaning is: That
the kingdom of the restored world was formed from the kingdom of the destroyed world, wherein seven kings
had died and their possessions had been broken up. Or, the explanation of the world, of which mention is
made elsewhere, proceedeth from the kingdom of the destroyed world.)

[These seven kings are the Edomite kings before mentioned in Section 3.]

20. It was formless and void, and darkness upon the face of the deep, and the Spirit of the Elohim vibrating
upon the face of the waters. Thirteen (these words, from "it was formless" down to "of the waters," are
thirteen in the Hebrew text of Genesis) depend from the thirteen (forms) of the dignity of dignity (that is, the
beard of the Macroprosopus, or first formed head).

[I have before remarked that the number thirteen expresses unity. The author of "The Book of Concealed
Mystery" here argues that the very number and order of the words in the Hebrew text refer to certain forms of
the Deity. The terms "face of the deep" and "face of the waters" bear a striking analogy to Macroprosopus
and Microprosopus, the Vast and the Lesser Countenances. In this sense the "face of (from) the deep (abyss)"
is the countenance formed from Ain Soph, the Limitless One; namely. the first Sephira the Crown Kether.]

21. Six thousand years depend from the six first. This is what the wise have said, that the world shall last six
thousand years, and it is understood from the six numbers of Microprosopus. But also the six following
words give occasion to this idea: VIAMR ALHIM IHI AVR VIHI AVR, Veyomar Elohim Yehi Aur Vayehi
Aur: "And the Elohim said, Let there be light, and there was light."

[By an exegetical rule of numbers, not so often employed as the others. simple numbers or units signify
divine things; numbers of ten, celestial things; numbers of a hundred, terrestrial things; and thousands signify
the future, what shall be in an after−age. Hence are the "six thousand years" deduced from the six first words,
which also are said to refer to the six Sephiroth of whom Microprosopus is formed; the idea of six being
extended into as many thousands, to symbolise that number on the plane of a future age.]

2:. The seventh (the millennium, and the seventh space. namely, the Kingdom), above that One which alone
is powerful(i.e., when the six degrees of the members denote mercies and judgments, the seventh degree
tendeth alone to judgment and rigour). And the whole is desolate (that is, the Kingdom, MLKVTh, Malkuth,
in the higher powers, is the antitype of the sanctuary, and like as this is destroyed, so also the Schechinah, or
Kingdom, is itself exiled) for twelve hours (for the Hebrews include all this time of their exile in the space of
one day). Like as it is written: "It was formless and void, &c." (for from the word "it was formless," down to
"upon the faces of," are twelve words in the Hebrew text of Genesis.)

[By the same rule, the millennium is deduced from the seventh word. The seventh space here means Malkuth,
the kingdom, or the queen, which together with the six of Microprosopus, makes up the seven lower
Sephiroth. (See Introduction, § 77, further, for the idea of the balance of mercy and judgment.)]

23. The thirteenth (that is, "of the waters," HMIM, Hamim, which is the thirteenth word) raiseth up these (that
is, as well the sanctuary which is above as that which is below) through mercy (since the water symbolizeth
that measure of mercy through which judgment and punishments are mitigated), and they are renewed as
before (for the six words follow afresh, as in the beginning the six members are enumerated). For all those six
continue and stand fast (they are the members of the Microprosopus, and are not as his bride, and from them
is the restitution), since it is written BRA, Bera, "created" (which hath a sense of permanence), and then it is
written HIThH, Hayitha, "it was" (which also is a phrase of permanence and not of interpolation), for it is
very truth (plainly, therefore, the kingdom perished not, although it might be formless and void, but it
retaineth hitherto the essence).

SPRA DTzNIOVThA (SIPHRA DTZENIOUTHA); OR, THE BOOK OF CONCEALED MYSTERY. 31


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

[Mercy and judgment are opposites, and from the side of judgment comes the execution of judgment, which
is destruction.]

24. And at the end of the Formless and the Void and the Darkness (that is, at the end of the exile this saying
shall have place: Isa. ii. 11). And the Tetragrammaton alone shall be exalted in that day (that is, in the time of
Messiah).

[The Tetragrammaton (see Introduction, § 67) comprehends the whole ten Sephiroth, and consequently
expresses their three trinities of balanced force also; consequently, when the Tetragrammaton appears, the
formless and the void and the darkness disappear, and form, fulness, and light replace them.]

25. But there are excavations of excavations. (The excavation is the receptacle, like that which is hollowed
out, or carved out, like a cave, or any other receptacle. Therefore all receptacles are inferior with respect to
the superiors, among which the "shells" hold the last place, which here are described, which are) under the
form of a vast serpent extending this way and that. (Concerning this serpent the author of the "Royal Valley"
speaks thus in his "Treatise of the Shells." The fragments of the receptacles, which have fallen into the world
of Creation, of Formation, and of Action, therein exist from the Outer; and judgments are more consonant to
these, which are called profane, and have their habitation in the middle space between the Holy and the
Unclean. And from the head is formed that great dragon which is in the sea, and is the sea−serpent, which is,
however, not so harmful as the earthly one. And this dragon hath been castrated since his crest (or membrum
genitale), together with his mate, have been repressed, and thence have been formed four hundred desirable
worlds. And this dragon hath in his head a

nostril (after the manner of whales) in order that he may receive influence, and in himself he containeth all
other dragons, concerning which it is said: "Thou hast broken the heads of the dragons upon the waters" (Ps.
lxxiv. 13). And here the idea or universal form of all the shells is understood, which encompasseth the seven
inferior emanations of the queen after the manner of a serpent, as well from the right as from the left and
from every side.)

[The excavation or receptacle of a Sephira is that quality whereby it receives the supernal influence from that
which immediately precedes it; hence each Sephira has a double quality of receiving and of transmitting,
which passes through the four worlds in each which the Sephiroth exist, though in gradually decreasing light.
(See Table subjoined.) The "shells," Qlipoth, are the demons, in whom again is a form of the Sephiroth,
distorted and averse. This great dragon which is here described is evidently identical with the leviathan of
Job. He is the executor of judgment, the centripetal force, the old serpent ever seeking to penetrate into
Paradise; finally, in a more exoteric sense he is Satan and the devil, the accusing one. In the Sepher Yetzirah,
a most important qabalistical book, he is called Theli, ThLI, the dragon. Now, by Gematria. ThLI = 400 + 30
+ 10 = 440; and if we "repress his crest"i.e., take away the first letter, which is Th, Tau,¤00, there will
remain LI = 40 = M, Mem, the water. The "400 desirable worlds" are the numerical value of Th, and signify
the power of the Tetragrammaton on the material plane (See note to section 21, foregoing). There is much
alchemical symbolism contained in the "Siphra Dtzenioutha." The "Seven Inferior Emanations" of the queen,
are the seven lower Sephiroth viz., Chesed, Geburah, Tiphereth, Netzach, Hod. Yesod, and Malkuth; or
Microprosopus and his bride, the king and queen. Shells," Qliphoth, are the evil spirits.]

26. His tail is in his head (that is, he holdeth his tail in his mouth, in order that he may form a circle, since he
is said to encompass holiness). He transferreth his head to behind the shoulders (that is, he raiseth his head at
the back of the bride of Microprosopus, where is the place of most severe judgments), and he is despised
(since in him is the extremity of judgments and severities, whence wrath is the attribute of his forms). He
watcheth (that is, he accurately searcheth out and seeketh in what place he may gain an entry into holiness.

SPRA DTzNIOVThA (SIPHRA DTZENIOUTHA); OR, THE BOOK OF CONCEALED MYSTERY. 32


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

And he is concealed (as if laying traps; since he insinuateth himself into the inferiors, by whose sins he hath
access to the holy grades, where the carrying out of judgments is committed to him.) He is manifested in one
of the thousand shorter days. (Numbers are called days, and numbers of the inferior world short days; among
which tens are attributed to the factive, on account of their decimal numeration; hundreds to the formative,
since they are numbers of the light of their author, and draw their existence from the tens; but thousands to
the creative, for the same reason. But that dragon hath about this his. most powerful location, whence, if a
defect occurreth only in one numeration of that system through the fault of the inferiors, he is immediately
manifest, and thus commenceth his accusations before the throne of glory.)

[Here is the origin of the well−known symbol of a serpent holding his tail in his mouth, like a circlethe
serpent of Saturn. The reason that he raiseth his head behind the shoulders of the bride (Malkuth) is because
he is. so to speak, not only the executor of judgment, but also the destroyer; destruction as opposed to
creation, death as opposed to life. For the whole Sephiroth are represented as being the balance of mercy and
justice, and the tenth Sephira is especially of the nature of justice, as also is Geburah. the fifth. He is
concealed, because he is not called into action till justice requires him. The term "decimal numeration" of
course refers to the ten Sephiroth. The presence of the serpent when revealed, is an accusation, because it
shows that the balance is destroyed; just as in a watch, if one of the wheels be injured, irregularity is at once
manifested. Now, life, when it consists of birth into another form, necessarily implies death in the previous
form. The throne of glory is the Briatic world.]

27. There are swellings in his scales (that is, like as in a crocodile; because great in him is the heaping
together of judgments). His crest keepeth its own place (that is, there is in him no further power of hastening
to things beyond in the Outer). [There is in the destroyer no "hastening to the outer," because he is
centripetal and not centrifugal.]

28. But his head is broken by the waters of the great sea. (The great sea is wisdom, the fountain of mercy and
loving−kindness; which, if it sendeth down its influence, judgments are pacified, and the hurtful power of the
shells is restricted); like as it is written, Ps. lxxiv. 13: "Thou hast broken the heads of the dragons by the
waters."

["The waters of the great sea," are the influence of the supernal mother, Binah, of whom Malkuth is the
reflection. But Binah receives the influence of Chokmah. See Introduction.]

29. They were two (male and female, whence the text of the Psalm speaketh of the dragons in the plural
number; but when the plural number is given in its least form, two only are understood). They are reduced
into one (for the female leviathan hath been slain, lest they should seek to multiply judgments). Whence the
word ThNINM, Thenanim (in the before−mentioned passage of the Psalm), is written in a defective form
(purposely to denote that restriction).

[I may refer the reader to the Talmud for further information regarding Jewish ideas of the Leviathan.
Thenanim is written in a defective form, because the letter I of the plural is omitted. Written fully, it should
be ThNINIM, instead of ThNINM.]

30. (But it is said) heads (in the plural number, for the purpose of denoting a vast multitude, as well of species
as of individuals in that genus); like as it is written, Ezek. i. 22: "And a likeness as a firmament above the
heads of the living creature." (Where also the word living creature, ChIH, Chiah, is put in the singular as a
genus of angels; and heads in the plural for the purpose of denoting species and innumerable individuals.)

["Thou hast broken the heads of the dragons (Thenanim) by the waters." It must be remembered that this
dragon is said by the author of the "Royal Valley" to be the king of all the "shells" or demons. Now, the
demons are divided into ten classes. corresponding to the ten Sephiroth, but in an averse form, and are called

SPRA DTzNIOVThA (SIPHRA DTZENIOUTHA); OR, THE BOOK OF CONCEALED MYSTERY. 33


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

in the book, "Beth Elohim," the "impure Sephiroth." The heads of the leviathan (cf. the Lernæan Hydra which
Hercules slew) are probably these. Compare the description of the beast in Revelation.]

31. "And the Elohim said, let there be light, and there was light." (The sense may be sought from that Psalm
xxxiii. 9) where it a written, "Since He Himself spake, and it was done." (First, therefore, is commemorated)
the Path HVA, Hoa, (that is, the mother of understanding, who is called ALHIM, Elohim, near the beginning
of the verse. "And the Elohim said." She also is called HVA, Hoa , in the words of Psalm xxxiii. 9, on
account of her truly secret nature) is alone (as well with Moses as with David). The word VIHI, Vayehi, "and
it was done," is also alone. (As if the six members were considered separately, seeing that V, Vau, occupieth
the first place in the word VIHI, Vayehi.

[This statement, that the supernal mother symbolized by the word Hoa, He, seems at first sight at variance
with the statement in another place, that Hoa represents Macroprosopus. But the letter H in the
Tetragrammaton symbolizes the supernal mother, and this is also the initial letter of Hoa. And again by
Gematria (see Introduction) Hoa, HVA = 5 + 6 + 1 = 12, and the digits of 12 1 + 2 = 3. And 3 symbolizes
Binah because she is the third Sephira. "Seeing that V, Vau, occupies the first place in the word VIHI,"
because V stands for the number 6. See Table of the Alphabet, &c., in Introduction.]

32. Then are the letters inverted, and become one. (If, namely, in the word VIHI, Vayehi, the letters I, Yod,
and H, He , be placed in front so that it may read IHVI, Yahevi, it maketh one Tetragrammaton, which
exhausteth the whole Divinity. But since these belong to the mother, from whom arise the judgments, hence
this tetragrammaton is here written in retrograde order, which mode of writing is referred by qabalists to the
judgments, on account of the nature of averse things; whence this ought to be written in this way: IHVI,
Yahevi, IHV, Yeho, IH, Yah, I, Yod. But since in the path of understanding those judgments themselves do not
exist, but only their roots, while in itself this path is only pure mercy; hence the retrograde order is inverted,
in order that it may be posited entire in this manner as at first): I, Yod, IH, Yah , IHV, Yeho, IHVI, Yahevi.
(But it is not written in the usual manner, IHVH, Yod, He, Vau, He; because the word is derived from VIHI,
Vayehi, whose metathesis is here discussed. And nevertheless the letter) which is last (namely, I, Yod, which
is put in the place of the last H, He, in the ordinary form of the Tetragrammaton, denoteth), the Schechinah
(or the queenly presence) which is below (that is, a path of the kingdom, namely, MLKVTh, Malkuth, the
tenth and last Sephira); like as (in the other instance) the letter H, He, is found to be the Schechinah.

[The reader will be utterly unable to follow the reasoning in this section. unless he reads carefully what I have
said in the Introduction concerning the Literal Qabalah under the heads of Notariqon and Temurah, to which
therefore I refer him. Any four−lettered name is of course a tetragrammaton, but this term is especially
applied to the word of four letters called by biblical translators Jehovah. It must be remembered that the
natural course of writing Hebrew and Chaldee is from right to left, and that when it is written from left to
right, it is said to be written "backwards," "in retrograde order," or "averse." By the "path of understanding"
is meant Binah. the third Sephira. Schechinah is of course the Divine Presence manifested in the path of
Malkuth. I have explained in the Introduction the meaning of the term "path" as employed in the Zohar.]

33. But in one balance are they equiponderated. (The balance denoteth the male and the female; and the
meaning is, that the fetters I, Yod, and H, Heof which the former is masculine and referreth to the path of the
foundation; and the latter is feminine, pertaining to the queenare interchangeable; since whilst the
equilibrium existeth there is an intercommunication between them, and they are joined together as one. Add
to this that the queen is also called ADNI, Adonaï, wherein the letter I, Yod, bringeth up the rearguard of the
army, as it were; because also it is accustomed to be called the Lesser Wisdom.) And the living creatures rush
forth and return. (This is what is said in Ezek. i. 14 concerning the living creatures, which it is accustomed to
be said concerning those letters of the Tetragrammaton, which sometimes hold the last place and sometimes
the first; as when I, Yod, rusheth forth unto the last place, and when it returneth unto the beginning again; and
so also the letter H, He. Likewise, then, also the living creatures are said to rush forth, when the

SPRA DTzNIOVThA (SIPHRA DTZENIOUTHA); OR, THE BOOK OF CONCEALED MYSTERY. 34


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Tetragrammaton is written with the final H, He, because then the whole system of emanatives is exhausted.
But they are said to return when the Tetragrammaton is written with the final I, Yod, so that the sense may be
collected in such a manner as to return from the last path of the queen into the penultimate of the foundation,
which is designated by this letter I, Yod.

[I have defined "balance" in the Introduction, § 29, which see. The "path of the foundation" is of course
Yesod, the ninth Sephira, while the queen is Malkuth, the tenth. Yesod is therefore the connecting link
between the Microprosopus and the bride. The letter I "bringeth up the rearguard as it were" in the name
ADNI, Adonai, because it is the last letter. Ezek, i. 14: the Qabalists by the term ChIVTh HQDSh, Chaioth
Ha−Qadesch, the Holy Living−Creatures, understand the letters of the Tetragrammaton. With regard to the
"letters of the Tetragrammaton, which sometimes hold the last place and sometimes the first," the following
are two examples−namely, as in the form IHVI, Yod, He, Van, Yod, the letter I, Yod, is both at the beginning
and end of the word; and in the form which is more usual IHVH, Yod, He, Van, He, the letter H, He, is in the
second and last place.]

34. Like as it is written: "And the Elohim saw the substance of the light, that it was good. (Here a reason is
adduced from the proposed text itself, showing how the last letter of this form of the Tetragrammaton,
namely, I, Yod, may be said to symbolize the bride, since God himself might behold in that light the path of
conjunctive foundation, which the word "goodness" pointeth out; but when the foundation is in the act of
conjunctionthat is, under the idea of communicating goodnessthere then is the bride. But also that the
word "goodness" denoteth the foundation is proved from Isa. iii. 10, where it is said, "Say ye unto the
righteous man" (that is, to the path of foundation, because the first man is said to be the foundation of the
world, Prov. x. 25),,that it shall be well with him." Therefore, then do they ascend within the equilibrium.
(That is, these two letters, I, Yod, and H, He, mean one and the same thing. Or, again: But behold, how in
balanced power ascend the letters of Tetragrammaton. That is, how those letters agree when in conjunction,
which before were standing separated in the word VIHI, Vayehi.)

(The "path of foundation" is of course the ninth Sephira, Yesod, which is the sixth member of Microprosopus
(see section 16, foregoing). and typifies reproductive power. Malkuth is the queen. We must remember that in
the Tetragrammaton, IHVH, I, Yod, is the father (who is not Macroprosopus, though he is implied therein. as
the top point of the Hebrew letter Yod is said to symbolize him); H, He, the supernal mother; V, Vau, the son
(Microprosopus); and H, He, final, the bride (the queen). And this is their proper order. Other variations of
the Tetragrammaton, therefore, alter the position of the letters with regard to each other their normal and
correct position being IHVH.]

35 (Whilst the spouse, Microprosopus) was at first alone (he was standing by, whilst the letter V, Vau,
occupied the first place, then was he separated from his bride). But all things returned into the unity. (That is,
not only were father and mother conjoined into one, because the two letters, I, Yod, and H, He, were
combined; but also the Microprosopus returned to his bride, whilst V, Vau, was placed next to I, Yod, in the
Tetragrammaton, IHVI, Yahevi. For) V, Vau, descendeth (when in the word VIHI, Vayehi, "and it was done,"
it occupieth the first place; but in the proposed metathesis it descended into the third place, in order that it
might be IHVI, Yahevi). And they are bound together the one to the other (male and female, V, Vau, and I,
Yod, the path of beauty and the queen), namely, I, Yod, and H, He (by which are shown wisdom and
knowledge, father and mother), like unto two lovers who embrace each other. (By two lovers are understood
either V, Vau, and I, Yod, onlythat is, at the end; or I, Yod , and H, He, togetherthat is, at the beginning).

[The "path of beauty," or Tiphereth, the sixth Sephira, is sometimes represented by V, Vau, and therefore
sometimes stands for Microprosopus by itself; it is really the central Sephira of the group of six Sephiroth
which compose him. The numerical value of Vau is 6.]

36. (Now the author of the "Siphra Dtzenioutha" hasteneth to the latter explanation of these letters, I, Yod,

SPRA DTzNIOVThA (SIPHRA DTZENIOUTHA); OR, THE BOOK OF CONCEALED MYSTERY. 35


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

and V, Vau; and concerning V, Vau, he saith): Six members are produced from the branch of the root of his
body. (The body is Microprosopus; the root of the body is the mother, who is symbolized by the letter H, He ;
the branch of the root is the letter V, Vau, enclosed and hidden within the letter H, He; and from that very
branch were produced the six membersthat is, the entire letter V, Vau, now having obtained the head.)

[The mother here mentioned is of course the third Sephira, Binah. The six members of Microprosopus
forming the entire letter Vau in an allusion to the numerical value of that letter being 6.]

37. "The tongue speaketh great things" (see Dan, vi. 8. And by the tongue is understood the
foundationnamely, the letter I, Yod, joined with his bride; the speech is the marital influx flowing forth from
the bride; for the queen is called the word; but the great things are the inferiors of all grades produced.) [The
inferiors of all "grades" or "paths" are the Sephiroth in the inferior worlds.]

38. This tongue is hidden between I, Yod, and H, He. (For father and mother are perpetually conjoined in
ISVD, Yesod, the foundation, but concealed under the mystery of Daath or of knowledge.)

[The conjunction of the letters V and H at the end of the Tetragrammaton IHVH is similar to that of I and H
at the beginning.]

39. Because it is written (Isa. xliv. 5): "That man shall say, I am of the Tetragrammaton." (The word ANI,
Ani, I, when the discourse is concerning judgments, pertaineth to the queen. But whensoever mercy is
introduced it referreth to the understanding, like as in this place. In order that the sense may be: The supernal
path, which is called I, or the understanding in act of conjunction with the father, is for the purpose of the
formation of the Tetragrammaton, and this is one conjunction between the father and the mother for the
constitution of the six members.) And that shall be called by the name Jacob, IOQB, Yaqob. (To call by name
is to preserve; and another conjunction of father and mother is introduced for the purpose of preserving the
Microprosopus, which is called Jacob.) And that man shall write with his hand, "I am the Lord's" (To write
belongeth to the written law, or the beautiful path, and the same also signifieth to flow in. "With his hand,"
BIDV, Byodo, is by metathesis BIVD, Byod, by I, Yodthat is, through the foundation; in order that the sense
may be, it may be formed from his influx, so that the Tetragrammaton may be written with I, Yod, as we have
above said.) And by the name of Israel shall he call himself. He shall call himself thus in truth. (For the
conception of the Microprosopus is more properly under the name of Jacob, whose wife is Rachel; and his
cognomen, as it were, is Israel, whose wife is Leah.) [The understanding is Binan, the third Sephira, which is
referred to the supernal H, He, The "beautiful path" is Tiphereth, the sixth. The foundation is Yesod, the
ninth. It is the final Yod, I, of the form of the Tetragrammaton IHVI, which is referred to Yesod, and not the
initial, which belongs to Chokmah, the second Sephira, the Father.]

40. That man shall say, I am the Lord's; he descendeth. (That is: that very conception of the word I, which is
elsewhere attributed to the supernal mother, forasmuch as in her agree the three letters of the word ANI, Ani,
I; namely A, Aleph, is the highest crown; N, Nun, is the understanding itself, in its fifty celebrated gates; I,
Yod, is the foundation or knowledge of the Father; but in this instance it is attributed to the lowest grade of
the lower mother, and now is ADNI, Adonaï, without the D, Daleth, D, or poverty, but filled with the influx,
and is ANI, Ani.) And all things are called BIDV, Byodo (that is, all these things are applied to IVD, Yod,
concerning which this discourse is.) All things cohere by the tongue, which is concealed in the mother. (That
is, through Daath, or knowledge, whereby wisdom is combined with the understanding, and the beautiful path
with his bride the queen; and this is the concealed idea, or soul, pervading the whole emanation.) Since this is
opened for that which proceedeth from itself (that is, Daath is itself the beautiful path, but also the inner,
whereto Moses referreth; and that path lieth hid within the mother, and is the medium of its conjunction. But
whensoever it is considered in the outer, when it hath come forth from the mother, then is it called Jacob.)

[The reader is referred to the Introduction for the names, &c., of the Sephiroth. Nun in its fifty gates refers to

SPRA DTzNIOVThA (SIPHRA DTZENIOUTHA); OR, THE BOOK OF CONCEALED MYSTERY. 36


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

the numerical value of the letter N, which is 50. The "lower mother" is of course the final H of the word
IHVH, the "bride." Daath generally symbolizes the conjunction of the second and third Sephiroth.]

41. (And herein IHV Yod, He, Vau, differeth from the whole name and from all the four letters. Now, he
turneth back to the other portion of the fournamely, IHV, Yod, He, Vauand saith:) The Father resideth in
the beginning (that is, that the letter I, Yod, which is the symbol of the wisdom and of the father, in that part
holdeth the first place, like as in the whole system; since the crown nevertheless is hidden, and is only
compared to the highest apex of the letter I, Yod). The mother in the middle (for the letter H, He, which is the
symbol of the unformed understanding and the supernal mother, holdeth the middle place between I, Yod ,
and V, Vau, even as in the supernals she is comprehended by the Father from above, and by the
Microprosopus, which is her son, she is covered from below, in whom she sendeth herself downward into the
path of Hod, or of glory.) And she is covered on this side and on that (by the two, father and son). Woe, woe
unto him who revealeth their nakedness! (Since this can be done by the faults of the inferiors, so that
Microprosopus loseth this influx, whereby he is of so great power that he can seek to enshroud his mother;
for that covering is the reception of the supernal influx, and the capability of transmitting the same to the
inferiors, which cannot be done if the mother be uncovered and taken away from the Microprosopus, as the
Israelites did when they committed the sin of the calf.

[IHV is of course the Tetragrammaton without the final H. It is interesting to note that in the qabalistical
work called the "Sepher Yetzirah," this trigrammatic name is used instead of the Tetragrammaton. The crown
which is hidden is Kether, the first Sephira, or Macroprosopus, who is AHIH, and is therefore not openly
shown in IHVH. The path of Hod is the eighth Sephira. The father and the son, by whom the mother is
enclosed, are of course the letters I and V in the word IHV. With regard to what is said regarding the
Israelites when they committed the sin of the calf. I imagine that it is intended to intimate(a) That the calf
was a symbol of ALHIM, Elohim, not of IHVH; for the Israelites had said, "Make us Elohim to go before
us." (b) That this name, "Elohim" is applied to the feminine portion of the Tetragrammaton HH. (c) That
therefore the force was unbalanced which they adored, and that it would have been just as wrong to adore IV
alone.)

42. And God said, let there be MARTh, Maroth, lights in the firmament of the heaven. (Now he hasteneth to
the third part of that quadrilateral name, namely, to these two letters IH, Yod, He . But by lights are
understood the sun and the moon, the beautiful path and the kingdom or bride. And herein the sense is this:
although usually by these two letters are accustomed to be understood the Father and the Mother, or the
wisdom and the understanding, yet in this place the supernal lights are wanting, like as the word MARTh,
Maroth, is written in a defective form; and the meaning is proper to be applied unto the firmament of the
heaventhat is, to the foundation, extended and prepared for marital conjunction; for the spouse is called the
heaven, and the member of the treaty is the firmament, like, as, therefore, the two last paths in the whole
name IHVI, Yod, He, Vau, Yod are designated by the letters V, Vau, and I, Yod, so likewise these in this
portion of the square are designated by the letters, I, Yod, and H, He.) The husband hath dominion over the
wife (since it is not written by V, Vau, but by I, Yod, which is the symbol of the member of the treaty, and
herein denoteth the actual combination with the female): like as it is written (Prov. x. 25): "And the just man
is the foundation of the world." (By this saying he illustrateth his meaning; because by the letter I, Yod, is
understood the fundamental member by which the world is preserved in existence.)

(If the reader refers to the Introduction, he will there find in the Table showing the operation of the Sephiroth
in the four worlds. &c., that in the world of Asiah the sun is referred to Tiphereth and the moon to Yesod.
Furthermore, the circumstance of certain words being written defectively or redundantly is commented on in
the Introduction, § 15. The term "square," or "square name." is sometimes applied to the Tetragrammaton.
The phrase "member of the treaty" probably alludes to the symbolism of circumcision. In this sense, I, Yod, in
the path of Yesod, the ninth Sephira, has a symbolical phallic signification.)

SPRA DTzNIOVThA (SIPHRA DTZENIOUTHA); OR, THE BOOK OF CONCEALED MYSTERY. 37


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

43. I, Yod, therefore irradiateth two. (That is, the letter I, Yod, in this square of the Tetragrammaton hath a
double sense of influx, forasmuch as in the first instance it signifieth the father who illuminateth the mother;
and forasmuch as in the second instance it signifieth the Microprosopus, or rather his treaty, which
illuminateth the kingdom.) And (again in another manner) it shineth (that is, and also hath a third
signification, whilst in the complete name it constituteth the last letter), and passeth on into the woman. That
is, and denoteth the bride of Microprosopus, as is shown above, because it is put in the place of the last H,
He, of the Tetragrammaton IHVH; like as also it hath the same power of signification in the connection of the
names of existence and domination in this manner, IAChD, VNHI.)

44. (Now he turneth to the last part of this square, which is I, Yod, alone, and saith), I, Yod, remaineth one and
alone (in order that it may show that all flow out from the one single letter I, Yod, which is in the form of a
point, yet partaking of three parts, concerning which see elsewhere; yet in this place denoting only the
woman, or the kingdom, wherein are contained all the supernals.).

[Yod at the end of the Tetragrammaton denotes the synthesis, the circular movement by which the end returns
to the beginning. In the secret qabalistical alphabet known as the "celestial alphabet," Yod is represented by
three circles at the angles of an equilateral triangle with the apex uppermost. Malkuth, the tenth Sephira, of
course receives the influx of all the other Sephiroth (see Table showing the reception and transmission of the
Sephiroth in the four worlds.]

45. And then (if now the Tetragrammaton be not considered in the manner just described, but in this manner
of instituting the square, IHVI, IHV, IH, I, then Yod also is in a certain sense solitary, but in a plainly contrary
sense. For it ascendeth in its path upwards and upwards. (That is, it doth not so much receive the
higher sense, in order that it may denote the beautiful path or the foundation; but the highest, that is, the
father or the wisdom.) The woman is again hidden. (That is, in this instance, the former meaning by which it
denoted the bride of Microprosopus, namely, the last letter of the above−written form of the Tetragrammaton,
ceaseth in itself.)

(This is in the converse manner. The letter I no longer signifies the bride when it ceases to be the final letter
of a Tetragrammaton.]

46. And the mother is illuminated (that is, in the second part of the ordinary averse Tetragrammaton, which
consists of the letters IH, to the letter I, Yod, which hath the signification of the father, is added the letter H,
He, which is the mother, and because these two are combined by themselves, hence that luminous influence
is denoted wherewith the understanding is imbued by the supernal wisdom); and is opened out into her gates
(that is, if these two letters be bound closely together, then out of the dead the pentad originateth the number
50, by which are denoted the fifty gates of the understanding; these are said to be opened because the letter H,
He , is last and unprotected, not being shut in by any other succeeding letter.)

[This is taking the letters Th separate from the rest of the Tetragrammaton, but themselves conjoined. And as
I = 10 and H = 5, these two conjoined (multiplied together) give N = 50. And these are the fifty gates or
properties of the understanding. These are opened, because in the word IH, Yah, the letter H is last, not being
shut in, as by VH in the Tetragrammaton IHVH, or V in the trigram IHV.]

47. The key is added which containeth six, and closeth its gate. (That is, in the third part of this averse form,
which is IHV, the letter H is not altogether the last; but V, the third letter of the Tetragrammaton, closeth it in
on the other side, whereby are denoted the six members of the Microprosopus, superinvesting the six
members of the mother in such a manner that her last gate, which is the path of glory, HVD, Hod, is closed,
and combined with the remainder, which areBenignity, Severity, Beauty, Victory; drawing their existence
singly out of the decad.)

SPRA DTzNIOVThA (SIPHRA DTZENIOUTHA); OR, THE BOOK OF CONCEALED MYSTERY. 38


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

[In the Trigram IHV, V may be called the key. because it closeth the fifty gates symbolized by IH, by coming
next to H, so as to close or shut in that letter between itself and I. By "the decad" is meant the ten Sephiroth,
which are symbolized by the numerical value of I, which is 10.]

48. And it applieth to the inferiors and to this part. (Or, as others read, "it applieth to this side and to that."
Now, the discourse is concerning the fourth part of the square, where the name is complete, whether written
as H or as I in the last path; so that, nevertheless, the bride of Microprosopus may be added. Therefore on
either side hath Microprosopus a connecting link, for he superinvesteth the mother from the supernal part, so
that he may receive her into himself as his soul; and he also again is covered by his bride from the inferior
part, so that he in his turn may himself become her soul.)

[The bride, the inferior H, He. is said to be a reflection of the mother, the supernal H, He, in the
Tetragrammaton: just as Microprosopus is said to be the reflection of Macroprosopus.]

49. Woe unto him who shall open her gate! (The gates are said to be paths through which influence rusheth
forth; they are said to be closed, because, on the other hand, too much influence cannot be taken away from
the inferiors; wherefore the members are said to be overshadowed by the members, so that the light may
diminish in its transit. But when those very concatenations and cohibitions of the lights are separated by the
sins of the inferiors, no influx can come into the universe in a proper manner.)

[Following out the symbol of the equilibrium in the Sephiroth, the sin of the inferior paths would be the
introduction of unbalanced force. The reader will at first find a little difficulty in following the reasoning of
these last few sections, but after reading them over once or twice, their meaning will seem clearer to him.]

CHAPTER II.
1. The beard of truth. (That is, now followeth a description of the beard of Macroprosopus, and its thirteen
parts, which are more fully described in the "Idra Rabba.")

[The beard is the influx which descends from the first Sephira through all the others. Macroprosopus is of
course, as I have fully explained in the Introduction. the first Sephira, Kether, or the crown; also called the
Ancient One.]

2. Of the beard mention hath not been made. (The correct Mantuan Codex hath this correction, so that the
word DQNA, Deqena, is here inserted in the original text. The meaning is, that Solomon in the "Song of
Songs" maketh mention of all the other members, but not of the beard.) Because this is the ornament of all. (It
is called an ornament because it covereth the rest, just as a garment which ornamenteth the body covereth
that. But this beard covereth not only the Macroprosopus, but also the father and the mother, and descendeth
even unto Microprosopus. Whence, on account of the communication of so copious a light, it hath also itself
been clothed as with a garment with the great reverence of silence.)

(By this beard, covering "not only Macroprosopus, but also the rather and the mother," is meant that, while it
is an important attribute of Macroprosopus (who is, be it carefully remembered by the reader Eheieh, AHIH,
and not IHVH, in which latter name he is only alluded to as "the uppermost point of the letter I, Yod"), it also
extends through the Sephiroth, for it covers the father and the mother (i.e., the second Sephira, Chokmah,
wisdom. and the third Sephira, Binah, understanding, the IH of IHVH). Thus, therefore, though properly
speaking a part of AHIH, and not of IHVH, it extends through the Tetragrammaton IHVH, for it "descendeth
even unto Microprosopus," the next six Sephiroth, the V of IHVH.)

3. From the ears it proceedeth about the circumference of the open space; the white locks ascend and
descend. Into thirteen portions it is distributed in adornment. (Of all these see the explanation in the "Idra

CHAPTER II. 39
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Rabba" and "Idra Zuta.")

[These thirteen divisions of the beard of Macroprosopus are all descanted upon at length in both the "Greater"
and "Lesser Holy Assembly," in the first mentioned of which a chapter is devoted to the consideration of each
division. I therefore shall not need to enter into the subject here. as the reader will find all the information he
requires in the latter part of this volume. By Gematria (see Introduction). the word AChD, Achad, one, unity
= 13. The beard therefore is a glyph of the unity.]

4. Concerning that ornamentation it is written (Jer. ii. 6). "No man passed through it; and where no man
dwelt." Man is without, man is not included therein; much less the male.

[The verse runs in the English version: "Through a land that no man passed through, and where no man
dwelt."]

5. Through thirteen springs are the fountains distributed (by which there is an influx upon Microprosopus and
the inferiors). Four are separately joined together, but nine flow upon the body (or, as others read, by advice
of the correct Mantuan Codex), encircle the garden (that is, the Microprosopus).

[The four, separately joined, probably refer to the four letters of the Tetragrammaton, and the nine to the last
nine Sephirothi.e. , exclusive of Kether. The Garden, or Paradise, is another term expressive of the whole
Sephirotic system in Atziloth the archetypal world.] 6. This ornamentation beginneth to be formed before the
gate of the ears.

7. It descendeth in beauty into the beginning of the lips; from this beginning into that beginning.

8. There existeth a path which goeth out beneath the two galleries of the nostrils, in order that he may seek to
pass over transgression; like as it is written, Prov. xix. 11. "And it is glory to pass over a transgression."

[The parting of the moustache on the centre of the upper lip. "It is his glory to pass over a transgression."]

9. Beneath the lips the beard goeth about into another beginning.

10. Beneath that another path goeth forth.

11. It covereth the approaches to the aromatic beginning which is above.

12. Two apples are beheld, to illuminate the lights.

[The two "apples," or "apple−trees," are the cheeks. Compare with this the imagery of the Song of Solomon.]

13. The influence of all floweth down as far as the heart (therein hang suspended the superiors and the
inferiors).

14. Among those locks which hang down, none shineth forth above another.

15. The lesser cover the throat like an ornament; the greater are restored to perfect proportion.

16. The lips are free on every side. Blessed is he who shall become the receiver of their kisses.

17. In that influence of all stream down thirteen drops of most pure balm.

CHAPTER II. 40
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

18. In this influence all things exist and are concealed.

19. At that time, when the seventh month draweth nigh, those months shall be found to be thirteen (for in the
Codex, so often said to be correct, this word ThRISR, Tharisar, or twelve, is expunged; as if it were then
shown to be a year of thirteen months, according to the number of those thirteen divisions of the influence) in
the supernal world, and the thirteen gates of mercy are opened. At that time (by which principally the day of
expiation is meant, according to that passage of Isaiah, iv. 6): "Seek ye the Lord while He can be found."

[The "thirteen divisions of the influence in the supernal world are of course these thirteen parts of the beard
of Macroprosopus considered in the sense of Atziloth, the archetypal world, the habitation of the pure
Sephiroth alone: "Seek ye the LORD while he may be found."]

20. It is written, Gen. i. 11. "And the Lord said, Let the earth bring forth germination; (let there be) grass
yielding seed." (If here the word IHI, Yehi, "let there be," be inserted, they make nine words.) This is that
which is written: "And humble your bodies in the ninth of the month at even." (This is to be understood
concerning that time concerning which we have spoken above, because then the Lord is to be sought out.)

[VIAMR ALHIM ThDShA HARTz DShA OShB MZRIO ZRO, eight words, to which if IHI be added, we
have nine. The English version = "And God said, Let the earth bring forth grass, the herb yielding seed."]

21. (In that passage, Deut. iii. 24, where it is written): "Adonai Jehovah, thou hast begun to show unto Thy
servant Thy greatness," the name, Tetragrammaton, IHVH existeth perfectly written in its sides. (So that the
name ADNI, Adonai, denoteth the inferior H, He, from the one side; and the points of the name ALHIM,
Elohim, denote the superior H, He, from the other side.)

["In its sides"i.e., in its aspects. The points are the vowel marks.]

22. But here in this progermination of the earth it is not perfect, because IHI, Yehi (let there be), is not
written. (But we read it so that also these letters do not represent a perfect name.)

23. (But therein is represented to us) the superior I, Yod (that is, the mark of supernal mercy, which is that
most holy Ancient One, as the correct Mantuan Codex shows in a marginal note), and the inferior I, Yod (that
is, the mark of inferior mercy, which is Microprosopus with the influence which he hath from
Macroprosopus, which two II, Yods, are also represented in that passage, Gen. ii. 7): VIITzR IHVH,
Vayeyetsir, Yod, He, Vau, He, and Tetragrammaton formed (the supernal I, Yod, (and the inferior I, Yod).

[The only way that I can possibly see that VIITzR IHVH will bear the construction put upon it here is this (in
which an eminent Hebrew scholar, Mr. Mew, agrees with me): V, Vau, and I, Yod, the Yod, ITzR, Yetzer, be
formed (namely, the) IHVH, Tetragrammaton. In this construction the first letter Yod in the word VIITzR is
taken as the object of the verb ITzR, and not as a pronominal prefix. The most holy Ancient One is the origin
of Kether in Ain Soph when in the condition of the Ain Soph Aur (see Introduction), while the inferior Yod is
the symbol of Yesod.]

24. (But in) IHI (besides) the superior and inferior (also existeth) the H, He, between both (like as) a
connexion of perfection (whereby the influx is derived from the Macroprosopus and passed on to the
Microprosopus.)

25. (Wherefore) it is perfect (since it is this name without separation), but it is not turned to every side
(because therein is no symbol of the bride of Microprosopus). (Therefore) this name is taken out from this
place and planted in another (that is, those letters also receive another signification from the inferior paths).

CHAPTER II. 41
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

26. (For) it is written, Gen. ii. 8: "And the Tetragrammaton Elohim planted." (Whereby is understood) that H,
He, which is between the two II, Yods, of the word IHI, Yehi, which in the supernals is) the position of the
nose of the more Ancient One over the Microprosopus (concerning which see further in the "Idra Rabba," §
175). (For this) existeth not without the spirit.

[For this H, He, symbolised in Elohim, is rather the supernal He

alone, than either the inferior He alone, or both conjoined. The nose of Macroprosopus is said in the "Idra
Rabba" to be life in every parti.e., it, the life, existeth not therefore without the influx of the spirit which
rusheth forth therefrom (See ante , Chapter I. § 15.)]

27. Through H, He, therefore, it is perfected (rather by reason of the mother than by reason of the bride, of
whom it is the soul). For the one H, He, is above (namely, designating the first understanding of the
Tetragrammaton; and the other is) the H, He, below (denoting the queen and the bride).

29. Like as it is written, Jer. xxxii. 17: AHH ADNI IHVH, Ahah, Adonai, Yod He Vau He: "Ah, Lord
Jehovah," &c., where there is a cohesion of the connecting links (that is, in the word AHH, Ahah , those two
HH, He's, are combined which elsewhere are the media of the connecting path). For by the spirit is made the
connection of the balanced equilibria (that is, of the combinations as well of the father and mother as of the
Microprosopus and his bride).

29. (Now the author of the "Siphra Dtzenioutha" descendeth to the inferior paths, leaving out Macroprosopus,
and examineth the name IHV, Yod He Vau. In this are represented father and mother and Microprosopus.
And first occurreth) the supernal I, Yod (the symbol of the father), which is crowned with the crown of the
more Ancient One (that is, whose highest apex denoteth the highest crown, or Macroprosopus; or, according
to another reading of the passage, "which is surrounded by the secret things"that is by the influence or beard
of Macroprosopus, which covereth both the father and the mother). it is that membrane of the supernal brain
which, on account of its excellency, both shineth and is concealed. (Concerning this matter further, see the
"Idra Rabba," § 58.)

30. The supernal H, He (then presenteth itself), which is surrounded by the spirit which rusheth forth from the
entrances of the galleries (or the nostrils of Macroprosopus), that it may give life to all things.

P. The supernal V, Vau, is that tremendous flashing flame (which is the beginning of Judgment, seeing that
doubtless hitherto the Microprosopus existeth in the mother) which is surrounded by its crown (namely, the
mother).

32. And after are the letters taken in extended form (so that this name is written at length, in this manner: VV,
Vau, HH, He , IVD, Yod, which form, when it is perfect, is usually called BN, Ben, because its numeration is
52), and in Microprosopus are they comprehended (seeing that then he embraceth his bride).

[See Introduction, page 33, Table showing the writing of the Tetragrammaton in the four worlds.]

33. When (this form) beginneth, they are discovered in the cranium (namely, these letters, and therein are
they distributed in the most supernal part of Macroprosopus).

["In the cranium" (or skull), BGVLGLThA. Begolgoltha, or in Golgoltha. In the New Testament it is worthy
of note that Jesus Christ (the Son) is said to be crucified at Golgotha (the skull): while here, in the Qabalah,
Microprosopus (the Son), as the Tetragrammaton, is said to be extended in the form of a cross, thus

CHAPTER II. 42
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

in Golgotha (the skull). The text above says, at the end of section 33, "of Macroprosopus"; but I think this is
a misprint for "of Microprosopus."]

34. Thence are they extended throughout his whole form (from the original benignity), even to the foundation
of all things (namely, as the soul of the inferiors). 35. When it is balanced in the pure equilibrium (that is,
when the white locks of the most holy Ancient One send down the lights or names) then are those letters
equilibrated. (That is, from their virtue cometh the light.)

[The "lights or names" are the ten Sephiroth and the Divine names associated with them (see Introduction),
which are (with the exception of the first Sephira) comprehended in the Tetragrammaton IHVH.]

36. When he is manifested in Microprosopus (namely, Macroprosopus), in him are those letters, and by them
is he named.

37. IVD, Yod, of the Ancient One, is hidden in its origin (that is, the father, who is usually symbolized by I,
Yod, and is himself also called the Ancient One, is shrouded by the beard of Macroprosopus; or otherwise.
Instead of that manner in which the other two letters duplicate their literal partse.g., HH and VVI, Yod, by
reason of his very nature, cannot be expressed by this duplication, but remaineth one and alone), because the
name is not found; that is, because if II be put, it can no longer be pronounced as I, Yod; therefore is it written
IVD).

[The "Ancient One" is one of the titles of Macroprosopus, the first Sephira. But the letter I, Yod. of the
Tetragrammaton is referred to the second Sephira, Chokmah, which is also called the Father. See
Introduction, § 67.]

38. HA, He, is extended by another (He, as it is written HH in open and plain writing; but also it is sometimes
written in another way, HI, also HA; the one in the name OB, Aub, the other in the name MH, Mah), and in
the feminine symbol it denoteth the two females (namely, the supernal mother and the inferior mother; the
understanding and the kingdom). And it is discovered through the forms. (That is, when the beard of
Macroprosopus, and its forms or parts, send down his light into Microprosopus; then herein is his bride
produced in the light, and the supernal H, He, is reflected by another inferior H, He.)

[See introduction, wherein a table is given showing the writing of the Tetragrammaton in the four worlds.]

39. VV, Vau, is extended by another (Vau, as it is written VV, for likewise it is elsewhere written with I in the
name OB, Aub, and by A in the names SG, Seg, and MH, Mah, in this manner VAV. So also in the name BN,
Ben, it is thus written, VV. But to be disclosed it is fully written). Like as it is written, Cant. vii. 9, "Going
down sweetly to my delight" (whereby "sweetly" are understood these two letters VV properly extended).

[The Authorised Version renders it: "And the roof of thy mouth like the best wine for my beloved, that goeth
down sweetly. causing the lips of those that are asleep to speak."]

40. In that tremendous flashing flame (is he foundi.e., in Microprosopus, seeing that in a lesser degree he
hath in himself unmixed judgments), for the purpose of enshrouding that gate (that is, in order that he may be
advanced to the condition of maturity, and may then superumbrate his mother, who is symbolised by the fifty
gates).

["He," that is the letter V, Vau, of the Tetragrammaton. I have before noticed that the fifty gates of the
understanding are equivalent to I and H, 10 and 5, multiplied together, which yield 50 = numerical value of

CHAPTER II. 43
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

the letter N. Nun.]

41. (He is therefore called) the supernal V, Vau (Daath or knowledge, and) the inferior V, Vau (that is, the
external Microprosopus. And thus also) the supernal H, He (the mother), the inferior H, He (the bride). But I,
Yod, is above all (symbolizing the father), and with him is none other associated; he is I, Yod, as at first;
neither ascendeth he in himself (through the height of the numeration, like as with H, He, the pentad, with
Vau, the hexad, ascend to a similar height) except as a symbolic glyph. (That is, the decad, which is
expressed not in that same letter I, Yod, but by a hexad and a tetrad).

[But Vau, V, is produced by adding the numerical values of I and H (the father and the mother of the
Tetragrammaton), and then taking the last number of the result, thus: I + H = 10 + 5 = 15, and by adding the
digits of 15 together, 1 + 5, we obtain 6 = V, Vau. By the phrase "with H, He, the pentad (5), with V, Vau, the
hexad (6), ascend," is implied the numerical value of those letters taken as symbolical sephirotic glyphs. The
decad is repeated in the word IVD, Yod, by the addition of the last two letters, V and D, which = 6+4 = 10. I,
Yod, again.]

42. For when the double forms are manifested (namely, the letters of the name in the above proposed form, as
HH and VV) and are united in one path, in one combination, in order that they may be explained (that is,
when they are fully written out in the above manner), then VD, Vau, Daleth (and not another I, Yod), are
added unto I, Yod (so that also in it there may be a certain hidden analogy of the equilibrium).

43. Woe! woe! when this is taken away, and when the other two alone are manifested (that is, when from
those two letters VD, in the word IVD, the letter I is taken away; seeing it representeth the abstraction of the
father from the Microprosopus and his bride, who are as yet hidden in the mother, so that the disclosure of
these two is vain and abortive, because the generative power of the father is absent * *) * * *. (Or, in another
sense, if the influx be hindered and the supernal paths suffer disruption). Far, far from us be that effect!

44. (But that this may be done by the sins of the inferiors is clear from these words) Ezek. i. 14: "And the
living creatures rush forth and return." Also Num. xxiv. iii: 'Flee unto thy place." Also Obad. i. 4: "Though
thou exalt thyself as the eagle, and though thou set thy nest among the stars, thence will I cast thee down."

45. (Again it is said) Gen. i. 12: "And the earth brought forth germination." When? When the name is planted
therein (that is, when Microprosopus receiveth his proper conformation, according to the requisite
numbers¢48 of the members, and 365 of the veins.)

[These numbers, 248 and 365, are formed by an elaborate combination of Gematria, too complicated to enter
upon here.]

46. And then the wind bloweth (that is, the vital influx rusheth forth from Macroprosopus) and the spark of
flame is prepared (that is, Microprosopus, who, great as he is, yet is in respect of the superiors only as a spark
compared with fire, as he is produced from that terrific light.)

47. And amid the insupportable brilliance of that mighty light, as it were, the likeness of a head appeareth.
(That is, the highest crown is found in Macroprosopus.)

48. And above him is the plenteous dew, diverse with two−fold colour. (Like as in Macroprosopus it is white
alone, so here it is white and red, on account of the judgments. See "Idra Rabba," § 44.)

[Above Microprosopus, not Macroprosopus.]

49. Three hollow places are manifested, wherein the letters are expressed. (These are to be understood as

CHAPTER II. 44
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

symbolizing his three−fold brain, of wisdom, understanding, and knowledge, which here appear more
plainly; whereas in the supernals they are more concealed.)

["The letters," that is, IHV, the first three letters of the Tetragrammaton.]

50. The black (locks issuing) from the four (sides of the head) float down over the curved openings of the
ears, so that he may not hear.

["So that he may not hear." Remember, this is Microprosopus, or Zauir Anpin. not Macroprosopus, or Arikh
Anpin.] 51. Right and left is here given (in all parts of the face and head).

["Right and left:" that is, Microprosopus is symbolized by a face in full; while in Macroprosopus "all is
right"i.e., he is symbolized by a profile. This and the following sections are considered at length in the "Idra
Rabba Qadisha" ("The Greater Holy Assembly"), and the "Idra Zuta Qadisha" ("The Lesser Holy
Assembly"), to which the reader is referred.]

52. One slender higher path existeth. (The parting of the hair.)

53. His forehead, which shineth not, regulating the far distant future when it is his will to behold the same.
(All the qualities, with their antitheses, which are found in Macroprosopus, are more fully described in the
"Idra Rabba" and "Idra Zuta," which see).

54. His eyes are of triple colour (that is, red, black and gold) so that terror may go before them; and with
glittering glory are they glazed.

55. It is written, Isa. xxxiii. 20: "Thine eyes shall behold Jerusalem at peace, even thy habitation."

56. Also it is written, Isa. i. 21: "Righteousness dwelled in it."

57. The "peaceful habitation" is the Ancient One, who is hidden and concealed. Wherefore "thine eyes" is
written OINK, Auinak (without the letter Yod. All these things are explained in the "Idra Rabba.")

58. There is also the nose, to dignify the face of Microprosopus.

59. Through its nostrils three flames rush forth.

60. The profound path existeth in his ears for hearing both the good and the evil.

61. It is written, Isa. xiii. 8: "I am the Tetragrammaton, that is my name, and my glory I give not to another."
(Now the author of the "Siphra Dtzenioutha" beginneth to explain the ulterior difference between
Microprosopus and Macroprosopus, even as to their appellations; where the word ANI, Ani, "I," in the above
passage referreth to the Microprosopus, since it involveth the idea of the bride.) Also it is written, Deut. xxxii.
39: "I slay, and I make alive." Also it is written, Isa. xlvi. 4: "I will bear, and I will deliver you."

[In the word ANI, Ani, the idea of the bride (Malkuth, the H final of the Tetragrammaton) is implied by the
letter I, Yod, being last, where it symbolizes the ninth Sephira, Yesod, which is the connecting link between
Microprosopus and the queen. Also N, the second letter, symbolizes the conjunction of the father and the
mother, I and H, as I have before observed.]

62. (Now, indeed, Macroprosopus is not so closely known by us as to address us in the first person; but he is
called in the third person, HVA, Hoa, he.) Like as it is said, Ps. c. 3: "He hath made us, and not we

CHAPTER II. 45
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

ourselves." And again in Job xxiii. 13: "And He existeth in the unity, and who can turn Him aside?"

[For Macroprosopus is only the commencement of manifested Deity .]

63. (Therefore in the third person, HVA, Hoa, is He called who is the Concealed One, and is not found of
any. He, who cometh not before the eyes, of man; He, who is not called by the Name.

["He, who is not called by the Name;" for, as I have frequently before noticed, the first Sephira is not
comprehended in the Tetragrammaton.]

64. (Hitherto hath the disquisition been concerning Microprosopus, to whom also was referred that fulness of
form of the letter H, He , wherein it is written by the duplicated HH. But now another point is taken into
consideration, namely, concerning the remaining two modes of writing that letter, when It is written with A,
Aleph, and with I, Yod; of which the former is made in the name MH, Mah, and the latter in the names OB,
Aub, and SG, Seg; which two forms are given conjoined in the name AHIH, Eheieh (translated "I am" in
Exodus). Therefore are to be considered) HA and HI. (Whilst, therefore, it is written HA, this form can be
resolved into HVA, Hoa, he, that pronoun of the third person concerning which mention hath been made
above: because A, Aleph, in itself containeth V, Vau; to which latter letter the middle line, in the form of the
character of the letter Aleph, can be assimilated. And thus, while it is written HA, the word HVA can be
symbolized; but not vice versâ. For although) V in itself containeth A (because the figure of the letter A may
be said to be composed of VIV, if its middle line be divided; so, that also, without taking the whole character
A into consideration, it may be read HV: this HV) nevertheless doth not contain in itself any real form of
writing H, so that it can be read HV or HI.

[The reader must remember that the argument in this section is concerning the shape of the Hebrew letters
mentioned, alone, and that neither their numerical value nor articulate power is taken into consideration. The
shape of the Hebrew letters can be seen in the Table of the Alphabet.]

65. (Moreover, in that same form of writing HA, like as A passeth into V, so that HVA, Hoa, may be read: so
also) A is pronounced Aleph (and this is the second way of pronouncing the writing HA, which simply is
referred unto MH, Mah. But, moreover, also) Aleph is pronounced as IVD, Yod (because the form of the
letter A is usually resolved into these three letters, so that Yod may be above, Vau in the middle, and
Daleth below. So that same written form HA in itself comprehendeth also that sublimer triune idea. But not
vice versâ, from HI is HA to be understood, for I, Yod, is not pronounced Aleph; but IVD is pronounced as I,
Yod , which is concealed with all concealments, and to which VD are not joined (like as that form is to be
found in the shape of the letter Aleph.)

[H, He, in Hebrew is the definite article; so that H−A may be read He−Aleph, the Aleph.]

66. (But this form, which in itself includeth V, Vau, and D, Daleth, is usual in the inferior paths, and also in
the father. And) Woe! when I, Yod, irradiateth not the letters V, Vau , and D, Daleth; (and much more) when
I, Yod, is taken away from V, Vau, D, Daleth, through the sins of the world; (because then) the nakedness of
them all is discovered.

67. Therefore it is written, Lev. xviii. 7: "The nakedness of thy father thou shalt not uncover." (For VD, Vau
Daleth are the same as H, He; and when it is written IVD, it is the same as if it were called IH (namely if V,
Vau, be inserted in D, Daleth ). Woe! when Yod is taken away from He (that is, wisdom from understanding,
which is the conceiving mother) because it is written, Lev. xviii. 7. "And the nakedness of thy mother thou
shalt not uncover; she is thy mother, thou shalt not uncover her nakedness." Revere her; she is thy mother;
because it is written, Prov. ii. 3: "Because thou shalt call understanding thy mother." (This is arrived at by
reading the word AM in this passage with the pointing Tsere, instead of with the usual Chireq pointing.)

CHAPTER II. 46
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

["VD = H." This is again referring to the shape of the letter in question.]

[I have already stated in the Introduction, for the benefit of those of my readers who are not Hebrew or
Chaldee scholars. that the Hebrew alphabet is chiefly consonantal, the vowels being supplied by small points
or marks placed close to the letters.]

CHAPTER III.
1. Nine are said to be the conformations of the beard (of Microprosopus). For that which remaineth concealed
(that is, the other four forms, which meanwhile are not found in Microprosopus), and which is not
manifested, is supernal and venerable (that is, properly and of itself doth not refer to Microprosopus, but
nevertheless descendeth upon him in another manner).

[It must be remembered that the beard of Macroprosopus had thirteen divisions, therefore the other four
forms are the difference between the nine of Microprosopus and the thirteen of Macroprosopus.]

2. Thus, therefore, is this most excellent beard arranged. The hairs overhang the hairs from before the
opening of the ears, even unto the beginning of the mouth. (This is the first conformation.)

3. From the one beginning even unto the other beginning (of the mouth. This is the second
conformationnamely, the beard on the upper lip).

4. Beneath the two nostrils existeth a path filled with hairs, so that it appeareth not. (This is the third
conformation.)

5. The cheeks extend on one side and on the other. (This is the fourth conformation.)

6. In them appear apples red as roses. (This is the fifth conformation.)

7. In one tress hang down those hairs strong and black, even unto the breast. (This is the sixth conformation.)

8. Red are the lips as roses, and bare. (This is the seventh conformation.)

9. Short hairs descend through the place of the throat and cover the position of the neck. (This is the eighth
conformation.) 10. Long and short descend alike. (This is the ninth conformation.)

11. Whosoever is found among them, is found strong and robust. (That is, he who directeth his meditations
herein.)

12. It is written, Ps. cxviii, 4: "I called upon Yah, IH, in distress." (In this place) David commemorateth
(these) nine (conformations) even unto (those words) "all nations compassed me about," in order that they
(the nine above mentioned) might surround and protect him.

13. (It is written, Gen. i. 12) "And the earth brought forth germination, the herb yielding seed after its kind;
and the tree bearing fruit, whose seed is therein, according to its kind."

14. Those nine (paths of Microprosopus) are evolved from the perfect name (that is, from the understanding
or mother, in whom they were conceived; for unto her pertaineth the name IHVH, which is Tetragrammaton
expressed and Elohim hidden, which form the nine in power). And thence are they planted into the perfect
name, like as it is written, Gen. ii. 8: "And IHVH ALHIM planted" (that is, these nine letters of the perfect
masculine and feminine name, so that they may be a gardenthat is, Microprosopus in action).

CHAPTER III. 47
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

[By the expression "Tetragrammaton expressed and Elohim hidden," is meant that the former is written with
the vowel points of the latter. They "form nine in power," because the four letters IHVH together with the
five letters ALHIM make nine.]

15. The conformations of the beard (of Microprosopus) are found to be thirteen when that which is superior
becometh inferior. (That is, whensoever the beard of Macroprosopus sendeth down its light. But in the
inferior (that is, Microprosopus taken by himself), they are beheld in nine (parts of that form).

16. The twenty−two letters are figured forth in their colour; not only when the law is given forth in black fire
upon white fire, but also in ordinary writings, because this beard is black.)

[The number of the letters of the Hebrew alphabet is twenty−two. "Black fire" and "white fire" are the
colours of the beards of Microprosopus and of Macroprosopus respectively.]

17. Concerning this (beard, that is understood which is said) concerning him who in his sleep beholdeth the
beard. "When any one dreameth that he taketh the upper beard of a man in his hand, he hath peace with his
Lord, and his enemies are subject unto him."

[By the "upper beard" is meant the moustache.]

18. Much more (if he seeketh to touch) the supernal beard. For the inferior light, taking its rise from the
supernal light which existeth within the benignity (thus the beard of Macroprosopus is entitled), is called in
Microprosopus the benignity in a more simple manner; but when it hath its action within the light, and it
shineth; then is it called abounding in benignity. (Others read this passage thus:He who dreameth that he
toucheth the moustache of a man with his hand, he may be sure that be hath peace with his Lord, and that his
enemies are subject unto him. If that happeneth because he beholdeth in sleep such a thing as this only, much
more shall it occur if he be found sufficiently worthy to behold what the supernal beard may be. For this,
seeing that it is the superior, and is called the benignity, irradiateth the inferior. But in Microprosopus, &c.]

19. It is written, Gen. 1. 20: "Let the waters bring forth the reptile of a living Soul" (Ch−IH, Chiah, living
creature is to be here noted).

(To this section belongs the annotation which is placed at the end of this chapter; which see.)

20. Like as it is said IH, Yah (Ch−IH, Chiah, the corrected Mantuan Codex hath it, so that it may explain the
word ChIH, Chiah, living creature, out of the eighth path of the understanding, which is that water of the
name Yah, which denoteth father and mother. For when) the light of the former is extended unto the latter
(which is the moving of the water) all things reproduce their kind at one and the same timethe waters of
good and the waters of evil. (That is, there is reproduction as well in divinity and sanctity as among terrestrial
living creatures and man; for by the reptile form souls are symbolized.)

21. (For) while it saith: IShRTzV, Yeshratzu, "Let them bring forth abundantly," they have vital motion; and
the one form is at once included in the other form; the living superior, the living inferior; the living good, the
living evil.

22. (So also it is written, Gen. i. 26) "And Elohim said, Let us make man." (Where) it is not written HADM,
Ha−Adam, "this man"; but Adam, man, simply, in antithesis of the Higher One who hath been made in the
perfect name.

[Regarding the "form of the heavenly man, see Introduction, § 55.]

CHAPTER III. 48
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

23. When that one was perfected, this one also was perfected; but perfected as male and female, for the
perfecting of all things.

24. (When therefore it is said) IHVH, Yod, He, Vau, He (then is expressed), the nature of the male. (When)
ALHIM, Elohim (is joined therewith, there is expressed), the nature of the female (who is called the
kingdom).

["The female who is called the kingdom," i.e., Malkuth, the tenth Sephira.]

25. (Therefore) was the male extended, and formed with his members (in order that he might have), as it
were, regenerative power.

[The "members of the male" are the six Sephiroth which together form Microprosopus.]

26. By means of this regenerative power those kings, who had been destroyed, were herein restored, and
obtained stability. (For when the lights were sent down through narrow channels in less abundance, the
inferior intelligences could take possession of them.)

[The "kings who had been destroyed" are the "Edomite kings;" the "worlds of unbalanced force," "who could
not subsist because the form of the heavenly man" was not as yet. See Introduction, § 41. 56.]

27. The rigours (of judgments, which are symbolized by those kings), which are masculine, are vehement in
the beginning; but in the end they are slackened. In the female the contrary rule obtaineth.

28. (We have an example of this in this form of the name) VIH (where the male hath two letters, and the
female one only; and the masculine also the letter in the beginning long, and afterwards short. But also in this
form) the channels of connection are shrouded beneath His covering (that his, the supernal letters are
doubtless connected in marital conjunction, but they are enshrouded in the letter Vau. And) Yod (is in this
place) small, (a symbol of the foundation; because) in the very form (of the female, that is, even as he is
hidden within H, He, which also is not the supernal but the inferior H, He) he is found. (And all are
judgments, because the supernal influx is wanting.)

29. But if (these) judgments are to be mitigated, necessarily the Ancient One is required (that is, the first
letters of the Tetragrammaton, denoting, IH, Yah, the father together with the crown, which is the apex of the
primal letter, and is called Macroprosopus.)

30. The same species of rigours and judgments occurred in the inferiors. For like as to the He of the bride, are
added the two letters Yod and Vau, under the idea of the leviathan; (so) the serpent came upon the woman,
and formed in her a nucleus of impurity, in order that he might make the habitation evil. 31. Like as it is
written., Gen. iv. 1: "And she conceived and brought forth ATh QIN, Ath Qain, Cain, (that is) the nucleus
QINA, Qaina, of the abode of evil spirits, and turbulence, and evil occurrences." (See further in the "Treatise
of the Revolutions of the Soul.")

[The "Treatise of the Revolutions of the Soul" is not published in this volume.]

32. (But this name VIH) is restored (if it be written IHV; and thus) in that man (the supernal, concerning
whom it hath been spoken above; and also) in those two (namely, the father and the mother, also in the
androgynous Microprosopus; and also partly) in genus (seeing that Vau alone symbolizeth both the
Microprosopus and his bride) and in species (seeing that Yod and He are placed separately as father and
mother).

CHAPTER III. 49
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

33. (But just as much) are they contained in the special (representation of those spouses, as) also in the
general (that is, as much in father and mother as in Microprosopus with his bride); legs and arms right and
left (that is, the remaining numerations, collected together in two lateral lines, with the middle line
representing Vau and Yod.)

34. (But) this (that is, the supreme equality) is divided in its sides, because Yod and He are placed expressly
as the father and the mother; but in another equality) the male is conformed with the female (like an
androgyn, because the last He is not added. Whence are made) IHV.

35. I, Yod, is male (namely, the father); H, He, is female (namely, the mother); V, Vau (however, is
androgynous, like as) it is written, Gen. v. 2: "Male and female created He them, and blessed them, and called
their name Adam."

36. (Thus also) the form and person of a man was seated upon the throne; and it is written, Ezek. i. 26: "And
upon the likeness of the throne was the likeness as the appearance of a man above it." [This piece alludes to
the Tetragrammaton itself, showing the hieroglyphic form of a man: the I = head, H = arms, V = body, and H
= legs. See Introduction and Table of Alphabet.]

ANNOTATION.

(Belonging to § 19, foregoing.)

1. Another explanation. "Let waters bring forth abundantly." In this place, in the Chaldee paraphrase, it is
said IRChShVN, which hath a general meaning of movement. As if it should be said: "When his lips by
moving themselves and murmuring, produced the words, like a prayer from a righteous heart and pure mind,
the water produced the living soul." (The meaning is concerning the act of generating life.)

2. And when a man wishes to utter his prayers rightly before the Lord, and his lips move themselves in this
manner, (his invocations) rising upward from him, for the purpose of magnifying the majesty of his Lord
unto the place of abundance of the water where the depth of that fountain riseth and floweth forth (that is,
understanding emanating from wisdom); then (that fountain floweth forth plentifully, and) spreadeth abroad
so as to send down the influx from the Highest, downwards from that place of abundance of water, into the
paths singly and conjointly, even unto the last path; in order that her bountiful grace may be derived into all
from the highest downwards.

[H, He, the supernal mother.]

3. Then indeed is such a man held to intertwine the connecting links of (them) all, namely, those connecting
links of true and righteous meditation; and all his petitions shall come to pass, whether his petition be made in
a place of worship, whether in private prayer.

["Such a man"i.e., a righteous man, when praying sincerely. "Links of them"i.e., the paths.] 4. But the
petition, which a man wisheth to make unto his Lord can ordinarily be propounded in nine ways.

5. Either (1) by the alphabet, or (2) by commemorating the attributes of the most holy and blessed God,
merciful and gracious, &c. (according to the passage in Exodus xxxiv. 6, &c.); or (3) by the venerable names
of the most holy and blessed God; such are these: AHIH, Eheieh (in respect of the Crown), and IH, Yah (in
respect of the Wisdom); IHV, Yod He Vau (in respect of the Understanding); AL, El (in respect of the
Majesty); ALHIM, Elohim (in respect of the Severity); IHVH, Yod He Vau He (in respect of the Beauty);
TzBAVTh, Tzabaoth (in respect of the Victory and the Glory); ShDI, Shaddai (in respect of the Foundation);
and ADNI, Adonai (in respect of the Kingdom). Or (4) by the ten Sephiroth or numerations, which are:

CHAPTER III. 50
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

MLKVTh, Malkuth, the Kingdom; ISVD, Yesod, the Foundation; HVD, Hod, the Glory; NTzCh, Netzach ,
the Victory; ThPARTh, Tiphereth, the Beauty; GBVRH, Geburah , the Severity; ChSD, Chesed, the
Benignity; BINH, Binah, the Understanding; ChKMH, Chokhmah, the Wisdom; and KThR, Kether, the
Crown. Or (5) by the commemoration of just men, such as are patriarchs, prophets, and kings. Or (6) by those
canticles and psalms wherein is the true Qabalah. And (7), above all these, if any one should know how to
declare the conformations of his Lord, according as it is honourable to do. Or (8) if he may know how to
ascend from that which is below to that which is above. Or (9) those who know also how to derive the influx
from the highest downward. And in all these nine ways there is need of very great concentration of attention;
because if he doeth not that, it is written concerning him, 1 Sam. ii. 30: "And they that despise Me shall be
lightly esteemed."

["(1) by the alphabet"i.e., according to the mystic qabalistico, theosophic values of the letters. (2) Exod.
xxxiv. 6, 7: "And the LORD passed by before him, and proclaimed, The LORD, the LORD God, merciful
and gracious, long−suffering and abundant, in goodness and truth, keeping mercy for thousands, forgiving
iniquity and transgression and sin, and that will by no means clear the guilty; visiting the iniquity of the
fathers upon the children, and upon the children's children, unto the third and to the fourth generation." (3) By
the Divine Names associated with the Sephiroth. (4) The ten Sephiroth. (5) Those analogous to his desire. (6)
Phrases bearing on the subject. (7) The qabalistical development of Deity. (8) By the paths. (9) The converse
of (8).]

6. Hereto also pertaineth the meditation of the word Amen, AMN! which in itself containeth the two names
IHVH, ADNI, Yod He Vau He Adonaï (the numeration of the former alone, and of these two together
yielding the same, 91); of which the one concealeth its goodness and benediction in that treasury which is
called HIKL, He−yekal, the palace. (Which word by equality of numeration is the same as ADNI, Adonaï,
but this name is said to be the palace of Tetragrammaton, because, in the first place it is pronounced by its
aid; also, in the second place, it is mingled with it alternately, letter by letter, in this wayIAHDVNHI.

[A + M + N = 1 + 40 + 50 = 91. I + H + V + H + A + D + N +I = 10 + 5 + 6 + 5 + 1 + 4 + 50 + 10 = 91.
Again: H + I + K + L = 5 + 10 + 20 + 30 = 65. A + D + N + I = 1 + 4 + 50 + 10 = 65. The Jews, when they
come to the word IHVH in reading the Scriptures, either do not pronounce it at all and make a slight pause, or
else substitute for it the word Adonaï, ADNI.]

7. And this is pointed out in that saying, Hab. ii. 20: "But the Lord is in His holy temple; let all the earth keep
silence before Him." (HIKL, Ha−yekal, "the temple, or palace;" HS, Hes, "keep silence;" and ADNI, Adonaï,
"Lord;" all have the same numerationnamely, 65.)

[H + S = 5 + 60 = 65.]

8. For which reason our wise men of pious memory have said mystically, that every good thing of a man is in
his house; according to that which is written, Num. xi., 7: "He is faithful in all Mine house." Which is the
same as if it were said "in all which is with Me."

9. But if any man attentively meditateth on the nine divisions of these forms (see § 5 ante), like as it is meet
to do; that man is one who honoureth the Name of his Lord, even the Holy Name. And hereunto belongeth
that which is written, 1 Sam. ii. 30: "Since those who honour Me will I honour; and they that despise Me shall
be lightly esteemed." I will honour him in this world, that I may preserve him, and provide him with all
things of which he hath need, in order that all nations of the earth may see that the Name of the Lord is called
upon by him; and that they may fear him. And in the world to come he shall be found worthy to stand in the
tabernacle of the righteous.

10. Wherefore such an one seeketh nothing of which he hath need, because he is kept under the special

CHAPTER III. 51
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

providence of his Lord, and can meditate concerning Him, as it is right to do.

11. But what is to be understood by that passage"And they that despise Me shall be lightly esteemed?" Such
an one is that man who can neither institute the union of the Holy Name, nor bind together the links of truth,
nor derive the supernals into the position required, nor honour the Name of his Lord. Better were it for that
man had he never been created, and much more for that man who doth not attentively meditate when he saith
Amen!

12. For which reason, concerning that man especially who moveth his lips (in prayer), with a pure heart
(meditating) on those purifying waters, in that passage expressly and clearly written, Gen. i. 26: "And the
Elohim said, Let us make man." As if it were said concerning such a man who knew how to unite image and
likeness, as it is right: And they shall have dominion over the fish of the sea, &c.

Hereunto is the annotation.

CHAPTER IV.
1. THE Ancient One is hidden and concealed; the Microprosopus is manifested, and is not manifested.

[The "Ancient One" is Kether. Eheieh, Macroprosopus, the Vast Countenance. See introduction, §§, 42, 77.]

2. When he is manifested, he is symbolized by the letters (in the ordinary form in which the Tetragrammaton
is written).

3. When he is concealed, he is hidden by the letters which are not disposed according (to the proper order) of
the letters, or (according to another reading of this passage) in their proper place; because also in him their
superiors and inferiors are not rightly disposed (because of the disturbed transpositions).

4. In Gen. i. 24 it is written: "The earth brought forth the living creature after its kind, cattle and reptile," &c.
Hereunto belongeth that which is written, Ps. xxxv. 7: "O Lord, thou shalt preserve both man and beast."

5. The one is contained under the general meaning of the other, and also the beast under the general idea of
the man (on account of the mystery of the revolution of the soul).

6. (And hereunto pertaineth that passage) Levit. i. 2: "When a man shall bring from among you an offering
unto the Lord, &c. Ye shall offer, &c." Because animals are included under the generic term man.

7. When the inferior man descendeth (into this world), like unto the supernal form (in himself), there are
found two spirits. (So that) man is formed from two sidesfrom the right and from the left.

8. With respect unto the right side he had NShMThA QDIShA, Neschamotha Qadisha, the holy intelligences;
with respect unto the left side, NPSh ChIH, Nephesh Chiah, the animal soul.

[These answer to the right and left pillars of the Sephiroth. See Introduction.]

9. Man sinned and was expanded on the left side; and then they who are formless were expanded also. (That
is those spirits of matter, who received dominion in the inferior paths of the soul of Adam, whence arose base
concupiscence.) When (therefore) both were at once joined together (namely by base concupiscence, together
with connexion, and the animal soul) generations took place, like as from some animal which generateth
many lives in one connexion.

CHAPTER IV. 52
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

10. (There are given) twenty−two letters hidden and twenty−two letters manifested (which are the symbols of
those sublime forms).

11. (The one) Yod is concealed; the other is manifested. (The one is the understanding or mother, the other is
the kingdom or queen; so that at the same time it looketh back to the superior paths.) But that which is hidden
and that which is manifest are balanced in the equilibrium of forms. (That is, masculine and feminine; the
one, the father and the mother; the other, the foundation and the queen; meaning principally the female idea,
which includeth form and receptacle.)

12. Out of Yod are produced male and female (if, namely, it be fully written as IVD, Yod, they are then its
augment), Vau and Daleth. In this position Vau is male, and Daleth is female. And hence arise DV, the two
letters which are the duad male and female; and not only the duad, but also the co−equal duads (of the
superior and inferior conjunctions).

13. Yod by itself is male (the father); He, female (the mother).

14. H, He, at first was D, Daleth; but after it was impregnated by I, Yod (so that thence it might produce the
form Hnamely the I, Yod, placed at the left hand lower part of Daleth) it brought forth V, Vau. (That is, the
mother impregnated by the father produced Microprosopus. But in the shape of the letter out of that minute I,
Yod, which is hidden within the H, He, V, Vau, is said to be formed. Or from the upper horizontal line of the
letter H, which is one V, Vau, and from the right−hand vertical line, which is another V, Vau, and from the
inserted I, Yod, is made VIV, the full form of letter Vau .)

[This is again referring to the shape of the letter. See Table of the Alphabet for Hebrew form.]

15. Whence it is plain that in the letter H, He, are hidden the letters D, Daleth, V, Vau; and in IVD, Yod, is
hidden H: whence are formed IHV. Therefore it appeareth that IVD in its own form containeth IHV,
whensoever it is fully written by IVD, which are male and female (namely I, Yod, male, and V, Vau, D,
Daleth, in the form, H, He, female); hence is compounded (the son, who is) V, Vau, and who overshadoweth
his mother. (That is V placed after H, so that IHV may form the father, the mother, and Microprosopus.)

16. (Therefore in the letter IVD, Yod, and in the name IHI are hidden two males and two females, which is
symbolized in that saying, Gen. vi. 2: "And the sons of the Elohim beheld (the plural in its least form
denoteth two) the daughters of men" (and this also). This explaineth on this account that which is written,
Josh. ii. 1: "Two men as Spies, saying" (hence is revealed the mystery of the two men). But how (is it proved
that two females are understood) by the words, "Daughters of men?" Because it is written, 1 Kings iii. 16:
"Then came there two women unto the king."

17. Of these it is written, ibid. 28: "Because they saw that the wisdom of Elohim was in him." (Here are
involved the two males, in the wisdom, the father; in Solomon, Microprosopus. Therefore) then came they
(even the two women, the understanding and the queen) and not before.

18. In the palace of the union of the fountains (that is, in the world of creation) there were two connexions by
conjunctions among the supernals; these descended from above, and occupied the earth; but they rejected the
good part, which in them was the crown of mercy; and were crowned with the cluster of grapes. (That is
instead of benignity, they were surrounded with judgments and rigours. Which also can be explained
concerning Microprosopus and his bride, first in the mother, and afterwards in the existences below, and in
exile with surrounding rigours and severities.)

[Referring to the previous symbolical explanation of Joshua ii, 1.]

CHAPTER IV. 53
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

19. (Also we find these two equations in that saying) Exod. xiv. 15: "And the Lord said unto Moses (who is
referred to the mother), Why criest thou unto Me?" (But also a cry is referred to the mother, just as a groan is
to the beautiful path, and an exclamation to the kingdom. But) ALI, Eli, unto me (note this is the same as,
"and unto I, Yod;" or the father). "Speak unto the children of Israel (the speech is the queen; Israel is the
beautiful path) that they set forward." Wherein note well the word VISOV, Vayesaau, "that they set forward,"
wherein are VI masculine letters; SO feminine letters).

["But also a cry, &c." Meaning the three Sephiroth, Binah, Tiphereth, and Malkuth.]

20. From above the power of life flowed down in equilibrium, for he entreated the influence of the Venerable
One.

["The Venerable One"i.e., the first Sephira, proceeding from the AIN SVP AVR, Ain Soph Aur. See
Introduction.)

21. Hereunto also pertaineth that passage, Exod. xv. 26: "And if thou shalt do right in His eyes, and shalt
hearken unto His precepts, and shalt keep all His statutes." (Where in the last word also two equations are
placed.) "Because I am the Lord thy God who healeth thee." (Note this, because again here is hidden the
mystery of the understanding and the wisdom, of the path of beauty and of the congregation of Israel.)

CHAPTER V.
1. (It is written) Isa. i. 4: "Woe unto the sinful nation, unto the people heavy with iniquity, unto the seed of
evildoers, &c." (Here the author of the "Siphra Dtzenioutha" reasoneth concerning the small word HVI,
"woe," which also is a form of the name. And this word is alone separated from the following portions of the
sentence.)

2. Seven are the paths (if the Tetragrammaton, be written in this way partially complete), IVD, HH, V, H,
(where the father and mother are written in full, Microprosopus and his bride are written uncovered. If here
the last and first letters be combined, and the penultimate and second, and therefore the paths at either
extremity, so that they may form the letters) HI and VV (mother and son), then are produced (the three
middle letters) HH, D (which are the symbols of the queen, heavy with judgments. But if mother and
daughter be combined) HVI and HH, (then) is produced forth VV (or Microprosopus)as well as DV (or the
androgyn, who also is a condition of judgments), for occultly Adam is denoted, or the male and female, who
are that DV concerning whom it is written (in the place cited above) "corrupt children."

3. (When it is said) BRAShITh, BRA, Berashith bera, "In the beginning created," (the supernal paths are
under stood. For) BRAShITh, Berashith, is the speech (one of the ten rules of Genesis), but BRA, Bera, is the
speech halved. (But there are here understood) Father and Son, the hidden and the manifest. (And also)

4 The superior Eden is hidden and concealed. (That is, no mention is made of the crown.) The inferior Eden
cometh forth so that it may be transferred (towards the inferiors) and manifested (through the voice of its
original, which denoteth wisdom.)

["No mention made of the crown"i.e., Kether, the first Sephira, Macroprosopus.]

5. For the name (Tetragrammaton) IHVH, Yod, He, Vau , He, includeth the name IH, Yah, (which is of the
father, and the name) ALHIM, Elohim (which here followeth in the text, and pertaineth unto the mother).

6. ATh, Ath (the fourth word of this text, which in another manner signifieth the name) ADNI, Adonaï,
"Lord" (namely, the path of the kingdom; also the name) AHIH, Eheieh (that is, the path of the crown, and

CHAPTER V. 54
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

this symbolizeth in itself the two extreme paths; here denoteth) the right and the left (that is, benignity and
severity), which are united in one (equilibrium).

[Ath, ATh, means "the," "the very substance of." Qabalistically it signifies "the beginning and the end," and is
like the term "Alpha and Omega" used in the Apocalypse. For as Alpha and Omega are respectively the first
and last letters of the Greek alphabet, so are Aleph and Tau of the Hebrew. The "two extreme paths" are the
crown, Kether, and the kingdom, Malkuth, the first and tenth Sephiroth. the highest and the lowest,
Macroprosopus, and the queen. If the reader turn to the introduction, to the Table showing the Sephiroth
arranged in three pillars, he will see that Malkuth is, as it were, the antithesis of Kether; and hence it is said
that "Malkuth is Kether after another manner." And this recalls the precept of Hermes in the Smaragdine
Tablet "That which is below is like that which is above, and that which is above is like that which is below."]

7. HShMIM, Ha−Shamaim, "the heavens" (the fifth word of this text, and) VATh, Vaath, "and the substance
of" (the sixth word; they are referred unto the paths of beauty and victory) like as it is written, 1 Chron. xxix.
11: "And the beauty and the victory." These paths are joined together in one.

["The beauty and the victory" are Tiphereth and Netzach, the sixth and seventh Sephiroth.]

8. HARTz, Haaretz, "the earth" (the seventh word of this beginning denoteth the queen joined together with
the glory and the foundation), like as it is written, Ps. Viii. 2: "How magnificent (this is the path of glory) is
Thy name in all the world" (whereby is symbolized the foundation); the earth which is the kingdom. Also)
Isa. vi. 3: "The whole earth is full of His glory" (where these three paths again concur).

9. "Let there be a firmament in the midst of the waters," "to make a distinction between the Holy Place and
between the Holy of Holies." (That is, between Microprosopus and Macroprosopus.)

10. The Most Ancient One is expanded into Microprosopus (or the Crown into the Beauty), and adhereth
(unto it, so that it may receive increase. If) it be not perfectly expanded (so that Microprosopus as it were
existeth by himself, but instead is retained in his mother's womb) the mouth speaking great things moveth in
that place (that Microprosopus, so that he may be fully born), and he is crowned with the lesser crowns under
the five divisions of the waters. (That is, Microprosopus receiveth the influx of the five benignities, which are
called "crowns," because they descend from the crown, or Macroprosopus; but "lesser crowns," because they
take their rise from benignity in the Microprosopic Path; and they are called the five divisions of the waters,
because the water belongeth unto the benignity, and in this verse, (Gen. i. 6, 7, the word MIM, Meim, waters,
filleth the fifth place). 11. Like as it is written, Num. xix. 17: "And shall pour upon him living waters in a
vessel." (But the life looketh towards the mother; and it) is (understood to be that path which is called)
ALHIM , Elohim Chiiim, "the Elohim of life;" and the king of the universe (that is, the understanding.
Whereunto belong also the following sayings:) Ps. cxvi. v. 9: "I will walk before the Lord in the lands of
life." Also 1 Sam. 29: "And the soul of my Lord shall be bound in the quiver of life." Also Gen. ii. 9: "And
the tree of life in the midst of the garden." (All these, I say, refer unto the understanding, from which the six
members receive the influx. And to it also pertain the following names, namely, the name) IH,
Yah (whensoever it is written in full with A in this manner:) IVD HA, Yod Ha (and containeth the number of
the numeral powers of the letters of the Tetragrammaton, namely, 26; unto which also is referred that form of
the name belonging unto the intelligence), AHII, Eheii (where in the place of the final He, Yod is put, as in a
former instance. (See Chap. I, § 32.)

[In the Hebrew, ChIIM, Chiim, "living"; in our version of the Old Testament it is translated "running water."
Chiim is plural.]

12. Between the waters and the waters. (Since there are the superior) perfect waters, and (those which are in
Microprosopus) imperfect waters (or those mingled with severities; because in another manner it is said)

CHAPTER V. 55
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

perfect compassion, imperfect compassion. (Now followeth a mystical explanation of Gen. vi. 3.)

13. And the Tetragrammaton hath said: "My spirit shall not strive with man for ever, seeing that he also is in
the flesh." (In this passage, when it is said:) "And the Tetragrammaton hath said," (it is to be noted that) after
that there was formed (the supernal structure), in the last place concerning Microprosopus (this name is
understood). For when it is said, "He calleth this also by the name," the Ancient One speaketh occultly in a
hidden manner.

[The Ancient One is symbolized by the pronoun He in the sentence, "He calleth this also by the name."]

14. "My spirit shall not strive with man." (Here is understood, not the spirit of Microprosopus, but) that
which is from the supernals, because from that spirit which rusheth forth from the two nostrils of the nose of
Macroprosopus the influx is sent down unto the inferiors.

15. And because it is written (in the same place) "And his days shall be a hundred and twenty years," I, Yod,
is either perfect (whensoever its singular parts exist in the form of decads) or imperfect (when they are in
monads or units). When (therefore Yod (is placed by itself) alone (it is understood to be perfect, because in
itself it containeth) a hundred. (But if) two letters (are put, then are understood the ten units) twice reckoned;
(hence are produced) the hundred and twenty years.

[The "singular parts" of Yod are the numbers from one to ten, for the number of Yod is ten. But when Yod is
taken as its square I x I = 10 x 10 = 100. But II = I x I + I + I (or the two letters both multiplied and added
together) = 10 x 10+ 10+ 10 = 120. But when Yod = 100, its digits are tens and not unitsnamely, the
numbers 10, 20, 30, &c., instead of 1, 2, 3, &c.]

16. Yod is alone whensoever he is manifested in Microprosopus (that is when the lights of Macroprosopus
descend into Him, then indeed the paths of the decads are increased, and this decad) is increased into ten
thousands (by the paths joined with the four letters of the Tetragrammaton) of years. (But) hence (if it be
conceived only according unto the power of Macroprosopus, it hath that position) which is written, Ps.
cxxxix. 5; "And thou shalt place upon me thine hand:" KPKH, Khephakha. (Where this word KPKH, if it be
written according to the usual custom KPK, Khephakh, yieldeth the number 120. But now by adding the
paragogic H of the female, there is given the number 125, on account of the five severities.)

["This decad is increased into ten thousand by the paths joined with the four letters of the Tetragrammaton
"i.e., the paths are the Sephiroth = the numbers from one to ten; and they are said to be joined with the four
letters by multiplying the decad to the fourth power, or 104. Hence for I, the first letter, we have 10 x 1 = 10;
for H, the second letter, we have 10 x 10= 100: for V. the third letter, 10 x 10 x 10 = 1,000; and for H, the
fourth letter, 10 x 10 x 10 x 10 = 10,000.

In the Shemitic languages, a paragogic letter is one which is added to a word to give it additional emphasis.]

17, "There were giants in the earth," Gen. vi. 4. (If this word HIV, Hayu, is considered, which also is a form
of the often varied name, it taketh its rise from the kingdom.) This is that which is written, Gen. ii. 10: "And
thence is it divided, and is in four heads." (Where is understood the end of that emanation which the
separated universe followeth. Nevertheless) from the place where the body is divided, they are called those
trees (or, as the Mantuan Codex correcteth the passage: Where the garden is divided, and the seven inferior
emanations are understood; where then it divideth the universe into the inferior worlds and provideth a
habitation for the shells or spirits of matter). Hence it is written: "And from hence is it divided."

["The shells" = elemental spirits. The Qabalah always calls the evil elemental spirits of matter "shells."]

CHAPTER V. 56
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

18. They were in the earth in those days, but not in the following time, until Joshua came. (That is, they are
applicable unto the path of the bride, which also is called the land of Canaan, wherein Joshua found the
giants. For the word NPILIM, Nephilim, occurreth not fully, except when it is used in the incident of the
spies, Num. xiii. 33.) 19. And the sons of the Elohim are guarded (nor is mention made of a similar case)
until Solomon came and joined himself with the daughters of men; like as it is written, Eccles. ii. 8:
VThONVGVTh, Ve−Thonogoth "And the delights of the sons of men," &c. Where (in the feminine gender)
he calleth the word ThONVGVTh, Thonogoth, and not (as elsewhere in the masculine gender) ThONVGIM,
Thonogim, "sons of Adam;" so that it is intimated in an occult manner that the latter (the sons of the Elohim)
are of those other spirits who are not contained under the supernal wisdom; concerning which it is written, 1
Kings v. 12: "And the Lord gave wisdom unto Solomon." (Concerning these matters, further see the "Treatise
of the Revolutions)."

["The Treatise of the Revolutions" is not published in this volume.]

20. Also it is written, ibid. iv. 31: "And He was wise above every man." Because these are not classed with
man.

21. (But when it is said) "And the Tetragrammaton gave him wisdom," then is understood the supernal He.
(Because he gave unto him the influx of the wisdom of the queen.) "And he was wise before every man,"
because from her he received the wisdom here below (through the path to the kingdom).

22. Those (spirits) are powerful who exist from eternity. That is, from (eternity or) the supernal world (the
understanding, namely, whence are excited severity and rigour). The men of the name (that is) who exercised
themselves in the name.

23. In what name? In the Holy Name, wherein they exercised themselves (for the performing of various
wonders), and not the holy inferiors. Yet (these) did not exercise themselves save in the name (and not in
holiness).

24. It is said openly "the men of the name," and not "the men of the Tetragrammaton." Not (therefore used
they the name) with respect unto the mystery of the Arcanum, or in a diminutive form; nor yet with any
diminution of the (name itself).

25. (And because) the men of the name (are) openly (spoken of, hence) are they shut out from the general
conception of man.

26. It is written, Ps. xlix. 12: "Man being in honour, abideth not." (When it is said) "man being in honour"
(the same is as if also it were said, a man such as was Solomon) shall not remain long in the honour of the
King without the spirit. (That is, in the influx from the King, Microprosopus, to whom, or to the beautiful
path, the spirit belongeth.)

27. Thirteen kings (that is, the twelve metatheses of the Tetragrammaton with its radix, which are the
measures of mercies) wage war with seven (with the Edomite kings; because, while the lights of the former
flowed down, these could not maintain themselves, and, besides, they are the classes of the most rigorous
judgments which are opposed to the mercies. For) seven kings are seen in the land (Edom), and now after that
their vessels are broken, they are called shells, who have fallen down among the inferiors. (These) nine
vanquished in war (the measures of Microprosopus, concerning which see the "Idra Rabba"; through which
David conquered his enemies), which ascend in the paths of those which pass downward, on account of His
ruling power (that is, which make thirteen, as they are in Macroprosopus and his beard, which is called his
influence, and freely floweth down), and there is none who can withhold their hand. (For whilst the supernal
measures permit the increase in the inferiors, all judgments are subdivided.)

CHAPTER V. 57
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

[Concerning the "twelve banners of the sacred Name," the metatheses of the Tetragrammaton, see
Introduction, § 62; also concerning the Edomite kings. I have before remarked that the demons are called
Qliphoth, or "shells," by the Qabalists. The thirteen in Microprosopus is composed of nine manifest and four
hidden.

28. Five kings (that is, the five letters MNTzPK, Me, Nun , Tzaddi, Pe, Kaph, which are the roots of the
judgments), betake themselves into swift flight before four (the four letters of the Tetragrammaton which
bear with them the influx of benignity. They cannot remain (since the judgments and rigours cease and flee).

[The letters of the Hebrew alphabet are divided into three classes, the three mothers as they are called,
AMSh; the seven duplex letters, BGDKPRTh, so called because they are sometimes tenues and sometimes
aspirates, according to whether they are written with or without the Daghesh point; and the twelve simple
letters, HVZChTILNSOTzQ. They are also divided into the three categories of Chesed, Din, and Rachmim,
or mercy, judgment, and mildness. Now these five letters MNTzPK denote the severest judgments, and their
number = 280 = PR = the name of the angel Sandalphon, SNDLPVN, the angel IOR, or of the wood of the
world of Asiah, since the greatest part of it are sterile trees.]

29. Four kings slay four (that is, the four letters of the Tetragrammaton are bound together with the four
letters ADNI, Adonaï , which) depend from them like grapes in a cluster (in the concatenation of these two
names, thus, IAHDVNHI).

30. Among them are set apart (that is, among these paths of the Divine names a selection of holiness is made
from these broken vessels) seven channels (that is, seven broken vessels, which now are like the shells, and
contain in themselves a great part of the lights and souls); they testify testimony (that is, the souls thus
selected, thence having been born into the universe, testify that they are freed from impurity) and they do not
remain in their place (and are no longer detained under the shells).

31. The tree which is mitigated (that is, the path of the kingdom or Schechinah, which is the tree of the
knowledge of good and evil, which in itself existeth from the judgments, but is mitigated by the bridegroom
through the influx of mercies) resideth within (within the shells; because the kingdom hath its dominion over
all things, and its feet descend into death). In its branches (in the inferior worlds) the birds lodge and build
their nests (the souls and the angels have their place). Beneath it those animals which have power seek the
shade (that is, the shells, "for in it every beast of the forest doth walk forth," Ps. civ. 20).

[See the Introduction for the Sephiroth arranged in the three pillars, or tree of life.]

32. This is the tree which hath two paths (for thus is this passage restored in the corrected Codex) for the
same end (namely, good and evil, because it is the tree of the knowledge of good and evil). And it hath
around it seven columns (that is, the seven palaces), and the four splendours (that is, the four animals) whirl
around it (in four wheels) on their four sides (after the fourfold description of the chariot of Yechesqiel
(Ezekiel).

[The seven palaces answer to the 3rd, 4th, 5th, 6th, 7th, 8th, and 9th Sephiroth, operating through the
respective orders of the angels into the spheres of the seven planets, Saturn, Jupiter, Mars, Sol, Venus,
Mercury, and Luna. The four animals, or Chaioth Ha−Qadesch , are the vivified powers of the four letters of
the Tetragrammaton operating under the presidency of the first Sephira as the mainspring of primum
mobile of creation. The four wheels are their correlatives under the second Sephira, on their four
sidesnamely, the four elements of the air, fire, water, and earth, which are the abodes of the spirits of the
elements, the sylphs, salamanders, undines, and gnomes, under the presidency of the tenth Sephira.]

33. The serpent (which was made from the rod of Mosesthat is, the shellNVOH, Nogah, or splendour)

CHAPTER V. 58
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

which rusheth forth with three hundred and seventy leaps (the thirty−two names together with the five letters
of ALHIM, Elohim, which make 37, multiplied by the decad 370, and the judgments of the bride are denoted,
to which that shell directeth his springs, because he is of middle nature betwixt the holy and the profane). "He
leapeth upon the mountains, and rusheth swiftly over the hills," like as it is written (Cant. ii. 8. That is, he
leapeth high above the rest of the shells). He holdeth his tail in his mouth between his teeth (that is, his
extremity, by which he is linked to the shells, turneth towards his other extremity wherewith he looketh
towards holiness). He is pierced through on either side (so that he may seek to receive the superior and
inferior nature). When the chief ariseth (who is ) he is changed into three spirits (that is, he assumeth the
nature of three inferior shells).

["Nogah" is also the qabalistical title of the sphere of the planet Venus. MTTRVN, Metatron, or Methraton, is
the particular intelligence of the first Sephira, and is called the "Prince of Faces;" he is said also to have been
the "ruler of Moses." Methraton has the same numeration as ShDI, Shaddai, the Almighty.]

34. (But concerning Metatron) it is written, Gen. v. 22: "And Enoch walked with the Elohim" (because out of
Enoch, Metatron is formed). And it is written, Prov. xxii. 6: "Enoch hath been made into a boy, according to
his path." (That is, "hath been changed into") the boy (namely, Metatron, who is spoken of under his name
NOR, Nour, which meaneth a "boy").

["Enoch hath been made into a boy," &c. This peculiar rendering of the passage, "Train up a child in the
way," &c., arises from reading in the Hebrew text ChNVK, Chanokh, Enoch, instead of ChNK, Chanekh,
"train up," or "instruct."]

35. With the Elohim, and not with the Tetragrammaton (because he himself is referred unto the path of the
queen, to whom is attributed this name of Rigour). "And he existed not" (longer) under this name (Enoch),
because the Elohim took him in order that he might be called by this name. (For this name is communicable
unto the angels, and in the first instance unto this chief among them, namely, Metatron.)

36. There are three houses of judgment given, which are four (that is, the three letters IHV, referred into the
understanding, which yield the four letters of the Tetragrammaton, pointed with the vowel points of the name
Elohim. For) there are four superior houses of judgment (the four said Tetragrammatic letters) and four
inferior (which are the four letters ADNI, Adonaï, belonging unto the kingdom). For it is written, Lev. xix.
35: "Ye shall not do iniquity in judgment, in dimension, in weight, and in measure." (Where these four are
mystically intimated.)

37. (There is one) rigorous judgment (of severity),another that is not rigorous (that is, of the kingdom). There
is one judgment by balance (wherein are the two scales of merit and error), another judgment which is not
made by balance; (and this is) the gentle judgment (whereby the Israelites are judged. But also there is given)
the judgment which is neither of the one nature nor of the other. (Namely, the beautiful path.)

[Of course the "beautiful path" is Tiphereth, the sixth Sephira.]

38. (Further on it is written), Gen. vi. 1. "And it came to pass when man began to multiply upon the face of
the earth." (Where by these words) ADM, Adam, began to multiply (there is understood Daath, or the
knowledge, the soul of the beautiful path, to which Moses is referred; which sendeth down many lights into
the bride, the earth, when the spouse ascendeth thither). This is that which is written (ibid. 3): BShGM,
Beshegam, "in that also, he is flesh" (which word Beshegam, "in that also," by equality of numeration
equalleth MShH, Moses) Adam (namely) the supernal (Daath, or knowledge). And it is written: "Upon the
face of the earth" (which face of the earth is this, that the highest representation of the queen is the
understanding, the mother, unto whose gates Moses ascended). 39. (Concerning this face, it is written) Exod.
xxxiv. 29: "And Moses knew not that the skin of his face shone" (where by the face the mother is understood;

CHAPTER V. 59
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

by the skin, the queen.) This is that which is said, Gen. iii. 21: "Tunics of skin" (because by itself the
kingdom is wanting in light).

40. To shine (but when it is said "the face of Moses," the mother is understood, according to that passage, 1
Sam. xvi. 13: "And Samuel took the horn of oil" (where by the oil, the wisdom, by the horn, or the splendour
of the oil, the understanding is denoted). For there is no anointing except by the horn (that is, every descent of
unction is through the mother). Hence it is said, Ps. lxxxix. 18: "And in thy favour our horn shall be exalted."
(Also) Ps. cxxxii. 17: "There shall the born of David flourish" (that is, the queen shall receive the influx from
the mother). This is the tenth of the kings (that is, the path of the kingdom), and originateth from jubilee, who
is the mother.

41. For it is written, Josh. vi. 5: "And it shall be when the horn of jubilee is sounded." This is the splendour of
the jubilee, and the tenth (path) is crowned by the mother.

42. (This is) the horn which receiveth the horn and the spirit, that it may restore the spirit of Yod He unto Yod
He. (That is, when the spirit is to be given unto Microprosopus, his mother contributed as much, which is
QRN, Qaran, "the horn," the brilliancy, as the increase which he receiveth from the father.) And this is the
horn of jubilee. And IVBL, Yobel, "jubilee," is H, He (the first He of the Tetragrammaton); and He is the
spirit rushing forth over all (because the mother is the world to come, when in the resurrection all things will
receive the spirit); and all things shall return unto their place (like as in the jubilee, so in the world to come).

43. For it is written, AHH, IHVH, ALHIM, Ahah Tetragrammaton Eloim! "Ah Tetragrammaton Elohim!"
When the H, He, appeareth (first), and H, He (in the second place); then is Tetragrammaton called Elohim
(like as a judge; because in the world to come there will be work for much strength. This is) the full name.
And it is written, Isa. ii. 11: "And Tetragrammaton alone shall be exalted in that day." When the one He is
turned towards the other He, and Yod is taken away, then cometh vengeance into the universe; and except for
that Adam who is called Tetragrammaton, the universe would not exist; but all things would be destroyed.
Hence it is written: "And the Tetragrammaton alone," &c.

44. Hereunto is the hidden and involved Mystery of the King, that is "The Book of Concealed Mystery,"
Blessed is he who entereth into and departeth therefrom, and knoweth its paths and ways.

HADRA RBA QDIShA (HA IDRA RABBA QADISHA); OR,


THE GREATER HOLY ASSEMBLY.
CHAPTER I. THE INGRESS AND THE PREFACE.
1. TRADITION.Rabbi Schimeon spake unto his companions, and said: "How long shall we abide in the
condition of one column by itself? when it is written, Psa. cxix. 126: 'It is time for Thee, Lord, to lay to Thine
hand, for they have destroyed Thy law.'

2. "The days are few, and the creditor is urgent; the herald crieth aloud daily, and the reapers of the land are
few; and those who are about the end of the vineyard attend not, and have not known where may be the
lawful place. (That is, do not study holiness, which is called the vineyard.)

3. "Assemble yourselves, O my companions, in an open space, equipped with armour and spears; be ye ready
in your preparations, in council, in wisdom, in understanding, in science, in care, with hands and with feet!
Appoint as King over you, Him in whose power is life and death: so that the words of truth may be received:
things unto which the supernal holy ones attend, and rejoice to hear and to know them."

HADRA RBA QDIShA (HA IDRA RABBA QADISHA); OR, THE GREATER HOLY ASSEMBLY. 60
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

4. Rabbi Schimeon sat down and wept; then he said: "Woe! if I shall reveal it! Woe! if I shall not reveal it!"

5. His companions who were there were silent.

6. Rabbi Abba arose and said unto him: "With the favour of the Lord, also it is written, Psa. xxv. 14: 'The
Arcanum of the Tetragrammaton is with them that fear Him.' And well do these companions fear that Holy
and Blessed One; and now they have entered into the assembly of the tabernacle of his house, some of them
have only entered, and some of them have departed also."

7. Moreover, it is said the companions who were with Rabbi Schimeon were numbered, and they were found
to consist of Rabbi Eleazer, his son; and Rabbi Abba, and Rabbi Yehuda, and Rabbi Yosi the son of Jacob,
and Rabbi Isaac, and Rabbi Chisqiah the son of Rav, and Rabbi Chiya, and Rabbi Yosi, and Rabbi Yisa.

8. They gave their hands unto Rabbi Schimeon, and raised their fingers on high, and entered into a field under
the trees and sat down.

9. Rabbi Schimeon arose and offered up a prayer. He sat in the midst of them, and said: "Let whosoever will
place his hand in my bosom." They placed their hands there, and he took them.

10. When he began, he said (from Deut. xxvii. 15): "Cursed be the man that maketh any graven or molten
image, the work of the hands of the craftsman, and putteth it in a secret place. And all the people shall answer
and say Amen!"

11. Rabbi Schimeon began, and said: "Time for Thee, O Tetragrammaton to lay to Thine hand." Why is it
time for the Tetragrammaton to lay to His hand? Because they have perverted Thy law. What is this, they
hath perverted Thy law?' The higher law, which is itself made void, if it be not carried out according to his
commands. Wherefore is this? (Or, as others read: Wherefore is this name Tetragrammaton here
employed? ) This hath been said concerning the Ancient of Days.

12. "For it is written, Deut. xxxiii. 29: 'Blessed art thou, O Israel: who is like unto thee?' Also it is written,
Exod. xv. 11: 'Who is like unto thee among the gods, O Tetragrammaton?'"

13. He called Rabbi Eleazer, his son, and commanded him to sit down before him, and Rabbi Abba on the
other side, and said: "We are the type of all things" (that is, "we represent the three columns of the
Sephiroth;") "thus far are the columns established."

14. They kept silence, and they heard a voice; and their knees knocked one against the other with fear. What
was that voice? The voice of the Higher Assembly, which had assembled above. (For out of Paradise came
the souls of Me just thither, that they might hearken, together with the Schechinah of the Presence Divine.)

15. Rabbi Schimeon rejoiced, and said. "O Tetragrammaton! I have heard Thy speech, and was afraid! (Hab.
iii. 1). He hath said: 'It is therefore rightly done, seeing that fear hath followed; but for us the matter rather
dependeth upon love.' Like as it is written, Deut. vi. 5: 'And thou shalt delight in Tetragrammaton thy God.'
Also it is written, Mal. i. 2: "I have loved you.'"

16. Rabbi Schimeon said further: "'He who walketh, going up and down (from one house unto another)
revealeth the secret; but the faithful in spirit concealeth the word' (Prov. xi. 13).

17. "'He who walketh going up and down.' This saying meriteth question, because it is said, 'going up and
down.' Wherefore then I walketh?' The man is already said to be going up and down: what is this word
'walketh?'

HADRA RBA QDIShA (HA IDRA RABBA QADISHA); OR, THE GREATER HOLY ASSEMBLY. 61
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

18. "For truly it is true concerning that man who is not stable in his spirit nor truthful, that the word which he
hath heard is moved hither and thither, like a straw in the water, until it cometh forth from him.

19. "For what reason?" Because his spirit is not a firm Spirit.

20. "But concerning him who is firm in spirit it is written: 'But the faithful in spirit concealeth the word.' (But
this phrase) 'faithful in spirit' denoteth firmness of spirit; like as it is said, Isa. xxii. 23: 'And I will fasten him
as a nail in a sure place.' Matter dependeth upon Spirit.

21. "And it is written, Eccles. v. 6: 'Suffer not thy mouth to cause thy flesh to sin.'

22. "For neither doth the world remain firm, except through secresy. And if in worldly affairs there be so
great need of secresy, how much more in the things of the most secret of secrets, and in the meditation of the
Ancient of Days, which matters are not even revealed unto the highest of the angels."

23. Rabbi Schimeon said, moreover: "I will not say it unto the heavens, that they may hear; I will not declare
it unto the earth, that it may hear; for certainly we are (the symbols of) the pillars of the Universe." 24. It is
said in the Arcanum of Arcana, that when Rabbi Schimeon opened his mouth, the whole place was shaken,
and his companions also were shaken.

CHAPTER II. OF THE CONDITION OF THE WORLD OF VACANCY.


25. HE manifested the Arcanum, and commencing, said, Gen. xxxvi. 29: "And those are the kings which
reigned in the land of Edom before that a king could rule over the children of Israel."

26. Blessed are ye, O just men! because unto you is manifested the Arcanum of the Arcana of the law, which
hath not been manifested unto the holy superior ones.

27. Who can follow out this matter? and who is worthy to do so? For it is the testimony of the truth of truths.
Therefore let all our prayers be undertaken with devotion, lest it be imputed (to me) as a sin, that I am making
this matter manifest.

28. And perchance my companions may speak unto me, because some objection may arise against these
words. For truly this work is not such a one as may be easily written down, so that by it may appear how
many kings there were before the children of Israel came, and before there was a king over the children of
Israel: how therefore doth this matter agree? And for this reason my companions have moved the question.

29. Therefore the Arcanum of Arcana is what men can neither know nor comprehend, nor can they apply
their rules of science to it.

30. It is said that before the Ancient of the Ancient Ones, the Concealed One of the Concealed Ones,
instituted the formations of the King (under certain members and paths

of Microprosopus

) and the diadems of the diadems (that is, the varied coverings whereby the superfluity of the Lights is
circumscribed); beginning and end existed not (that is, there was neither communication nor reception).

3 1. Therefore He carved out (that is, hollowed out a space by which he might flow in) and instituted
proportions in Himself ( in as many ways as the Lights of his Understanding could be received, whence arose
the paths of the worlds), and spread out before Him a certain veil (that is, produced a certain nature, by

CHAPTER II. OF THE CONDITION OF THE WORLD OF VACANCY. 62


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

which His infinite light could be modified, which was the first Adam); and therein carved out and distributed
the kings and their forms by a certain proportion (that is, all creatures under a condition of proper activity;
by which He Himself might be known and loved); but they did not subsist. (Here is intimated the fall of the
creatures, partly into a condition of quiet, such as matter; partly into a state of inordinate motion, such as
that of the evil spirits).

32. That is the same thing which is said, Gen. xxxvi. 29: "And these are the kings which reigned in the land
of Edom, before that there reigned a king over the children of Israel." The first king in respect of the children
of Israel (by the children of Israel are understood the paths of the restored world) is the first.

33. And all those things which were carved out, but subsisted not, are called by their names (that is, were
divided into certain classes ), neither yet did they subsist, until He forsook them (so that they could receive
the lights from the receptacles above themselves), and hid Himself before them (in diminished light).

CHAPTER III. CONCERNING THE ANCIENT ONE, OR


MACROPROSOPUS, AND CONCERNING HIS PARTS, AND ESPECIALLY
CONCERNING HIS SKULL.
34. AND after a certain time was that veil entirely disunited in formless separation, and recomposed
according to its conformation.

35. And this is the tradition: The Absolute desired within Himself to create the essence of light (the lawthat
is, the letters of the alphabet, from whose transpositions the law was formed), hidden for two thousand years,
and produced Her. And She answered thus unto Him: "He who wisheth to dispose and to constitute other
things, let Him first be disposed according unto a proper conformation."

36. This is the tradition described in the "Concealed Book of the King," that the Ancient of the Ancient
Ones, the Concealed of the Concealed Ones, hath been constituted and prepared as in various members (for
future knowledge).

37. Like as if it were said, "He is found (that is, He may in some way to a certain extent be known), and He is
not found;" for He cannot be clearly comprehended; but He hath as it were been formed; neither yet is He to
be known of any, since He is the Ancient of the Ancient Ones.

38. But in his conformation is He known; as also He is the Eternal of the Eternal Ones, the Ancient of the
Ancient Ones, the Concealed of the Concealed Ones; and in His symbols is He knowable and unknowable.

39. White are His garments, and His appearance is the likeness of a Face vast and terrible. 40. Upon the
throne of flaming, light is He seated, so that He may direct its (flashes).

41. Into forty thousand superior worlds the brightness of the skull of His head is extended, and from the light
of this brightness the just shall receive four hundred worlds in the world to come.

42. This is that which is written, Gen. xxiii. 16. "Four hundred skekels of silver, current money with the
merchant."

43. Within His skull exist daily thirteen thousand myriads of worlds, which draw their existence from Him,
and by Him are upheld.

CHAPTER III. CONCERNING THE ANCIENT ONE, OR MACROPROSOPUS, AND CONCERNING


63 HIS PA
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

CHAPTER IV. CONCERNING THE DEW, OR MOISTURE OF THE BRAIN,


OF THE ANCIENT ONE, OR MACROPROSOPUS.
44. AND from that skull distilleth a dew upon Him which is external, and filleth His head daily.

45. And from that dew which floweth down from His head, that ( namely) which is external, the dead are
raised up in the world to come.

46. Concerning which it is written, Cant. v. 2: "My head is filled with dew." It is not written "It is full with
dew;" but NMLA, Nimla , "it is filled."

47. And it is written, Isa. xxvi. 19: "The dew of the lights is Thy dew." Of the lightsthat is, from the
brightness of the Ancient One.

48. And by that dew are nourished the holy supernal ones.

49. And this is that manna which is prepared for the just in the world to come.

50. And that dew distilleth upon the ground of the holy apple trees. This is that which is written, Exod. xvi.
14: "And when the dew was gone up, behold upon the face of the desert a small round thing."

51. And the appearance of this dew is white, like unto the colour of the crystal stone, whose appearance hath
all colours in itself. This is that which is written, Num. xi. 7: "And its varieties as the varieties of crystal."

CHAPTER V. FURTHER CONCERNING THE SKULL OF


MACROPROSOPUS.
52. THE whiteness of this skull shineth in thirteen carved out sides: in four sides from one portion; in four
sides from the part of His countenance; and in four sides from another part of the periphery; and in one above
the skull, as if this last might be called the supernal side.

53. And thence is the Vastness of His Countenance extended into three hundred and seventy myriads of
worlds; and hence ARK APIM, Arikh Aphim, Vastness of Countenance is His name.

54. And He Himself, the Most Ancient of the Most Ancient Ones, is called ARIK DANPIN, Arikh
Da−Anpin, the Vast Countenance, or Macroprosopus; and He Who is more external is called ZOIR ANPIN,
Zauir Anpin, or Him Who hath the Lesser Countenance ( Microprosopus) in opposition to the Ancient
Eternal Holy One, the Holy of the Holy Ones.

55. And when Microprosopus looketh back upon Him, all the inferiors are restored in order, and His
Countenance is extended, and is made more vast at that time, but not for all time (then only is it), vast like
unto the (countenance) of the More Ancient one.

56. And from that skull issueth a certain white shining emanation, towards the skull of Microprosopus, for the
purpose of fashioning His head; and thence towards the other inferior skulls, which are innumerable.

57. And all the skulls reflect this shining whiteness towards the Ancient of Days, when they are numbered
out of their mingled confusion. And by reason of this there existeth herein an opening towards the skull
below, when they proceed to numeration.

CHAPTER IV. CONCERNING THE DEW, OR MOISTURE OF THE BRAIN, OF THE ANCIENT ONE,
64 OR M
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

CHAPTER VI. CONCERNING THE MEMBRANE OF THE BRAIN OF


MACROPROSOPUS.
58. IN the hollow of the skull is the aërial membrane of the supreme hidden Wisdom, which is nowhere
disclosed; and it is not found, and it is not opened.

59. And that membrane enshroudeth the brain of the hidden Wisdom, and therefore is that Wisdom covered,
because it is not opened through that membrane.

60. And that brain, which is itself the hidden Wisdom, is silent and remaineth tranquil in its place, like good
wine upon its lees.

61. And this is that which they say:Hidden is the science of the Ancient One, and His brain is calm and
concealed.

62. And that membrane hath an outlet towards Microprosopus, and on that account is His brain extended, and
goeth forth by thirty and two paths.

63. This is that same thing which is written: "And a river went forth out of Eden" (Gen. ii. 7). But for what
reason? Because the membrane is (then) opened, neither doth it (completely) enshroud the brain.

64. Nevertheless the membrane is opened from below. And this is that which we have said: Among the
signatures of the letters (is) ThV, Tau, Th; nevertheless He impresseth it as the sign of the Ancient of Days,
from Whom dependeth the perfection of knowledge, because He is perfect on every side, and hidden, and
tranquil, and silent, like as good wine upon its lees.

CHAPTER VII. CONCERNING THE HAIR OF MACROPROSOPUS.


65. This is the tradition. From the skull of His head hang down a thousand thousand myriads; seven
thousand and five hundred curling hairs, white and pure, like as wool when it is pure; which have not been
mingled confusedly together less inordinate disorder should be shown in His conformation; but all are in
order, so that no one lock may go beyond another lock, nor one hair before another.

66. And in single curls are four hundred and ten locks of hair, according unto the number of the word,
QDVSh, Qadosch, Holy.

67. But these hairs, all and singular, radiate into four hundred and ten worlds.

68. But these worlds alone are hidden and concealed, and no man knoweth them, save himself.

69. And he radiateth in seven hundred and twenty directions ( others say four hundred and twenty).

70. And in all the hairs is a fountain, which issueth from the hidden brain behind the wall of the skull.

71. And it shineth and goeth forth through that hair unto the hair of Microprosopus, and from it is His brain
formed; and thence that brain goeth forth into thirty and two paths.

72. And each curl radiateth and hangeth down arranged in beautiful form, and adorned with ornament, and
they enshroud the skull.

CHAPTER VI. CONCERNING THE MEMBRANE OF THE BRAIN OF MACROPROSOPUS. 65


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

73. But the curls of the hair are disposed on each side of the skull.

74. Also we have said: Each hair is said to be the breaking of the hidden fountains, issuing from the
concealed brain.

75. Also this is the tradition: From the hair of a man it is known what he is, whether rigorous or merciful,
when he passeth over forty years; thus also when he is perfect in hair, in beard, and in the eyebrows of his
eyes.

76. The curls of His hair hang down in order, and pure like unto (pure) wool, even unto his shoulders. Say we
unto His shoulders? Nevertheless, even unto the rise of His shoulders, so that His neck may not be seen,
because of that which is written, Jer. ii. 27: "Because they have turned away from Me the neck and not the
face."

77. And the hair is less close to the ears, lest it should cover them; because it is written., Ps. cxxx. 2. "As
Thine am are open." 78. From hence His hair stretcheth out behind His ears. The whole is in equilibrium; one
hair doth not go beyond another hair, (they are ) in perfect disposition, and beautiful arrangement, and
orderly condition.

79. It is the delight and joy of the just, who are in Microprosopus, to desire to behold and to conform unto
that conformation which is in the Ancient One, the Most Concealed of all.

80. Thirteen curls of hair exist on the one side and on the other of the skull; (they are) about His face, and
through them commenceth the division of the hair.

81. There is no left in that Ancient Concealed One, but all is right.

82. He appeareth, and He appeareth not; He is concealed, and He is not concealed; and that is in His
conformation much more so than in Himself.

83. And concerning this the children of Israel wished to inquire in their heart, like as it is written, Exod. xvii.
7: "Is the Tetragrammaton in the midst of us, or the Negatively Existent One?" ( Where they distinguished)
between Microprosopus, who is called Tetragrammaton, and between Macroprosopus, who is called AIN,
Ain , the Negatively Existent?

84. But why, then, were they punished? Because they did it not in love, but in temptation; like as it is written
(ibid.). "Because they tempted the Tetragrammaton, saying, Is it the Tetragrammaton in the midst of us, or is
it the Negatively Existent One?"

85. In the parting of the hair proceedeth a certain path, which shineth into two hundred and seventy worlds,
and from that (again ) shineth a path wherein the just of the world to come shall shine.

86. That is what is written, Prov. iv. 18: "And the path of the just shall shine as the light, going forth, and
shining more and more unto the perfect day.

87. And out of that is the path divided into six hundred and thirteen paths, which are distributed in
Microprosopus.

88. As it is written concerning Him, Pa. xxv. 6: "All the paths of the Tetragrammaton are mercy and truth,"
&c.

CHAPTER VI. CONCERNING THE MEMBRANE OF THE BRAIN OF MACROPROSOPUS. 66


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

CHAPTER VIII. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF MACROPROSOPUS.


87. THE forehead of His skull is the acceptation of acceptations, whereunto is opposed the acceptation of
Microprosopus, like as it is written, Exod. xxviii. 38: "And it shall be upon His forehead always for
acceptation," &c.

90. And that forehead is called RTzVN, Ratzon, Will−power, because it is the ruler of the whole head and of
the skull, which is covered by four hundred and twenty worlds.

91. And when it is uncovered, the prayers of the Israelites ascend.

92. "When is it uncovered?" Rabbi Schimeon was silent. He asked again a second time, "When?" Rabbi
Schimeon said unto Rabbi Eleazar, his son, "When is it uncovered."

93. He answered unto him: "In the time of the offering of the evening prayer on the Sabbath."

94. He said unto him: "For what reason?" He answered unto him: "Because at that time the lower judgment
threateneth through Microprosopus; but that forehead is uncovered which is called 'Acceptation,' and then
wrath is assuaged, and the prayer ascendeth. 95. "This is that which is written, Ps. lxix. 14: 'And I have
prayed unto Thee, O Tetragrammaton! in an acceptable time.'

96. "And the time of acceptance by the Ancient of Days is here to be understood, and of the unveiling of the
forehead; and because it is thus disposed at the offering of the evening prayer on the Sabbath."

97. Rabbi Schimeon spake unto Rabbi Eleazar, his son, and said: Blessed be thou, O my son! by the Ancient
of Days; for thou hast found in that time in which thou hast needthe acceptation of His forehead.

98. Come and behold! in these inferiors, when the forehead is uncovered, there is found fixed shamelessness.

99. This is the same which is written, Jer. iii. 3: "Yet thou hadst the forehead of a shameless woman, thou
refusedst to be ashamed."

100. But when this forehead is uncovered, inclination and acceptation are found in perfect form, and all
wrath is quieted and subdued before Him.

10I, From that forehead shine forth four hundred habitations of judgments, when it is uncovered during that
period of acceptation, anti all things are at peace before it.

102. This is the same which is written, Dan. vii. 10: "The judgment was set"that is, subsideth in its place,
and the judgment is not exercised.

103. And this is the tradition: There is no hair found on that part, because it is opened and not covered.

104. It is covered, I say, and the executors of judgment behold this, and are pacified, and (judgment) is not
exercised.

105. This is the tradition: This forehead hath been extended into two hundred and seventy thousand lights of
the luminaries of the superior Eden. 106. This is the tradition: There existeth an Eden which shineth in Eden.
The superior Eden, which is not uncovered, and is hidden in concealment, and is not distributed into the
paths, like as it hath been said.

CHAPTER VIII. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF MACROPROSOPUS. 67


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

107. The inferior Eden is distributed into its paths; (namely ) into thirty−two directions of its paths.

108. And although this Eden is distributed into its path, yet is it not known unto any, save unto
Microprosopus,

109. But no man hath known the superior Eden, nor its paths, except Macroprosopus Himself.

110. Like as it is written, Job xxviii. 23: "God understandeth the way thereof, and He knoweth the place
thereof."

111. "The Elohim understand the way thereof: "this is the inferior Eden, known unto Microprosopus. "And
He hath known the place thereof:" this is the superior Eden, which the Ancient of Days hath known, the most
abstruse of all.

CHAPTER IX. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MACROPROSOPUS.


112. THE eyes of the White Head are diverse from all other eyes. Above the eye is no eyelid, neither is
there an eyebrow over it.

113. Wherefore? Because it is written, Ps. cxxi. 4: "Behold, He that keepeth Israel shall neither slumber nor
sleep;" that is, the superior Israel.

114. Also it is written, Jer. xxxii. v. 19: "Whose eyes are open." 115. And this is the tradition. Seeing that all
is operated through mercies, He hath not covering unto His eye, nor eyebrow above His eye; how little, then;
doth the White Head require such.

116. Rabbi Schimeon spake unto Rabbi Abba, and said: "To what is this like?" He answered unto him: "To
the whales and fishes of the sea, which have no coverings for their eyes, nor eyebrows above their eyes; who
sleep not, and require not a protection for the eye.

117. "How much less doth the Ancient of the Ancient Ones require a protection, seeing that He far above His
creatures watcheth over all things, and all things are nourished by Him, and He Himself sleepeth not.

118. "This is that which is written, Ps. cxxi. 4: 'Behold! He that keepeth Israel shall neither slumber nor
sleep.' That is, the superior Israel.

119. "It is written, Ps. xxxiii. 18: 'Behold the eye of the Lord is upon them that fear Him;' and it is written,
Zech. iv. 10: 'They are the eyes of the Lord, running to and fro throughout the whole earth.

120. "There is no contrariety (between these sayings); one is concerning Microprosopus, and the other
concerning Macroprosopus.

121. "And further, although there be two eyes, yet they are converted into one eye.

122. "This is pure in its whiteness, and so white that it includeth all whiteness.

123. "The first whiteness shineth, and ascendeth and descendeth for the purpose of combining with that
which is connected (with it) in connection.

124. "This is the tradition: That whiteness darteth forth its rays, and igniteth three lights, which are called
HVD, Hod, Glory, VHDR, Vehedar, and Majesty, VChDVH. Vachedoah, and Joy; and they radiate in

CHAPTER IX. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MACROPROSOPUS. 68


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

gladness and in perfection.

125. "The second whiteness shineth and ascendeth and descendeth, and darteth forth its rays, and igniteth
three other lights, which are called NTzCh, Netzach, Victory, ChSD, Chesed, and Benignity, ThPARTh,
Tiphereth, and Beauty; and they radiate in perfection and in gladness.

126. "The third whiteness radiateth and shineth, and descendeth and ascendeth, and goeth forth from the part
enclosing the brain, and darteth forth its rays toward the seventh middle light.

127. "And it formeth a path to the inferior brain, and formeth a path to the inferior, and all the inferior lights
are thereby ignited."

128. Rabbi Schimeon said: Thou hast well spoken, and the Ancient of Days will open this eye upon thee in
the time of thy necessity.

129. Another tradition runneth thus: Whiteness in whiteness, and whiteness which includeth all other
whiteness.

130. The first whiteness shineth and ascendeth and descendeth in three lights on the left−hand side, and they
radiate and are bathed in that whiteness, like as when a man batheth his body in good unguents and odours, in
better than he at first possessed.

131. The second whiteness descendeth and ascendeth and shineth in three lights on the right−hand side, and
they radiate and are bathed in that whiteness, like as when a man batheth in good and odours, in better than he
at first possessed.

132. The third whiteness shineth and ascendeth and descendeth, and goeth forth the light of the inner
whiteness of the brain, and darteth forth its rays when necessary unto the black hair, and unto the head, and
unto the brain of the head.

133. And it irradiateth the three crowns which remain, when it is needful, so that it may be uncovered, if that
be pleasing unto the Most Ancient One hidden from all.

134. And this is the tradition: This eye is never closed; and there are two, and they are converted into one.

135. All is right; there is no left there. He sleepeth hot and slumbereth not, and He requireth not protection.
He is not such an one as hath need to defend Himself, for He defendeth all things, and He Himself waited
upon all things, and in the sight of His eye are all things established.

136. This is the tradition: Were that eye closed even for one moment, no thing could subsist.

137. Therefore it is called the open eye, the holy eye, the excellent eye, the eye of Providence, the eye which
sleepeth not neither slumbereth, the eye which is the guardian of all things, the eye which is the subsistence
of all things.

138. And concerning it is it written, Prov. xxii. 9, "The bountiful eye;" thou shalt not read "the blessed eye,"
but "it blesseth," for it is called "the bountiful eye," and by it are all things blessed.

139. And this is the tradition: There is no light in the inferior eye, so that it can be bathed in redness and
blackness; except when it is beheld by that white brilliance of the superior eye which is called "the bountiful
eye."

CHAPTER IX. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MACROPROSOPUS. 69


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

140. And to no man is it known when this superior holy eye may shine and may bathe the inferior; and when
the just and the supernal blessed ones are about to be beheld in that Wisdom.

141. This is that which is written, Isa. lii. 8: "For they shall see eye to eye;" When? "When the Lord shalt
bring again Zion." Also, it is written, Num. xiv. 14: "That Thou Tetragrammaton, art seen eye to eye."

142. And unless the bountiful superior eye were to look down upon and bathe the inferior eye, the universe
could not exist even a single moment. 143. This is the tradition in the "Book of Concealed Mystery;"
Providence ariseth from the inferior eye when the highest splendour shineth down upon it, and that highest
splendour goeth forth into the inferior; for from it are all things illuminated.

144. This is that which is written, Num. xiv. 14. "That Thou, O Tetragrammaton! art seen eye to eye." Also it
is written, Ps. xxxiii. 18: "Behold the eye of the Lord is upon them that fear Him." And it is written, Zech. iv.
10: "The eyes of the Lord running to and fro throughout the whole earth."

145. "The eye of the Lord is upon them that fear Him," if they be upright. This is the superior eye. On the
contrary, when it is said, "The eyes of the Lord run to and fro," this is the eye which is below.

146. This is the tradition: On what account was Joseph worthy, so that the evil eye had no dominion over
him? Because that he was worthy of being beheld by the superior benign eye.

147. This is what is written, Gen. xlix. 23: "Joseph is the son of a fruitful bough; the son of a fruitful bough
above Ayin." Why, "the son of a fruitful bough above Ayin?" As though to imply, "because of that eye
which beheld him."

148. Also it is written, Prov. xxii. 9: "The bountiful eye shall be blessed." Why? Because it giveth its bread
unto the poor.

149. Why is it said in the singular number? Come and see. In the eyes which are inferior are a right eye and a
left eye, and they are of two diverse colours.

150. But in this instance there is no left eye, and they both ascend in one path, and all are right. And on that
account is one eye mentioned, and not two.

151. And this is the tradition: This eye, which is the eye of observation, is ever open, ever smiling, ever glad.

152. Such are not the inferiors, who in themselves have redness, and blackness, and whitenessthree colours;
and are not always open, for there are eyelids as a protection over these eyes.

153. And concerning this matter it is written, Ps. xliv. 23: "Awake, O Lord: why sleepest Thou?" And, 2
Kings xii. 16: "Open Thine eyes, O Lord."

154. When they are opened, for some are they opened for good, and on some are they opened for evil.

155. Woe unto him upon whom it is opened, so that the eye is mingled with redness, and unto whom the
redness appeareth, spreading across that eye. Who can escape from it?

156. But the Ancient of Days is blessed, presiding over that eye the white brilliance of whiteness, seeing that
also it is of such whiteness that it endureth all whiteness.

157. Blessed also is his portion whom that brilliance of all whiteness irradiateth.

CHAPTER IX. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MACROPROSOPUS. 70


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

158. And concerning this certainly it is written, Prov. xxii. 9: "The good eye is to be blessed." And it is
written, Isa. ii. 5: "Be ye present, O house of Jacob, and let us walk in the light of Tetragrammaton!"

159. This is the tradition: Save in all these instances, the name of the Ancient One is concealed from all, and
is not mentioned in the law, save in one place, where Microprosopus sware unto Abraham.

160. Like as it is written, Gen. xxii. 16: "By Myself have I sworn, saith Tetragrammaton." (Understand) that
this is said concerning Microprosopus.

161. Also it is written, Gen. xlviii. 20: "In thee shall Israel bless." That is, the superior Israel.

16:. Also it is written, Isa. xlix. 3: "Israel, in whom I will be glorified." In these passages the Ancient of Days
is called Israel.

163. But we have also stated that the Ancient of Days is called by His name, yet both this (statement) and the
other are correct. 164. This is the tradition: It is written, Dan. vii. 9: "I beheld until the thrones were cast
down, and the Ancient of Days did sit."

165. "The thrones were cast down." What is this? He spake unto Rabbi Yehuda, and said: "Stand in thy place
and explain these thrones."

166. Rabbi Yehuda answered: "It is written (ibid): 'His throne is of fiery flame;' and upon that throne sat the
Ancient of Days."

167. "For what reason? Because thus is the tradition: If the Ancient of Days were not seated upon that throne,
the universe could no longer exist before that throne.

168. "When the Ancient of Days sitteth upon that throne, it is subject unto Him. For He who sitteth upon it
ruleth over it.

169. "But at that time when He departeth from that throne, and sitteth upon another throne, the first throne is
overturned, lest any should rule over it save the Ancient One, who alone can sit upon it."

170. Rabbi Schimeon spake unto Rabbi Yehuda, and said: "May thy way be ordained for thee, and may it be
pointed out (unto thee) by the Ancient of Days!"

CHAPTER X. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MACROPROSOPUS.


171. AND come, behold, lo! it is written, Isaiah xli. 4: "I, Tetragrammaton, (am) first and with the last. I am
HE HIMSELF" ( Hoa).

172. All things are HVA, Hoa, He Himself, and He Himself is hidden on every side. So also is His nose.

173. From the nose is the face known. 174. And comesee! What is the (difference) between the Ancient One
and Microprosopus? Over these nostrils He ruleth; one of which is life, and the other is the life of life.

175. This nose is as a mighty gallery, whence His spirit rusheth forth upon Microprosopus, and they call it the
Giver.

176. And it is thus: The Spirit descendeth; and again the Spirit from hence proceedeth through those nostrils.

CHAPTER X. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MACROPROSOPUS. 71


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

177. One is the Spirit; She goeth forth unto Microprosopus, so that he may be aroused in the Garden of Eden.

178. And one is She the Spirit of Life, through Whom in process of time the sons of David hope to know
Wisdom.

179. And from that gallery ariseth the Spirit, and proceedeth from the concealed brain, and at length resteth
upon King Messiach.

180. Like as it is written, Isaiah xi. 2: "And the Spirit of Tetragrammaton shall rest upon him, the Spirit of
Wisdom and Understanding, the Spirit of Counsel and Might, the Spirit of Knowledge, and of the Fear of
Tetragrammaton."

181. Apparently four spirits (are described) here. But we have already said that the Spirit is one; why, then,
are three ( others added unto it?). Arise, Rabbi Yosi, in thy place.

182. Rabbi Yosi arose and said: "in the days of King Messiach, one shall not say unto the other, 'Teach me
this Wisdom.'

183. "Because it is thus written, Jer. xxxi. 34: 'A man shall no more teach his neighbour, &c., because all
shall know Me, from the least of them even unto the greatest of them.'

184. "And in that time shall the Ancient of Days arouse His Spirit which proceedeth from His brain, the most
concealed of all. 185. "And when that cometh forth all the inferior spirits are aroused with Her.

186. "And who are they? They are the holy crowns of Microprosopus.

187. "And there are six other spirits which are given. They are those of whom it is written: 'The Spirit of
Wisdom and Intelligence, the Spirit of Counsel and Might, the Spirit of Knowledge and of the Fear of the
Lord.'

188. "For thus is the tradition: It is written, 1 Kings ii. 12: 'And Solomon sat upon the throne of David.' Also
it is written, 1 Kings x. 19: 'The throne had six steps.'

189. "And King Messiach will be seated on those seven (steps). These are those six, and the Spirit of the
Ancient of Days, Who is above them, is the seventh.

190. "Like as it is said, 'There are three spirits which comprehend three others.'"

191. Rabbi Schimeon said unto him: "Thy spirit shall rest in the world to come."

192. Comebehold! It is written, Ezek. xxxvii. 9: "Thus saith the Lord, 'Come from the four winds, O Spirit!'
But what have the four winds of the world to do with this?

193. Nevertheless, the four winds are aroused; those three, namely, and the Spirit of the Concealed Ancient
One; whence there are four.

194. And thus is the matter; because when that one is produced, three others are produced with it, who in
themselves comprehend three others.

195. But it is the will of that Holy and Blessed One to produce the one Spirit, Who in Herself includeth all
others.

CHAPTER X. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MACROPROSOPUS. 72


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

196. Because it is written, Ezek. xxxvii. 9: "From the four spirits, come, O spirit! It is not written thus: "Ye
four spirits, come!" but "From the four spirits, come!" 197. And in the days of King Messiach there shall be
no need that one should teach another; for that one Spirit Who in Herself includeth all spirits, knoweth all
Wisdom and Understanding, Counsel and Might, (and is) the Spirit of Science and of the Fear of the Lord;
because She is the Spirit comprehending all spirits.

198. Therefore is it written, "From the four spirits;" which are those four comprehended in the seven steps of
which we have just spoken, § 189.

199. And this is the tradition: All things are comprehended in this Spirit of the Ancient of the Ancient Ones,
Who proceedeth from the concealed brain, into the gallery of the nostrils.

200. And comesee! Wherein is the difference between the nose ( of Macroprosopus), and the nose (of
Microprosopus).

201. The nose of the Ancient of Days is life in every part. Concerning the nose of Microprosopus it is written,
Ps. xviii. 8. "There went up smoke out of His nostrils, and fire out of His mouth devoured," &c.

202. There goeth up a smoke through His nostrils, and out of that smoke is a fire kindled.

203. When that smoke goeth up, what afterwards followeth? Coals are kindled by it. What is the meaning of
this, "by it?" By that smoke, out of that nose, out of that fire.

204. This is the tradition: When Rav Hammenuna the elder wished to offer up his prayer, he said, "I pray
unto the Lord of the nostrils, unto the Lord of the nostrils do I pray."

205. And this is that which is written, Isa. xlviii. 9: "In my praise (that is, My nose) will I refrain My nostrils
for thee." In which place the sentence is concerning the Ancient of Days.

206. This is the tradition. The size of this nose is so vast that three hundred and seventy−five worlds are
supported by it, which all adhere unto Microprosopus.

207. This is the praise of the conformation of the nose.

208. And this, and all forms of the Ancient of Days, are seen, and are not seen; they are seen by the lords of
lordsviz., by pious menand they are not seen by any others.

CHAPTER XI. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS IN


GENERAL.
209. RABBI SCHIMEON began, and said: Woe unto him who extendeth his hand unto that most glorious
supernal beard of the Holy Ancient One, the concealed of all.

210. This is the praise of that beard; the beard which is concealed and most precious in all its dispositions; the
beard which neither the superiors nor the inferiors have known; the beard which is the praise of all praise;
the beard to which neither man, nor prophet, nor saint hath approached so as to behold it.

211. The beard, whose hairs hang down even unto the breast, white as snow; the adornment of adornments,
the concealment of concealments, the truth of all truths.

CHAPTER XI. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS IN GENERAL. 73


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

212. It is said in the "Book of Concealed Mystery": That beard, the truth of all (truths), proceedeth from the
place of the ears, and descendeth around the mouth of the Holy One; arid descendeth and ascendeth, covering
(the cheeks which it calleth) the places of copious fragrance; (it is) white with ornament: and* it descendeth
in the equilibrium (of balanced power), and furnisheth a covering even unto the midst of the breast.

213. That is the beard of adornment, true and perfect, from the which flow down thirteen fountains, scattering
the most precious balm of splendour.

214. This is disposed in thirteen forms.

215. In the first disposition are classed the hairs from above, and it commenceth from that portion of the hair
of His head which is above His ears; and descendeth in one tress before the apertures of the ears in the most
perfect equilibrium, even unto the corner of the mouth.

216. In the second disposition are classed the hairs from the comer of the mouth, and they ascend even unto
the other corner of the mouth in perfectly equated order.

217. The third disposition is from midway between the nostrils; beneath those two apertures there goeth forth
a certain path, and the hair is wanting in that path; but on either side of and bordering that path it is fuller and
in perfect order.

218. The hairs which are classed under the fourth disposition descend below the mouth from the one corner
even unto the other comer, in perfect order.

219. The fifth disposition. Beneath the mouth proceedeth another path, from the region of the superior path,
and those two paths are impressed on His mouth on this side and on that.

220. The hairs which are classed in the sixth disposition ascend and come from beneath upwards unto the
corner of the mouth, and cover the places of copious fragrance, even unto the upper corner of the mouth, and
the hair descendeth at the corner of the opening, and across below the mouth.

221. In the seventh disposition the hair terminateth, and there are seen two apples in the places of copious
fragrance, beautiful and joyful in aspect, because (in that aspect) is the universe maintained. And this is that
which is said, Prov. xvi. 16: "In the light of the king's countenance is life."

222. In the eighth disposition a certain tress of hair proceedeth round about the beard, and (the hairs) hang
down equilibrated even unto the chest.

223. In the ninth disposition the hairs of the beard are interwoven and mingled with those hairs which hang in
equilibrium; which hang even thus, so that none is preeminent over another.

224. In the tenth disposition the hairs descend beneath the beard, and cover the throat beneath the beard.

225. The eleventh disposition is, that no hairs are preeminent over other hairs, and they are restored into
perfect proportion.

226. The twelfth disposition is that the hairs do not hang over the mouth, and that the mouth is uncovered in
every part, and that the hair surrounding it is beautiful.

227. The thirteenth disposition is that the hairs hang down on this side and on that beneath the beard,
furnishing a covering in beautiful adornment, even unto the chest.

CHAPTER XI. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS IN GENERAL. 74


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

228. Nothing is seen of the whole countenance and of the places of fragrance, except those beautiful white
apples which produce the life of the universe; and they radiate gladness upon Microprosopus.

229. Through those thirteen dispositions do they flow down, and the thirteen fountains of precious oil issue
forth, and they flow down through all those inferiors, and in that oil do they shine, and with that oil are they
anointed.

230. The beard of ornament of the Ancient of the Ancient Ones, the most concealed of all things, is
configurated in thirteen dispositions.

231. From the two beautiful apples of His countenance is the face of Macroprosopus illuminated; and
whatsoever is white and rosy is found below; it shineth and radiateth from that light.

232. Those thirteen dispositions are found in the beard. And in proportion to the purity of his beard,
according to its dispositions, is a man said to be true; for also whosoever (in sleep) beholdeth his beard, that
man is very desirous of truth.

233. We have taught in the "Book of Concealed Mystery," that certain (dispositions) are found in the
universe, according to those thirteen (dispositions) which depend from that venerable beard, and they are
opened out into the thirteen gates of mercies.

234. And he who extendeth his hand in swearing, also doth the same if he swear by the thirteen dispositions
of the beard: these are in Arikh Anpin, or Macroprosopus.

235. In Zauir Anpin, or Microprosopus, how many are there? He said unto Rabbi Isaac: "Arise in thy place,
and describe the beard of the Holy King according unto the arrangement of its parts. How are these arranged?

236. Rabbi Isaac arose; he commenced and said, Micah vii. 18: "What god is like unto Thee," &c.; "Thou
shalt give truth unto Jacob," &c.

237. "We have learned by tradition that herein are thirteen sections seen, and they all proceed from the
thirteen fountains of excellent oil, of the parts of the holy beard of the Ancient of the Ancient Ones.

238. "Tradition: A most secret thing is this disposition of the beard. Secret is it and hidden; hidden, yet not
hidden; concealed, yet not concealed in its dispositions; known, yet unknown.

239. "The first disposition. We have learned that the single locks and the single hairs do not mutually adhere
unto each other; and that the hairs of the beard take their rise from the disposition of the hair (of the head).

240. "This matter is worthy of examination. If all the hairs of the head and the hairs of the venerable supernal
beard are balanced in one equilibrium, wherefore are some long, and others not so long?

241. "Wherefore are not the hairs of the beard constant in the same proportion of length? These also are firm;
while those which are on the head are not firm, but soft.

242. "Therefore is it said that (in Macroprosopus) all the hairs descend equally from the head and beard; for
the hair of the head is prolonged even unto the shoulders, so that it may reach unto the head of
Microprosopus, from that flux of the one brain unto the other.

243. "And because they are not firm (also it is necessary that they be soft).

CHAPTER XI. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS IN GENERAL. 75


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

244. "We have learned by tradition. What is that which is written, Prov. i. 20: 'Wisdom (plural in Hebrew,
ChKMVTh, not ChKMH) will cry without; and at the end of the verse it is written, 'She ( singular) will utter
Her voice in the streets.' In this text the beginning doth neither agree with the end, nor the end with the
beginning.

245. "Therefore is it said: Wisdom will cry without when She passeth from the concealed brain of
Macroprosopus unto the brain of Microprosopus, through those longer hairs; and thus as it were extrinsically
those two brains are connected and become in this way one brain.

246. "Since there is not subsistence in the inferior brain except by the preservation of the supernal brain. 247.
"And when this proflux is instituted from the one, namely, into the other, this hath place which is written,
'She will utter Her voice;' namely, in the singular number.

248. "And because She passeth over from brain unto brain through those long hairs, these same (hairs) are not
found to be firm.

249. "Wherefore? Because if they were firm, Wisdom could not be conducted by them unto the brain.

250. "Because Wisdom cometh not from man, who is stern and wrathful, like as it is written, Eccles. ix. 17:
'The words of wise men are heard in quiet.'

251. "And thence we learn that in him whose hair is firm, wisdom dwelleth not

252. "But because these are long (the others are soft) in order that they may bring assistance to all.

253. "How, unto all? So that it may have entrance into the marrow of the spine of the back, which is
connected with the brain.

254. "And because the hair of the head doth not hang over the hairs of the beard, since the hair of the head
hangeth down, and is drawn back behind the ears, and doth not overhang the beard; because it is not
necessary to mingle these with those, but all are separated in their own paths.

255. "We have learned by tradition. All the hairs, as well of the head as of the beard, are white as snow.

256. "And we have learned. Those which are in the beard are all firm. Wherefore? Because those are firm
accordingly, that they may firmly mark out their thirteen measurements from the Ancient of the Ancient
Ones.

257. "And those measurements take their beginning from before the ears. 258. "And those measurements
have been included within certain limitations, in order that they should not be confounded with each other.
(Others read the passage thus: Because they are communicated unto the inferiors. For this have we been
taught. The hairs commence before the ears, because they have been separated, and are not to be mingled
with the others," &c.)

259. "But if thou sayest that other (sacred passages) are not given, analogous to these (measurements), thou
art in error. For thus is the tradition: "The thirteen measurements of the mercies of the Most Holy Ancient
One (are symbolized by these clauses of) Mic. vii. 18: 'What God is like unto Thee?' the first.

260. "'Pardoning iniquity;' the second.

261. "'And passeth by the transgression;' the third.

CHAPTER XI. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS IN GENERAL. 76


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

262. "'Of the remnant of His heritage;' the fourth.

263. "'He retaineth not His anger for ever;' the fifth.

264. "'Because He delighteth in mercy;' the sixth.

265. "'Again, He will have compassion on us;' the seventh.

266. "'He will subdue our iniquities;' the eighth.

267. "'And Thou wilt cast all their iniquities into the depths of the sea;' the ninth.

268 "'Thou wilt give truth unto Jacob;' the tenth.

269. "'Mercy unto Abraham;' the eleventh.

270. "'Which Thou hast sworn unto our fathers;' the twelfth.

271. "'From the days of old;' the thirteenth.

272. "'Unto these correspond in the law, Exod. xxxiv. 6: 'God merciful and gracious,' &c. And those are the
Inferiors.

273. "And if thou sayest, 'Why did not Moses pronounce those majestic words? It shall be answered unto
thee: 'Moses hath no duty to perform save in the place where judgment is found; and in the place where
judgment is found it is not necessary to speak thus.

274. "And Moses spake not, save in that time when the Israelites had sinned and judgment was impending;
hence Moses spake only in that place wherein judgment is found.

275. "But in another place the prophet hath instituted the order of the praise of the Ancient of Days.

276. "And those thirteen forms of the supreme holy beard, concealed with many concealments, are most
powerful to subdue and mitigate all the stern decrees of the judgments.

277. "What man is he who looketh back upon that most secret, holy supernal beard, who is not confounded
before it?

278. "Because also all the hairs are hard and firm in their disposition.

279. "But if thou sayest, 'What if they be so? Surely the lower hairs are black: why are these not as those?'

280. "Nevertheless, thus is the tradition: It is written, Cant. v. 11: 'His locks are bushy and black as a raven.'

281. Also it is written, Dan. vii. 18: 'The hair of His head like pure wool.'

282. "There is no contradiction here, for the one is said of the supernal beard, but the other of the inferior
beard.

283. "Also because when the law was given forth unto the Israelites, it was written in black fire upon white
fire.

CHAPTER XI. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS IN GENERAL. 77


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

284. "Also the foundation of the matter cometh from those hairs; because they are found (arising) out of the
(supernal) brain, and stretching down unto the inferior brain.

285. "Also because these are above the beard. Hence the beard is distinct, and all its forms are found
separated (each from the other); so that the beard is alone, and its hairs are also distinct.

CHAPTER XII. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS IN


PARTICULAR; AND, IN THE FIRST PLACE, CONCERNING ITS FIRST
PART.
286. "THE first disposition is that which commenceth almost at the beginning of the hair.

287. "Also we have learned: No beard (i.e., no part of this beard) is found which doth not (virtually) arise
from the brain of the head (or from the heart).

288. "But in this (last section) this (first part of the beard) is not considered as distinct (from the others). For
in this chapter only this first form (or portion of the beard) is to be considered, which descendeth from the
beginning of the hair, and it hath this peculiarity (namely, that it riseth directly from the brain, which cannot
altogether be said concerning the other parts of the beard).

289. "And this is to be kept perfectly distinct from this beardnamely, that which exists from the head
(formed into), one thousand worlds, sealed with a most pure seal, with a seal which includeth all seals.

290. "The length of that portion of hair descending before the ears is not equal to the length (of the beard
itself); neither doth it twine together, nor hang down far.

291. "But those hairs, when they flow down, are extended, and depend.

292. "And the beginning of the first disposition consists of thirty and one equal locks, extended even unto the
beginning of the mouth.

293. "Also three hundred and ninety hairs are found in each lock.

294. "Those thirty and one equal locks, which exist in the first disposition (of the beard) are strong, in order
that they may dispose the inferiors according to the number of AL, El.

295. "What is this AL, El? Mighty and Powerful One.

296. "And among those single locks are distributed one and thirty dominating worlds, so that they may be
extended (correctly) neither on this side nor on that.

297. "And out of each one of these worlds a partition is made into a thousand worlds of desires and of great
pleasures.

298. "And they are all concealed in the commencement of the beard, which representeth strength; and they
are included in that (name) AL.

299. "And notwithstanding is AL Himself disposed towards mercies, because in Him the Ancient of Days is
mitigated and included and extended.

CHAPTER XII. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS IN PARTICULAR; AND, IN78


THE FIR
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

300. "Wherefore even unto the mouth? Because it is written, Dan. vii. 9: 'The judgment was set, and the
books were opened.'

301. "What is this? 'And the judgment was set.' It was set in that place, so that it might not have dominion.
302. "This is that which is written, Isa. ix. 15: "Wonderful, Counsellor, God the Mighty One.' That is, AL, El,
such a one who also is mighty, but is rendered mild through the holy beard of the Ancient of Days.

303. "And an Arcanum is concealed in that place wherein it is written, Mic. vii. 18: 'What AL, El, like unto
Thee?' Because of the Ancient of Days it is spoken in the form of the configuration of the holy supernal beard.

304. "The first world, which proceedeth from the first disposition, hath dominion over, and descendeth and
ascendeth in a thousand times a thousand of myriads of shield−bearers, and by it are they comprehended
under a great seal.

305. "The second world, which proceedeth from that disposition, hath dominion over and descendeth and
ascendeth in fifty−seven thousand bodyguards, who are the lords of lamentations; and these are connected
with it for the purpose of disposing the neck of the spine.

306. "The third world, which goeth forth from that arrangement, hath dominion over and descendeth and
ascendeth in sixty−nine thousand authors of grief, who are upheld by it, like as metal (is upheld) by the tongs
(of the smith).

307. "And by that conformation all those are subjected, and mitigated in the bitterness of tears, which become
sweet in the great sea.

308. "Who is he who beholdeth this conformation of the holy beard, excellent and venerable, who is not
overcome with shame thereby?

309. "Who can comprehend the mystery of those locks of hair which hang down from Him, the Ancient One?
310. "He is set on the crown of crowns, which are the crowns of all crowns, and the crowns which are not
comprehended in the other crowns; I say, of those crowns which are not as the other crowns, for the inferior
crowns are comprehended by them.

311. "And therefore are those forms (arranged in) such conformations, whereunto the inferior forms adhere;
and they are the dispositions in which He is disposed Who hath need that He may be blessed by Him, and
Who desireth blessing.

312. "For whensoever the dispositions take the form of these, blessings are found beneath them; and It Is that
which It Is.

313. "All things are comprehended in those dispositions; all things raise themselves up in order that they may
receive these dispositions of the Mighty King, of the Ancient One, the most concealed of all. And all those
are mitigated by those ordinations of the King, the Ancient One.

314. "We have learned: Unless the Ancient of the Ancient Ones, the Holy of the Holy Ones, were disposed in
those conformations, neither the superiors nor the inferiors would be found, and all things would be as though
they existed not.

315. "Also we have learned by tradition: how far do those conformations of the beard radiate splendour?
Even unto the thirteen inferiors; and whensoever those thirteen are found, those shine. 316. "And all of them
are found in the number thirteen.

CHAPTER XII. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS IN PARTICULAR; AND, IN79


THE FIR
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

317. "Therefore is the beard of the King, the Ancient One, most venerable among all, at once in its entirety
concealed, and most excellent.

V8. "And because it is most excellent before all things, and concealed, there is no mention made concerning
it in any place in the law, and it is not manifested.

319. "But what beard is manifested? The beard of the Great High Priest, and from that beard descendeth the
influx unto the inferior beard of the inferior high priest.

320. "How is the beard of the high priest disposed? The beard of the high priest is disposed in eight
conformations. Because also the high priest hath eight vestments, when the ointment descendeth upon his
beard.

321. "This is that which is Written, Ps. cxxxiii. 2: 'Like the precious oil upon the head descending upon the
beard, the beard of Aaron, which descendeth according to the proportion of his attributes,' &c.

3231. "And whence is this to us? Because it is written in the same place: 'Also for brethren to dwell together
in equality.' The word 'also' increaseth the signification of the inferior high priest.

323. "Seeing that in the same way as the inferior high priest ministereth in the high priesthood, so also, if it be
permitted to say so, doth the High Priest above minister in His high priesthood.

324. "This is the first ordination of the beard of the Ancient One, the most concealed of all."

325. Rabbi Schimeon said unto him: "It is justly thy due, Rabbi Isaac, that thou shouldest be under the
ornament of the conformation of the beard, and that thou shouldest receive the light of the countenance of the
Ancient of Days, the Ancient of the Ancient Ones. Blessed is thy portion, and blessed be my lot with thee in
the world to come."

CHAPTER XIII. CONCERNING THE SECOND PART OF THE BEARD OF


MACROPROSOPUS.
326. "ARISE, Rabbi Chisqiah, and stand in thy place, and declare the worthiness of this part of the holy
beard."

327. Rabbi Chisqiah arose, and began his speech and said, Cant. vii. 10: "I am my beloved's, and his desire is
towards me."

328. "Who is under consideration here, that 'I am my beloved's?' and because that, 'his desire is toward me?'

329. "I have meditated, and lo I 1 have beheld the most excellent light of the supernal lights.

330. "It shone forth, and ascended on three hundred and twenty−five sides.

331. "And in that light was a certain obscurity washed away, like as when a man batheth in a deep river,
whose divided waters flow round him on every side from that part which is above.

332. "And that light ascendeth unto the shore of the deep superior sea, for all good openings and dignities
are disclosed in that opening.

CHAPTER XIII. CONCERNING THE SECOND PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS.80


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

333. "I asked of them what might be the interpretation of that which I beheld; and, commencing they replied,
'NVShA OVN, Nosha Auan, Thou hast beheld iniquity being taken away.'"

334. He said: "This is the second disposition," and sat down.

335. Rabbi Schimeon said: Now is the universe united together (or mitigated). Blessed be thou, Rabbi
Chisqiah, of the Ancient of the Ancient Ones!

336. Rabbi Schimeon said: All the lights are congregated together which come under this holy seal.

337. I bear witness that the highest heavens from the highest (powers) are above me, and the highest holy
earth from the supernals, because now I can see what man hath not beheld from that time, when Moses for
the second time ascended the mountain of Sinai.

338. For I see that my countenance shineth like, the vehement splendour of the sun, who is about to issue
forth for the healing of the universe.

339. Like as it is written, Mal. iv. 2: "But unto you that fear my name shall the sun of righteousness arise, and
healing in his wings."

340. Furthermore, I know that my countenance shineth; Moses, neither knew nor perceived (the fact).

341. Like as it is written, Exod. xxxiv. 29: "And Moses knew not that the skin of his face shone."

342. Furthermore, I behold before me with mine eyes those thirteen sculptured (forms of the beard of
Macroprosopus), and like flaming light did they shine.

343. And when the second of those (dispositions) was explained by thy mouth, that same at once was raised,
and conformed, and crowned, and concealed in the concealment of the forms of the beard, but all the others
were reinstated (in outward form). 344. And what is more, that one (formation), whilst it was explained by
thy mouth, flamed forth in splendour, and was crowned with a crown, and seated upon a throne, like a king in
the midst of his army.

345. And when the explanation ceased it ascended, and was crowned with a holy crown, and ordained, and
concealed, and again placed among the forms of the holy beard; and thus with (the forms) all and singular.

346. Be ye glad, O my holy companions I for surely (the universe ) shall not be in such a condition until King
Messiach shall come.

CHAPTER XIV. CONCERNING THE THIRD PART OF THE BEARD OF


MACROPROSOPUS.
347. "ARISE, Rabbi Chisqiah, for the second time."

349. We have learned that before Rabbi Chisqiah arose, a voice came forth and said: "One angel doth not
undertake two messages."

349. Rabbi Schimeon was disturbed, and said: "Assuredly, let each ( of you) speak singly in his place (in
respect of the symbolism of the seven inferiors); but as for myself, and Rabbi Eleazar my son, and Rabbi
Abba, we (three) refer unto the highest and complete perfection (of the whole decad). Arise, Rabbi Chiya."

CHAPTER XIV. CONCERNING THE THIRD PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS. 81


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

350. Rabbi Chiya arose, and, commencing said, Jer. i. 6: "AHH ADNI IHVH." Ahah Adonai
Tetragrammaton! 'Ah, Lord Tetragrammaton! behold, I cannot speak, for I am a child.'

351. "Therefore, why was it that Jeremiah could not speak, seeing that many sayings had passed from his lips
prior to his saying this? Did he not therefore he (when he said) that which is written ( in the text): 'Behold, I
cannot DBR, Deber, speak'?

352. "But we have learned that God influenced him so that he should speak to this end. For this is the
tradition: "What is the difference between DBVR, Debur, and AMIRH, Amirah? 'Amirah' is, as it were
(simple) speech, wherein is required no especial uplifting of the voice; 'Debur' is public speaking, wherein is
indeed necessary (considerable) elevation of voice and (loud) proclamation of words.

353. "Since it is written, Exod. xx, i: 'And God spake all these words, saying.'

354. "And according to what we have learned (by tradition), 'The whole earth heard this DBVR, Debur,
speech, and the whole earth trembled.' Because also it is written 'VIDBR, Vayedeber, and He spoke forth.'
And it is not written: 'VIAMR, Vayomar, and He said.'

355. "So also in this place: 'Behold! I cannot speak, DBR, Deber ;' that is, as a herald, by declaring an
address, and convincing the world through the Holy Spirit.

356. "If thus be the matter, this is also to be noted which is written: 'VIDBR IHVH, Vayedeber
Tetragrammaton; and Tetragrammaton spake forth unto Moses, saying.' Nevertheless, what one of the
prophets was so great as Moses? For never was any man so worthy as he; for he heard the DBVR, Debur,
loud voice, like the proclamation of a herald, and he feared not, neither did he tremble; while the other
prophets trembled even at AMIRH, Amirah, the speech, and were greatly afraid.

357. "Also we have learned that through the first and second dispositions of the beard it is necessary to pass
on to the third; like as it is written, Job xxxiii. 29: 'Behold, God worketh all this with man by three paths.'

358. "And come, behold! it is necessary through the two first conformations that thou pass on unto the third,
because the third form is in the midst.

359. "For, under the nose, beneath the two nostrils, there issueth a certain path, and from that path the hairs
are wanting.

360. "Wherefore are they wanting? Because it is written, Mic. vii. 18: 'VOVBR OL PShO, Va−Ghober Ghal
Peshang, and passing over transgression.' Therefore is that path prepared (namely) for the purpose of passing
over (transgression).

361. "And therefore that path resideth beneath the nostrils of the nose; and the hairs do not grow in that path,
because it subdueth iniquities.

362. "For it is written: 'Passing over transgression,' for the purpose of passing over unto the sacred mouth, in
order that it may say, 'I HAVE PARDONED.' 363. "We have learned that many threatened vials of wrath
look for this mouth, and to none among them is it manifested; for it is withdrawn and guarded around; it is
known, and it is not known.

364. "We have learned in the 'Book of Concealed Mystery': What is this which is written (in this disposition
of the letters in this ) word, PShO, Peshang? If they be first, the word 'OVBR, Ghober, passing over,' hath
place; if, on the other hand, not so, the word 'PShO, Peshang, transgression,' hath place.

CHAPTER XIV. CONCERNING THE THIRD PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS. 82


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

365. "What doth this phrase teach, 'passing over transgression'? ShPO, Shephau, influence, (it teacheth) if Sh
(in PShO ), be placed before the P.

366. "If they are not just, it remaineth (i.e., the influence), and passeth not over into Microprosopus.

367. "What is the difference between the one and the other? In Microprosopus (the matter standeth thus): this
path descendeth beneath the nostrils of His nose. It is written, Num. xii. 9: 'And the anger of Tetragrammaton
was kindled against him, and He departed.'

368. "What is this, 'And He departed'? Because the spirit of anger departed from those nostrils, and if he.
found any man before him, he was taken away, and was no more found.

369. "Which is intimated in these words, Isa. xl. 7: 'Because the Spirit of Tetragrammaton bloweth upon it.'

370. "But concerning Macroprosopus, it is written: 'Passing over transgression.'

37. "Also it is written, Job xxxvii. 21: 'And the spirit (wind) passeth over and hath cleansed them.'

372. "Also we have learned that on this account it is thus written: 'Passing over transgression' in that path.
Also concerning that ( passage), Exod. xii. 23: 'And He passeth over to smite the Egyptians.'

373. "Blessed is his portion who is worthy in this matter. And this is the third conformation of the path of the
venerable, holy, and excellent beard of the Ancient of the Ancient Ones."

374. Rabbi Schimeon said unto him: "May God, the Holy One, blessed be He, be gracious unto thee, and
protect thee most abundantly.

375. "Also we have learned: What is this which is written, 'With rejoicing will I rejoice in Tetragrammaton?'
Concerning the Ancient of Days, is it said: 'For He is the praise of all things.'

376. "We have learned, whensoever that path of the beard of the Ancient of Days is manifested, all the
authors of lamentation and mourning, and all the executors of judgment, are silent and hidden; nor is there
one of them who openeth his mouth to do harm, because that path is manifested in due form.

377 "Hence also he who toucheth that mouth, and adviseth it to keep silence, pointeth out this path with his
finger; and that is the symbol denoting the Holy Ancient One." (Others read: Because that path is the symbol
of silence; hence he who looked at another, and adviseth him to be silent, toucheth this path, which is the
symbol, &c.)

CHAPTER XV. CONCERNING THE FOURTH PART OF THE BEARD OF


MACROPROSOPUS.
378. THE hair is disposed in the fourth conformation, and it descendeth beneath the mouth from the one side
even unto the other side.

379. That is intimated (in the saying of Micah) in these words: "Of the remnant of his heritage:" LShAIRITh
NChLThV, Lishairith Nachalatho.

380. Like as it is said in 2 Kings xix. 4: "And thou shalt lift up thy prayer for the remnant that is left." Where
every part that is found truly remaining is called the remnant.

CHAPTER XV. CONCERNING THE FOURTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS. 83


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

381. For it is written, Zeph. iii. 13: "The remnant of Israel, ShARITh IShRAL, Sharith Israel, shall not do
iniquity."

CHAPTER XVI. CONCERNING THE FIFTH PART OF THE BEARD OF


MACROPROSOPUS.
382. THE fifth conformation. Another path goeth forth beneath the mouth. This is that which is written in the
saying of Micah: "LA HChZIQ LOD APV, Lo Hecheziq Lead Apo, He hath not kept his anger for ever."
"Arise Rabbi Yosi!"

383. Rabbi Yosi arose, and commencing said, Ps. cxliv. 15: "'Blessed is the people that is in such a case;
blessed is the people whose God is Tetragrammaton.'

384. "'Blessed is the people that is in such a case.' What is this 'ShKKH LV, Shekakah Lo, That is in such a
case?' Like as it is said in Est. vii. 10: 'And the wrath of the king was appeased,' ShKKH, Shekakah; that is,
'Became quiet from his wrathfulness.'

385. "Another exposition: He was appeased through his wrath, which is intimated in these words, Num. xi.
15: 'And if Thou dealest thus with me, kill me, I pray Thee, out of hand, if I have found grace in Thy sight.'

"'Kill me, I pray Thee, out of hand;' this is judgment of judgments. But 'Blessed is the people whose God is
Tetragrammaton;' this is mercies of mercies.

387. "Another exposition: ShKKH, Shekaka, is the name which includeth all names, in consequence of
which that Holy Blessed One maketh His wrath to pass away, and caused Microprosopus to be at peace, and
taketh away all those extraneous (matters) from the midst.

388. "We have learned through Barietha (or the tradition given forth without the holy city), that that path of
the conformation of the holy supernal Ancient of the Ancient Ones, which descendeth in the beard beneath
the nostrils of the nose, and this inferior path, are equal in every way, in such a manner that that which is
below is like that which is above. The superior (path) is called passing over transgression the inferior, 'He
hath not kept His anger for ever.' 389. "Also we have learned this: 'He hath not kept,' i.e., there is no place
wherein anger can remain. Like as in the superior there is opportunity given for taking away (anger), so also
in the inferior is the (same opportunity) afforded.

390. "We have learned this: whensoever in this Ancient One, the most concealed of all, this path is
uncovered, it is well for all the inferior (paths); for then appeareth counsel for doing good to them all.

391. "But when it is withdrawn, and is not uncovered, there is no counsel, neither is there any who knoweth
Him, save Himself.

392. "Like as also none knoweth the superior Eden, save Himself,. save Him, the Ancient of the Ancient
Ones.

393. "And concerning this it is written, Ps. xcii. 6: 'O Lord, how excellent are Thy works! Thy thoughts are
very deep!'"

394. Rabbi Schimeon said unto him: "May thy works be reckoned in order in the world to come by the
Ancient of the Ancient Ones!"

CHAPTER XVI. CONCERNING THE FIFTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS. 84


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

CHAPTER XVII. CONCERNING THE SIXTH PART OF THE BEARD OF


MACROPROSOPUS.
395. THE hair is arranged in the sixth conformation, and ascendeth from below upwards, and toucheth the
circles . of most excellent fragrance, even unto the beginning of the mouth above; and the hair descendeth
from the beginning (of the mouth above) unto the beginning of the opening of the mouth below. "Arise thou!
Rabbi Yisa, and expound this conformation."

396. Rabbi Yisa arose, and commenced, and said, Is. liv. 10: "'And thy blessing shall not depart from thee!'

397. "Also it is written: 'And in everlasting compassion have I had mercy upon thee.'

398. "Do not these verses contradict one another? They do not. For this is what we have learned: there is
given a compassion (of one kind), and again there is given a compassion of another kind. For the one is the
interior compassion, and the other is the external compassion.

399. "The interior compassion is that of which we have spoken concerning the Ancient of Days, and that is
concealed in this part of the heard, which is called the angle of the beard.

400. "Neither is it advisable for a man to destroy this part (of his beard) because of this interior compassion
of the Ancient of Days.

401. "And therefore is it written concerning the inferior priesthood, Lev. xxi. 5: 'They shall not make
baldness, upon their head, neither shall they shave off the angle of their beard.'

402. "Wherefore? Lest they should destroy the path of the Mercy of the Ancient One. For also the priesthood
is (symbolically) referred unto this path.

403. "Also we have learned in the 'Book of Concealed Mystery' that every work existeth in order that it may
procure increase for Mercy, and that it may establish the same; also that this is not to be cut off nor removed
from the world.

404. "This is that which is written: "And My Compassion shall not depart from thee.' Namely, the
Compassion of the Ancient of Days. 405. "(But when it is said in another text), 'And in mercy, OVLM,
Olahm, for ever (this is the sense), the mercy which is called 'mercy for ever' is the second form concerning
which it is written, Ps. lxxxix. 2: 'I have said, Mercy shall be built up for ever.'

406. "And this compassion of the Ancient of Days is the mercy of truth. And (this phrase) 'mercy of truth' is
not said concerning the life of the body, but concerning the life of the soul.

407. "And therefore is it written, Mic. vii. 1:8: 'Since He Himself wisheth Mercy.' This is the sixth
conformation of the venerable beard of the Ancient of the Ancient Ones."

CHAPTER XVIII. CONCERNING THE SEVENTH PART OF THE BEARD OF


MACROPROSOPUS.
408. THE seventh conformation is that wherein the hair is wanting, and there appear two apples in the circles
of fragrance, fair and beautiful of aspect.

409. Rabbi Schimeon commenced, and said, Cant. ii. 3: "'Like as the apple−tree among the trees of the wood,

CHAPTER XVII. CONCERNING THE SIXTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS. 85


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

so is my beloved among the sons.'

410. "What is the apple−tree? Like as this in itself hath three colours, so do the two apples of the holy blessed
one contain six colours.

411. "And those two apples which are the seventh conformation include all the six conformations before
mentioned.

412. "And concerning them is that passage (to be taken in), Prov. xvi. 15 'In the light of the countenance of
the King is life.' 413. "Also we have learned that from those apples goeth forth the life of the universe, and it
giveth joy unto Microprosopus; like as it is written, Num. vi. 24: 'The Lord maketh His countenance to shine
upon thee.'

414. "And it is written: 'In the light of the countenance of the King is life.' 'In the light of the countenance of
the King.' Those are the two apples of the circles of fragrance of which we have spoken.

415. "'The Lord make His countenance to shine upon thee.' Here is understood the exterior countenance
which when it shineth blesseth the universe.

416. "And we have learned that whensoever those external lights shine He blesseth the whole world, and
wrath is no longer found in the universe.

417. "And if these externals (do this), how much more do these two apples, which ever shine, which ever are
joyful!

418. "This is a tradition, given forth without the city. 'When those two apples are disclosed, Microprosopus
appeareth in joy; for all those inferior lights are joyful; and all those inferiors shine; and all the worlds
rejoice, and are perfected in all perfection; and all things rejoice and shine, and no good thing is wanting; all
things are satisfied at once; all things rejoice together at the same time.

419. "Come, behold! The external countenance at times shineth, at times is obscured; and therefore is it
written: 'The Lord make His face to shine upon thee.' And, Ps. i.: 'And cause His face to shine upon us. Selah.'

420. "Whence (we learn), that it is not always (luminous ), but only when those superior apples are uncovered.

421. "This have we learned by tradition. 'Those hidden apples shine, and are ever brilliant; and from them
proceed rays in three hundred and seventy directions; and in them all the six (preceding) conformations of
the beard are included.'

422. "This is that which is said, Mic. vii. 18: 'May He return and have mercy upon us!' May He return, that is,
again; whence it is to be noticed that sometimes they are concealed and sometimes uncovered; wherefore it
is said: 'May He return and have mercy upon us!"

423. "And in that which is inferior (correspondeth to this form ) the name, AMTh, Amath, Truth. This is the
seventh conformation, which includeth the six first, in the two apples of the Ancient of the Ancient Ones."

CHAPTER XIX

CHAPTER XIX 86
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

CONCERNING THE EIGHTH PART OF THE BEARD OF


MACROPROSOPUS.
424. THE eighth conformation. There goeth forth a certain tress of hairs surrounding the beard, and they hang
down evenly into the heart. "Arise thou, Eleazar, my son, and expound this conformation."

425. Rabbi Eleazar, his son, arose, and commenced, and said: "All things depend from the influx, even the
Book of the Law in the Temple. This have we understood from the 'Book of Concealed Mystery,' and it
speaketh thus.

426. "Therefore do not then all things depend from the influx? Also we have learned that the Book of the
Law must be holy, and its covering holy, and the Temple holy. 427. "Also it is written, Isa. vi. 4: 'And they
called one unto another and said: Holy, holy, holy!' Behold these three (repetitions of the word 'holy') unto
which the Book of the Law correspondeth, for its covering is holy, and the Temple is holy, and the book itself
is holy.

428. "And thus the law hath been constructed in triple holiness, in three degrees, in three days, (but) the
Schechinah (is) in the three (following) which are the Table, the Ark, and the Temple; and in the same
manner it dependeth from the Book of the Law, and that dependeth from the Influx.

429. "Also it is written, Jer. x. 2: 'Be ye not dismayed at the signs (or influences) of the heavens.' Because if
they exist in holiness, in the same way they must depend from the Influx.

430. But thus have we read in the "Book of Concealed Mystery" that this venerable holy tress of hair,
wherein all the locks of the beard hang down, is called the Influx. Wherefore? Because that all the holinesses
of the holinesses of all holinesses depend from that Influx.

431. "And in the Book of the Law, although it is holy, the ten holinesses do not descend, until it be brought
into the Temple. But after that it is brought into the Temple it is called holy with the ten holinesses.

432. "As in the above instance mention is not made of the Temple save when the ten holinesses are associated
with it.

433. "Also we have learned that all things depend from that Influx which is (symbolised by) that tress of (hair
of the beard) from which all (the other) hairs depend.

434. "Why is this called the Influx (or influence)? Because from it depend the influences and the influences
of the influences, and from it come forth those which are above and those which are below.

435. "And because it dependeth, and that in it all the things of the universe depend, superiors and inferiors;
also in the last place the Book of the Law, which is in the Temple, and is crowned with the ton holinesses, is
not excepted hence with the other holinesses. All things depend from it (this conformation, namely).

436. "And he who beholdeth that form, before him are they subjected and inflected (others read: 'all sins are
subjected, &c.'), according to that which is written: 'IKBVSh OVThINV, Yekebosh Auonothino, He hath
pardoned our iniquities' (or He hath subjected, &c.)."

437. Rabbi Schimeon said unto him: "O my son! blessed be thou by the Holy of the Holy Ones, the One
Ancient before all."

CONCERNING THE EIGHTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS. 87


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

CHAPTER XX. CONCERNING THE NINTH PART OF THE BEARD OF


MACROPROSOPUS.
438. THE ninth conformation. The hairs are mingled with those hairs that hang down, neither is one
pre−eminent above another. "Arise, Rabbi Abba!"

439. Rabbi Abba arose and said: "These are the hairs which are mingled with these which hang down, and
they are called 'the deep places of the sea,' because they depart from above in the fluid places of the brain.

440. "And from that place are cast out all the lords who are the exactors of the debts (of the trespasses) of
mankind, and they are subjugated."

441. Rabbi Schimeon said unto him: "Blessed be thou of the Ancient of Days!"

CHAPTER XXI. CONCERNING THE TENTH AND ELEVENTH PARTS OF


THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS.
442. THE tenth conformation. The hairs descend beneath the beard, and cover the throat beneath the beard.
"Arise, Rabbi Yehuda."

443. Rabbi Yehuda arose, and commenced, and said, Isa. ii. 19: "'And they shall enter into the holes of the
rocks, and into the caves of the earth, from the countenance of the terror of the Lord of Hosts, and from the
glory of His Majesty, when he shall arise to shake terribly the earth.'

444. "'From the countenance of the Terror of the Lord.' It is to be carefully noted that that which is exterior
is called the Terror of Tetragrammaton.

445. "'And from the Glory of His Majesty.' These are the hairs beneath the beard, and they are called the
Glory of His Majesty.

446. "(But) these two (conformations agree with) (§§ 268, 269, ante); the tenth with 'Thou shalt give truth
unto Jacob.' 447. "And the eleventh, because one hair is not pre−eminent over another hair, with I mercy unto
Abraham."'

CHAPTER XXII. CONCERNING THE TWELFTH PART OF THE BEARD OF


MACROPROSOPUS.
448. THE twelfth conformation is that the hairs do not hang over the mouth, and that the mouth is bare on
every part, and that beautiful are the hairs surrounding it, so that there may be no molestation there, as is fit.

449. But wherein consisteth the molestation? Doubtless it is frequently said, "If judgment exist in the place of
judgment (or, "If judgment follow after judgment"), molestation ariseth."

450. Therefore are the hairs of the beard either (symbolical of ) molestation or judgment, while the other parts
appear to (symbolise) mercy.

451. Surely it is said for this reason, because the breathings forth of the Spirit upon Microprosopus are not
molestations.

CHAPTER XX. CONCERNING THE NINTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS. 88


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

452. For we have learned that from that holy and excellent mouth of the Holy of the Holy Ones the Spirit
breaketh forth.

453. What spirit? The Spirit which floweth forth upon Microprosopus, that it may enshroud Him.

454. And with that Spirit are all those veiled which are inferior. And when that Spirit goeth forth, then is it
divided into 37,000 aspects, of which each one is expanded, but only in its proper place. 455. And he who is
worthy to be enshrouded is en. shrouded by (the Spirit).

456. And therefore hairs are not found upon the holy mouth, because thence the Spirit rusheth forth; neither is
it necessary that any ( extraneous things) whatsoever should be mingled therewith or approach thereto.

457. And that (mouth) is very secret, because to it nothing adhereth, nor doth anything touch upon it from
above or below; and it is concealed in the secret of secrets, so that it cannot be known.

458. In fact, it is not formed, nor doth it exist (properly speaking) in this conformation.

459. And because that Spirit which proceedeth unto the exteriors, and wherewith the true prophets have been
overshadowed, is called the mouth of Tetragrammaton.

460. But herein, in the Ancient of the Ancient Ones, is it not made manifest, nor is there any who knoweth
His Spirit save Himself.

461. And therefore are the hairs of (the beard) of equal length around the mouth; and this latter is bare in
every part.

462. And herein have our fathers put their trust, that they might be overshadowed by that Spirit which is
developed in multitudinous aspects, each in its proper place, wherewith all the equal hairs are surrounded.

463. This is that which is written in that passage of Micah: "Which thou has sworn unto our fathers."

464. And this is the holy and excellent twelfth conformation, from which, linked together, depend twelve
limitations above and twelve limitations below; even twelve limitations, according unto the twelve tribes of
our fathers.

465. This is that which is written: "Which Thou hast sworn unto our fathers."

CHAPTER XXIII. CONCERNING THE THIRTEENTH PART OF THE BEARD


OF MACROPROSOPUS.
466. THE thirteenth conformation. The hairs which are beneath the beard hang down on this side and on that
in beautiful and excellent dignity, and form a covering even unto the chest, and nothing is seen of the
countenance and of the places of fragrance save those two brilliant and beautiful apples.

467. Rabbi Schimeon spake and said: "O how blessed is his portion who is found in this excellent holy
assembly, wherein we are (assembled)! Blessed is his portion in this world and in the world to come.

468. "For we are seated in that excellent holiness which surroundeth us.

469. "And all those excellent conformations are coordinated, and crowned, and placed round about, each in

CHAPTER XXIII. CONCERNING THE THIRTEENTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS.


89
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

its own (proper) position, in the holy form of the beard.

470. "And this thirteenth disposition is the beautiful disposition which exciteth in itself so great desire that the
head ariseth towards it.

471. "From it depend all those which are comprehended in Microprosopus; from it depend alike those which
are supernal, those which are inferior.

472. "This is the form of perfection which consummateth all the dispositions, and which perfecteth all things.

473. "We have learned by tradition. Those parts are called QDM, Qadam, ancient days, days first of the
first. But those which are found in Microprosopus are called OVLM, Olahm, everlasting days, or days of the
ages.

474. "Also we have learned that those QDM, Qadam, ancient days, are all conformed in the conformations of
the beard, wherein is composed the Ancient of the Ancient Ones, the Concealed of the Concealed Ones. But
this thirteenth (conformation) comprehendeth them.

475. "And all the concealed superiors and inferiors are concealed in it, and they are comprehended in that
influx from which all things emanate; like as it is said:

476. "And that day is not comprehended in them, seeing it comprehendeth all things.

477. "And in that time wherein is stirred up the Ancient of Days in the superior conformations, that is called
one day wherein He ariseth to magnify His beard.

478. "Which is intimated in those words, Zech. xiv. 7: 'One day which is known to the Lord.'

479. "That alone prevaileth over all, that includeth all things that is called by the known name.

480. "For thus we have learned. In that place where there is day there is also night, seeing that day cannot
exist without night.

481. "But because in that time shall be the time of the dignity of the beard, that day is found alone.

482. "It is called neither day nor night, for it is not called day except for our (better understanding of the
symbolism involved), neither is it called night except for the same reason.

483. "And because that form includeth all things, hence nothing whatsoever is known or seen concerning it.

484. "And from it streameth down the oil of magnificence in thirteen directions, which flow down upon all
the inferiors in order that they may shine forth.

485. "In that oil are consummated the thirteen parts of the holy and excellent beard.

486. "And those forms which are in that beard are disposed and descend in many directions, neither can it be
seen how they are extended nor how they arise.

487. "They are hidden in all things, and they are concealed in all things; and no man knoweth their place,
except Him, the Ancient One.

CHAPTER XXIII. CONCERNING THE THIRTEENTH PART OF THE BEARD OF MACROPROSOPUS.


90
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

488. "In their expansion are they all included, like as it is said:

489. "He is known, and He is not known; He is concealed, and He is manifest.

490. "Concerning Him it is written. Isa. xlii. 8: 'ANI IHVH HVA , Ani Tetragrammaton Hoa, This is My
name, and My glory I give not unto another.'

491. "Also it is written, Ps. c. 2: 'HVA, Hoa, He, hath made us, and not we ourselves.'

492. "Also it is written, Dan. vii. 9: 'The Ancient of Days did sit,' that is, He remained in His place, and Him
hath no man known. He sitteth, but He is not found.

493. "Also it is written, Ps. cxxxix. 14: 'I will praise Thee, for I am fearfully and wonderfully made.'"

CHAPTER XXIV. CONCLUSION OF THE MATTER CONCERNING


MACROPROSOPUS.
494. RABBI SCHIMEON spake unto his companions, and said: "When that veil is expanded (by which is to
he understood the representation of the beard of Macroprosopus) which ye behold above us, I see that all
the conformations have descended therein, and that they shine forth in that place. (Now like as if he intended
to say, AMN, Amen, the discourse concerning Macroprosopus being finished, he describeth this particular
symbolism, which is contained in the ensuing symbols.)

495. "And a certain covering, even the splendour of the most holy and blessed God (otherwise the opening of
holiness; but by this is understood the Tetragrammaton, which, together with the name, ADNI, Adonai,
maketh the number of the word AMN, Amen, that is 91): is expanded through four columns on four sides
(which are the four letters of the holy name, by which he saith that space is surrounded ).

496. "One column is so placed that it reacheth from the lowest unto the highest. (This is the Kingdom of the
emanations, the base and lowest Part of the whole system of emanation, because it is said to ascend from
the lowest part of the middle column even unto the summit of the Crown. )

497. "And therein is a certain MGRVPIA, Megerophia, vessel containing fire (for like as the fire an the
altar could not be touched with bare hands, so that

name, Tetragrammaton, cannot be touched and pronounced by the mouth, but it is touched and produced by
ADNI, Adonai, which is ShM, Sham, His name; for ShM and MGRVPIA both Yield 340 by Gematria)

; and in the fire−containing vessel are four keys, sharp on every side (for such was the form of the keys, in
order that they might draw aside the veil, as a lock is shot back by a key. But the four letters of the name
ADNI, Adonai, are hereby to be understood, which are inserted into and united with the four letters IHVH, in
this manner, IAHDVNHI); which seize upon that. veil, and withdraw it from the superiors.

498. "And thus in the second column and the third column and the fourth column (that is, the four letters
are applied to the other four letters, as hath just been said).

499. "And between one column and another column are contained eighteen bases of columns (here is to be
understood the name expanded through the seventy−two names or numbers; for either pertain unto
Macroprosopus, and four times eighteen yieldeth seventy−two ): and they shine forth with brilliancy in the
openings carved out in

CHAPTER XXIV. CONCLUSION OF THE MATTER CONCERNING MACROPROSOPUS. 91


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

THE SCHEMAHAMPHORASCH.

K L H H M I H L A H K A L M O S I V
I

L A Q R B Z H A L Z H K L H L I L H

I V M I H L O V D I Th A H Sh M T I V

18 17 16 15 14 13 12 11 10 9 8 7 6 5 4 3 2 1

M K L I V L A R Sh I H N Ch M I N P L
H

N V H Ch Sh K V I A R A Th H L I L H V

D Q Ch V R B M I H Th A H V H I K L V

36 35 34 33 32 31 30 29 28 27 26 25 24 23 22 21 20 19

N N O H D V M O O S I V M H I R Ch A
V

THE SCHEMAHAMPHORASCH. 92
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

I N M Ch N H I Sh R A L V I H I H O N

Th A M Sh I V H L I L H L K H Z O M I

54 53 52 51 50 49 48 47 46 45 44 43 42 41 40 39 38 37

M H I R Ch A M D M O I V M H I N P M
H

V I B A B I N M Ch N H M Tz R I M V B

M I M H V O Q B I V H B R Ch L M I H

72 71 70 69 68 67 66 65 64 63 62 61 60 59 58 57 56 55

(If to each of these triliteral names AL or IH, El or Yah, be added, the names of 72 Angels are obtained, who
rule over the 72 quinaries of the degrees of the Zodiac.)

1. Vehu; 2. Yeli; 3. Sit; 4. Aulem; 5. Mahash; 6. Lelah; 7. Aka; 8. Kahath; 9. Hezi; 10. Elad; 11. Lav; 12.
Hahau; 13. Yezel; 14. Mebah; 15. Heri; 16. Haqem; 17. Lau; 18. Keli; 19. Levo; 20. Pahel; 21. Nelak; 22.
Yiai; 23. Melah; 24. Chaho; 25. Nethah; 26. Haa; 27. Yereth; 28. Shaah; 29. Riyi; 30. Aum; 31. Lekab; 32.
Vesher; 33. Yecho; 34. Lebach; 35. Keveq; 36. Menad; 37. Ani; 38. Chaum; 39. Rehau; 40. Yeiz; 41. Hahah;
42. Mik; 43. Veval; 44. Yelah; 45. Sael; 46. Auri; 47. Aushal; 48. Miah; 49. Vaho; 50. Doni; 51. Hachash;
52. Aumem; 53. Nena; 54. Neith; 55. Mabeh; 56 Poï; 57. Nemem; 58. Yeil; 59. Harach; 60. Metzer; 61.
Vamet; 62. Yehah; 63. Aunu; 64. Mechi; 65: Dameb; 66. Menaq; 67. Aiau; 68. Chebo; 69. Raah; 70. Yebem;
71. Haiai; 72. Möum.

that veil, and so on all four sides. (By the "openings carved out" is to be understood the exposition of the
name, Tetragrammaton .)

THE SCHEMAHAMPHORASCH. 93
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

500. "I beheld those forms which shine above it, and await the words of our lips, that they may be crowned
and raised each in its own place.

501. "And when they are expounded by our lips, they ascend singly and are crowned, and are disposed in that
order which is here given forth by the mouth of whosoever amongst us (happeneth to be expounding them).

502. "And whensoever anyone amongst us openeth his mouth, so that he may speak concerning any
conformation, that form is localized and awaiteth the voice which goeth forth from our lips, and then it
ascendeth in its place and is crowned.

503. "And all the columns on this side and on that side rejoice ( here are understood the holy living creatures,
the cherubim, which were before the columns, and the chiefs of the angelic guards, and they are said to have
come hither); because they hear that which before they knew not. And in the sound of your voices are heard
the rushing of countless chariots (the noise of the wings of the hosts of the angelic chariots of God, rushing
onwards); and they stand here around you in multitudes, awaiting the speech of your voice.

504. "O blessed are ye in the world to come! because all the words which go forth from your mouth are all
holy, all true, which err not, neither on the right nor yet on the left (seeing they are the holy names of God).
505. "God, the holy and blessed one, rejoiceth to hear these things, and He listeneth unto these words until He
himself shall give sentence, for in the world to come all these holy words shall be enumerated for the second
time.

506. "Concerning you is it written, Cant. vii. 9: 'And the roof of thy mouth, like the best wine for my beloved,
that goeth down sweetly, causing the lips of those that are asleep to speak.'

507. "What is this? 'Causing the lips of those that are asleep to speak.' Because even in the world to come
shall your lips utter the words of the law before Him."

CHAPTER XXV. THE INGRESS OF MICROPROSOPUS.


508. "Now take ye your places, and apply the science (the Qabalah ) to describe how the parts of
Microprosopus are conformed, and how He is clothed with His conformations, from the forms of the Ancient
of Days, the Holy of the Holy Ones, the Withdrawn of the Withdrawn ones, the Concealed one of All.

509. "For now wisdom requireth that ye judge a true judgment, becoming and honourable; so that ye may
dispose all the conformations as accurately as possible.

510. "But the conformations of Microprosopus are disposed from the forms of Macroprosopus; and his
constituent parts are expanded on this side and on that under a human form, so that there may be manifest in
Him the Spirit of the Concealed One in every part.

511. "So that He may be placed upon His throne, because it is written, Ezek. i. 16: 'And above the likeness of
a throne, the appearance as the likeness of a man upon it above.'

512. "'Like as the appearance of a man;' because that (form) includeth all forms. 'Like as the appearance of a
man;' because He includeth all names. 'Like as the appearance of a man.' Because He includeth all secret
things which have been said or propounded before the world was created, even although they have not been
substituted herein."

CHAPTER XXV. THE INGRESS OF MICROPROSOPUS. 94


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

CHAPTER XXVI. CONCERNING THE EDOMITE KINGS.


513. BEHOLD! this have we learned in the "Book of Concealed Mystery": that the Ancient of the Ancient
Ones before that He prepared His conformations (in the equilibrium of balance) formed certain kings,
collected certain kings, and gave due proportion unto certain kings; but they only subsisted (for a time) until
He could expel them; and in that time hath He concealed them.

514. This is intimated in those words, Gen. xxxvi. 31: "And these are the kings which have reigned in
ADVM, Edom." In the land of Edom; that is, in the place wherein all judgments exist.

515. But all these subsisted not until the White Head of the Ancient of the Ancient Ones was disposed (in its
ordination).

516. When this was conformed, He disposed all the inferior conformations, and all the superior and inferior
forms were thus arranged.

517. Thence we learn that unless the head (or ruling power, or government) of a nation, whatever form of
government it may happen to be, be first properly constituted, that nation cannot be properly ruled. For if the
head be first disposed aright, then all things can be ordained, but if that be not first disposed aright, neither
can the nation be governed aright.

518. The ordering of all things is from the Ancient of Days. For before that He was disposed in His
conformation, nothing could be ordained, because as yet it was first necessary that Himself should be
ordained; and all the worlds were desolate.

519. Which these words intimate, ibid. 32: "And there reigned in Edom Bela, the son of Beor."

520. "And there reigned in Edom." Here is a certain venerable Arcanum hidden; for herein is that place
intimated wherein all the judgments are collected together, and whence they depend.

521. "Bela, the son of Beor." This is the tradition. This denoteth the most rigorous judicial decree, for whose
cause there are collected together a thousand times a thousand authors of mourning and woe.

522. "And the name of his city is Dinhabah." What is DNHBH, Dinhabah? As if it were to be said, "Give
forth judgment." Like as it is written, Prov. xxx. 15: "The horse−leech hath two daughters, crying, 'Give,
give.'" 523. But when he ascendeth, so that he may be conformed therein, he cannot subsist and he cannot
consist. Wherefore? Because the form of the man is not as yet constituted.

524. What is the reason of this? Because the constitution of man containeth all things under this form, and in
that form are all things disposed.

525. And because that constitution of Adam was not as yet found, they (the Edomite Kings) could not subsist,
nor be conformed, and they were destroyed.

526. Have they then been abolished, and are all these included in ( the supernal) man? For truly they were
abolished that they might be withdrawn from form, until there should come forth the representation of Adam.

527. But when that form is configurated, they all exist, and have been restored in another condition.

529. Some among them are mitigated, and (some) are not mitigated; but evidently there are certain of them
which have not been mitigated.

CHAPTER XXVI. CONCERNING THE EDOMITE KINGS. 95


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

529. And if thou shalt say: "Also it is written, 'and he died,' surely that denoteth that they were altogether
abolished." I answer that it is not so; but whosoever descendeth from his former position wherein he was
before, concerning such an one is it said in Scripture that he died.

530. Like as it is written, Exod. ii. 23: "And the King of Egypt died." Because he descended from the former
condition wherein he was.

531. But after that Adam was constituted they are called by other names, and are mitigated in a permanent
condition through him; and they exist in their place, and are all called by other names and not by their former
(appellations).

532. Excepting that one concerning whom it is written, Gen. xxxvi. 39: "And the name of his wife was
Mehetabel, the daughter of Matred, the daughter of Mezahab.

533. For what reason? Because they were not abolished like the others. Wherefore? Because they were male
and female, like as the palm−tree, which groweth not unless there be both male and female.

534. And because now they are found male and female, and it is not written concerning them that they died
like as the others, but remained in a fixed condition.

535. But they were not (definitely composed) until the form of the man was composed (that is, the supernal
man). But after that the form of the supernal Adam was constituted, they were restored in another condition,
and came in proper order.

CHAPTER XXVII. CONCERNING THE SKULL OP MICROPROSOPUS AND


ITS APPURTENANCES; NAMELY, CONCERNING THE SUBTLE AIR, AND
THE FIRE, AND THE DEW.
536. THIS is the tradition. When the White Head propounded unto Himself to superadd ornament unto His
own adornment, He constituted, prepared, and produced one single spark from His intense splendour of light.
He fanned it and condensed it (or conformed it).

537. And He developed His thought, and extended it in three hundred and seventy directions.

538. And the spark subsisted, and waited until the pure air went forth which involved it around; and an
ultimate extension having been made, He produced a certain hard skull (bounded) on four sides. 539. And
in that pure subtle air was the spark absorbed and comprehended and included therein.

540. Dost thou not think therein? Truly it is hidden therein.

541. And therefore is that skull expanded in its sides; and that air is the most concealed attribute of the
Ancient of Days.

542. In the spirit which is hidden in that skull there are expanded fire on the one side and air on the other.
And the subtle air is whirled about it from this side, and the subtle fire is whirled about it from that side.

543. What is the fire in this place? But verily it is not fire, but that splendour which is included in the subtle
air, and it shineth in two hundred and seventy worlds.

544. And rigour or judgment is found therefrom; and therefore it is called the hard skull.

CHAPTER XXVII. CONCERNING THE SKULL OP MICROPROSOPUS AND ITS APPURTENANCES;


96 NAM
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

545. Within that skull are nine thousand myriads of worlds, which receive the influx from it, and are at peace
above it.

546. In that skull distilleth the dew from the White Head, which is ever filled therewith; and from that dew
are the dead raised unto life.

547. And that dew hath in itself two colours. From the White Head there is a whiteness in it, which entirely
comprehendeth all whiteness.

548. But whensoever it remaineth in that head of Microprosopus, there appeareth in it a redness, like as in
crystal, which is white, and there appeareth a red colour in the white colour.

549. And therefore is it written, Dan. xii. 2: "And many of them that sleep in the dust of the earth shall
awake, some to everlasting life, and some to shame and everlasting contempt." 550. "To everlasting life."
Because they are worthy of that whiteness which cometh from Macroprosopus, even from the Ancient of
Days.

551. "To shame and everlasting contempt." Because they are worthy of that redness of Microprosopus.

552. And all things are contained in that dew as is intimated in these words, Isa. xxvi. 19: "Because the dew
of lights is thy dew"where there is a duality of expression.

553. And that dew, which distilleth, distilleth daily upon the field of apples, in colour white and red.

554. This skull shineth in two colours toward this side and toward that.

555. And from that subtle air, from the skull, there are expanded in His countenance one hundred and fifty
myriads of worlds; and therefore is He called Zauir Aphin (or Anpin), Microprosopus, the Lesser
Countenance.

556. But in that time, when there is need, is His countenance expanded and made vast, because He looketh
back upon the countenance of the Ancient of the Ancient Ones, from whom is the life of the universe.

557. And from that skull there is a place of exit in one place unto those which are below; and they reflect His
light towards the Ancient of Days, when they ascend in numeration beneath the wand.

558. Therefore is His skull cleft beneath, when (the inferiors) ascend in numeration, and from this cleavage a
reflection of light ariseth toward the Ancient of Days.

CHAPTER XXVIII. CONCERNING THE BRAIN AND MEMBRANE OF THE


BRAIN OF MICROPROSOPUS.
559. IN the cavities of the skull three hollow places are found wherein is located the brain.

560. And a thin membrane is placed therein, but not a thick membrane, hidden also as that of the Ancient of
Days.

561. And therefore is this brain expanded, and it shineth (or proceedeth) in thirty−two paths. The same is
that which is written, Gen. ii. 7: "And a river went forth out of Eden."

CHAPTER XXVIII. CONCERNING THE BRAIN AND MEMBRANE OF THE BRAIN OF MICROPROSOPUS
97
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

562. Also we have learned that in the three hollow places of the skull the brain is contained.

563. Out of the first cavity proceedeth a certain fountain of the brain in four directions, and it goeth forth
from the skull, in whose cavity are contained those thirty−two paths which are the spirits of wisdom.

564. Out of the second cavity there goeth forth and expandeth a second certain fountain, and the fifty gates
(of the Understanding ) are opened.

565. In those fifty gates are contained the fifty days of the law; the fifty years of the jubilee; and the fifty
thousand generations wherein the most holy Godblessed be He!intendeth to restore and commemorate His
Spirit in them.

566. From the third cavity there go forth a thousand times a thousand conclaves and assemblies, wherein
DOTh, Daath, Knowledge, is contained and dwelleth. 567. And the hollow place of this cavity is placed
between the other two cavities and all those conclaves are filled from either side.

568. This is that which is written, Prov. ii. 4: "And in knowledge shall the conclaves be filled."

569. And those three are expanded over the whole body, on this side and on that, and with them doth the
whole body cohere, and the body is contained by them on every side, and through the whole body are they
expanded and diffused.

CHAPTER XXIX. CONCERNING THE HAIR OF MICROPROSOPUS.


570. WE have learned that from the skull of His head (i.e., of Microprosopus) hang one thousand times a
thousand myriad myriads of locks of black hair, and they are intertwined together each to the other, and they
are mingled together.

571. But there is no classification made of the locks of hair separately, because pure and impure alike adhere
to each other therein, and here (the description above given) mentions both pure and impure together.

572. In all those sides which are pure, and in all those which are impure, there are intricate and dense locks of
hair, some of which are soft, some hard.

573. And in single locks doth the hair hang down, curls upon curls, which emit flames, and hang down in
beautiful and strong array, like those of a brave hero victorious in war.

574. They are excellent as the great and foliated cedars. This is that which is written, Cant. v. 15: "Excellent
as the cedars." 575. The curling locks are parted on this side and on that above the head.

576. Also we have learned that they remain in curls because they proceed from many fountains of the three
canals of the brain.

577. For from the fountain of one cavity of the skull proceedeth the hair, and it becomes curls upon curls
(formed), from the fountains proceeding from that cavity.

578. From the second cavity there go forth fifty fountains, and from those fountains the hair issueth, and it
becometh curls upon curls, and they are mingled with the other locks.

579. From the third cavity there go forth a thousand times a thousand conclaves and assemblies, and from
them all the hair issueth; and it becometh curls upon curls, and they are mingled with the other locks.

CHAPTER XXIX. CONCERNING THE HAIR OF MICROPROSOPUS. 98


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

580. And therefore are those locks so curling, and all the progeny of them is produced from the three cavities
of the brain of the skull.

58t. And all those curls hang down and are spread over the sides of the ears.

532. And therefore is it written, Dan. ix. 18: "Incline thine ear, O my God, and hear."

583. And in those curls there are found alike right and left, light and dark, mercy and judgment, and
everything (that hath in itself the qualities of) right and left dependeth thence (from Microprosopus), and not
from the Ancient One.

584. In the parting of the hair appeareth a certain slender path, which hath a certain connection with that path
of the Ancient of Days, and from that path are divided six hundred and thirteen paths, which are distributed
among the paths of the precepts of the law.

585. Like as it is written, Ps. xxv. 6: "All the paths of Tetragrammaton are mercy and truth unto such as keep
His covenant and His testimony."

586. We have learned that in the single locks a thousand times a thousand utterances of the speech of
Tetragrammaton are found, which depend from the single locks.

587. Among them some are hard (rigorous) and some soft ( merciful), as (belonging unto) the Lord of the
equilibrium (or, the Lord of mercy, who is an equilibrium between these); and therefore is He
(Microprosopus) said to include right and left.

CHAPTER XXX. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF MICROPROSOPUS.


588. THE forehead of the skull is the inspection of inspection, and it is not uncovered, except in that time
when it is necessary to visit sinners for the purpose of examining their deeds.

589. Also we have learned that when that forehead is uncovered, all the lords of judgment are stirred up, and
the whole universe is brought under judgment.

590. Save in that time when the prayers of the Israelites ascend before the Ancient of Days, and entreat mercy
for His children; then is uncovered the forehead of the benevolence of benevolences, and it shineth down
upon this (forehead) of Microprosopus, and judgment is quieted.

591. Over this forehead there goeth forth a certain portion of hair, which is extended over it from the brain,
which produceth the fifty gates (of understanding).

592. And when it is expanded, that brow glows with anger; it is the inspector of the sinners of the
worldnamely, of those who are shameless in their deeds.

593. Like as it is written, Jer. iii. 3: "And thou hadst the forehead of a woman who is a whore, thou refusedst
to be ashamed."

594. And we have learned that that hair subsisteth not in that part of the forehead; so that it may be uncovered
against those who remain steadfast in their iniquities.

595. And when the Holy Oneblessed be He!is awakened, that He may be pleased with the just, the
Countenance of the Ancient of Days shineth upon the Countenance of Microprosopus, and His forehead ( that

CHAPTER XXX. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF MICROPROSOPUS. 99


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

of Macroprosopus) is uncovered, and illuminateth that forehead (that of Macroprosopus), and then is called
the rime of benevolence.

596. But as often as judgment threateneth, and that forehead of Microprosopus is uncovered, there is
uncovered the forehead of the Ancient of the Ancient Ones, and judgment is mitigated and is not exercised.

597. We have learned that that forehead is expanded into two hundred thousand rednesses of rednesses,
which are contained therein, and are included therein.

598. And when the forehead of Microprosopus is uncovered, licence is given unto all those to destroy. But
when the forehead of the benevolence of benevolences is uncovered, so that it may shine upon that forehead
(of Microprosopus) and upon all those (rednesses ), then are they quieted.

599. Also we have learned by tradition: Twenty−four superior judgments are found, and they are all called
NTzChIM, Netzachim, or Victories; howsoever, while (in the arrangement of letters, NTzChIM, the singular)
NTZCh, Netzach, is called Victory ( i.e., means that), the neighbouring letters (M and N in NTzChIM ),
being permuted, (we obtain NTzChIN singular), MTzCh, Metzach (meaning) forehead.

600. Therefore (the same word signifieth) forehead and Victory, which is in the plural victories. And this is
that which is given by tradition: The Victory of victories. And they are in the forehead, but certain among
them are extended in the body in (certain ) known parts.

601. This is the exotic tradition: What is that which is written, 1 Sam. xv. 29: "Also the Netzach of Israel doth
not lie nor repent, for He is not man that He should repent."

602. Now have we declared that Arcanum according to its constitution. All that Victory which is expanded in
the body, at that time when the world is to be judged and converted, admitteth repentance, neither executeth
judgment if they be converted.

603. For what reason? Because the matter resteth in that place which is called Adam, and He may repent.

604. But if that Victory be seen and uncovered in that part of the head just spoken ofnamely, the
foreheadthere is neither time nor opportunity for repentance.

605. Wherefore? Because it is not that place which is called Adam, for the countenance and the nose are not
uncovered, but the forehead alone.

606. And in that part(i.e., the forehead) the whole countenance is not found, for that (forehead) is not called
Adam, and therefore is it said: "He is not a man that He may repent" ( i.e., He, HOAVA, H, is not Adam),
&c.). So also is it as regardeth the (proportion of) Victory in the other parts of the body ( of Macroprosopus).

CHAPTER XXXI. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MICROPROSOPUS.


607. The eyes of the head (of Microprosopus) are diverse from all other eyes. There is a shadowy darkness
cast by the eyebrows which is (as if it were) painted above the eyes, whence all eyes are overshadowed with a
dark shade.

608. Curling hairs hang down from the curls of the hair which is above them, and mark the form of the
eyebrows above the eyes, at the commencement of the forehead.

609. And in both (the eyebrows) are contained seven hundred times a thousand lords of inspection who reside

CHAPTER XXXI. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MICROPROSOPUS. 100


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

above the eyelids.

610. In the eyelids radiate one thousand four hundred myriads (of hairs), which adhere to the edges and form
the eyelashes; and far above these is the inspection of the eye of the Ancient of Days.

611. And as often as those eyelids (of Microprosopus) are raised, the same eye (i.e., that of Microprosopus)
appeareth, just as when the eyes of any man are opened when he awaketh from sleep.

612. And (the eyes of Microprosopus) behold the open eye ( of Macroprosopus shining down upon them),
and they are rendered brilliant with a certain brilliant whiteness of the good eye (i.e., that of Macroprosopus,
because in Him "all is right"i.e., goodand there is no left).

613. Like as it is written, Cant. v. 12: "Washed with milk." What is "with milk?" With this excellent primal
whiteness. 614. And in that time is there found with Him (i.e., Microprosopus) an intuition of mercy, and
therefore the prayer of the Israelites ascendeth, because His eyes are opened (i.e., those of Microprosopus),
and are whitened with that whiteness (of the eye of Macroprosopus).

615. Like as it is written, Ps. xliv. 23: "Awake; why sleepest Thou, O Tetragrammaton? Arise."

616. And truly as often as His eyes are not open, all the lords of judgment subdue the Israelites, and the other
nations have dominion over them.

617. But whensoever He openeth His eyes, these are illuminated from the good eye (of Macroprosopus), and
mercy is over Israel; and His eye turneth around and executeth vengeance upon the other nations.

618. This is that same which is written, Ps. xxxv. 23: "Awake, and arise." "Awake!" and (Thine eye) shall be
illuminated with that whiteness. "Arise!" so that it may exercise judgment upon those who have overcome
them.

619. When his eyes are opened they appear beautiful as those of doves; in colour, white, red, and black, and
golden yellow.

620. And this eye (otherwise, this whiteness) is not uncovered except when it is looked upon by the good eye,
and then all those colours are covered (otherwise, bathed) with this whiteness of the rays.

621. From those colours, when they are uncovered, go forth seven eyes of Providence, which issue from the
black of the eye.

622. This is that which is said, Zac. iii. 9: "Upon one stone seven eyes."

623. What is the "one stone?" The black of the eye.

624. From the red go forth seven emissaries, who deflect towards the left side, and they flame with fire,
which is toward the north side, and they are combined, so that they may be expanded into the world for the
purpose of uncovering the ways of sinners. 625. This is that which is written, Zach. iv. 10: "Those seven are
the eyes of Tetragrammaton going forth throughout the whole earth."

626. From the yellow go forth seven pure splendours (otherwise lights), which are turned towards the south
side, and they are combined so that they may be extended into the world, towards those ways which are
necessary to be uncovered (otherwise towards those deeds, &c.).

CHAPTER XXXI. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MICROPROSOPUS. 101


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

627. Like as it is written, Job xxxiv. 21: "Because His eyes are upon the ways of man." And when they are
illuminated with that whiteness, then they behold all the lords of truth, in order to do good unto the world
because of them; and every glance (of those eyes) is benevolent towards Israel.

628. But with the red colour He beholded those who are bound; which is intimated in these words, Exod. iii.
7: "In seeing have I seen;" "In seeing," for the purpose of doing good unto them; "I have seen," that by
vindicating them I may deliver them from their afflictors.

620. And therefore is it written, Ps. xliv. 24: "Awake: wherefore sleepest Thou, O Tetragrammaton? Arise!
forsake us not for ever." "Awake and arise." There are two inspections, two openings, two good things; there
is mercy, there is also vengeance.

630. The first colour is red, hidden and inclosed within red; in comparison with it, all other reds do not seem
to be (red).

631. Around this red goeth a certain black thread (of colour ), and surroundeth it.

632. This second colour is black, like that stone which goeth forth from the abyss once in a thousand years
into the great sea. 633. And when that stone goeth forth there cometh a tempest and a storm upon the great
sea and its waters are troubled, and (their motion soundeth as) a voice, and they are heard by the great fish
which is called Leviathan.

634. And this stone goeth forth, and is whirled onward in the current of the sea, and goeth forth thence; and
this, is so great a blackness that beside it all other blacknesses are as nought (otherwise, now it is withdrawn
because all the other paths are hidden and enshrouded by it).

635. And such is the blackness of the black (part of) the eye, which includeth and concealeth all the
remaining blacknesses; and about that blackness there is found a certain red thread (of colour) which
surroundeth that blackness.

636. The third colour is the yellow of all yellows, which includeth and concealeth all other yellows, and in
the circumference of that yellow there whirl around two threads (of colour), a red thread on the one direction,
and a black thread in another direction; and they surround that yellow colour.

637. But when that white brilliance whirleth around it, and the eye flameth with that white brilliance, all
those other colours are not at rest, and are submerged in the lowest depths thereof; the red, the yellow, and the
black are not seen, only that white brilliance alone; which receiveth its light from Him, even from the Ancient
of Days.

638. And from that (white brilliance) all the inferiors shine, neither is any colour seen save that white
brilliance alone. And therefore are all the lords of redness and blackness, which are as it were twin (colours),
displaced.

639. This is the same which is written, Cant. iv. 2: "Which go up from the washing, which are all twins."

640. What is this, "From the washing?" From that white brilliance of the excellent holy eye; for all are twins,
the one (colour) is as the other.

641. But truly doth not he (the author of the Canticles) say that the teeth are each in turn like a shorn flock;
and thou sayest that all these are twins?

CHAPTER XXXI. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MICROPROSOPUS. 102


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

642. Nevertheless, the sense is that this whiteness of them is as that whiteness of the eyes (of Microprosopus)
when they are made brilliant by the white brilliance of the supernal eye (of Macroprosopus).

643. And the just are about to understand and behold that thing in the Spirit of Wisdom.

644. Like as it is written, Isa. lii. 3: "Because they shall see eye to eye." When? "When Tetragrammaton shall
bring again Zion."

645. Also it is written, Num. xiv. 14: "By whom Thou, O Tetragrammaton! art seen eye to eye:" and then
the opening of the eyes is toward good.

646. For there is so opening of the eyes toward good, and there is also another (opening of the eyes) toward
evil.

647. Toward good, like as it is written, Dan. ix. 18: "Open Thine eyes and behold our desolations, and the
city over which Thy name hath been pronounced." Here it is toward good.

648. But toward evil, like as it is written, Isa. xxxiii. 20: "Thine eyes shall see Jerusalem a quiet habitation, a
tabernacle that shall not be taken down; not one of the stakes thereof shall ever be removed." Here truly it is
toward good and toward evil, because the one existeth not without the other. 649. We have learned it in the
"Book of Concealed Mystery." What is this? "Thine eyes shall see Jerusalem a quiet habitation." Is not
Jerusalem therefore a quiet habitation? Also it is written, Isa. i. 21: "Justice dwelt therein." But in the place
wherein justice is found there is not rest, neither is it at peace (otherwise: In the place wherein judgment
dwelleth and is found, this justice is not rest, &c.).

650. For verily this is the true interpretation: "Thine eyes shall see Jerusalem a quiet habitation" (is thus to be
explained). The habitation is said to be quiet, in respect of the Ancient of Days, who looketh upon those eyes
(of Microprosopus).

651. For truly His eye is quiet and tranquil; the eye of mercy the eye which altereth not from this aspect unto
any other aspect.

652. And therefore is it written OINK, (instead of OINIK) "They shall behold Thine eye:" not Thine eyes,
(seeing OINK is written) without the second I, Yod.

653. But how cometh it that it is said Jerusalem, and not Zion? It is properly thus said for the purpose of
subjugating judgment which was found therein, and for exciting mercy upon it.

654. Also have we learned this. It is written, Dent. xi. 12: "The eyes of Tetragrammaton thy God are upon it,
from the beginning of the year even unto the end of the year." This is that which is written: "Justice dwelt
therein;" because therein are found many most severe judgments, as in all other instances.

655. But in the time to come there shall be found therein one eye of mercy (namely) the eye of the Ancient of
Days.

656. This is that which is intimated, Isa. liv. 7: "But with great mercies will I gather thee."

657. Where, because it is said "with mercies," what is (the meaning of the adjective) "great" (used herewith):
Assuredly because mercy is duplicated, (namely) the mercy of the Ancient of Days (Macroprosopus), which
is called "great mercies."

CHAPTER XXXI. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MICROPROSOPUS. 103


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

658. And the mercy of Microprosopus, which is called mercies plain and unqualified, seeing that in Him
there are right and left, ( symbolizing the balance of) justice and Mercy. And therefore is it said: "And in
great mercies will I gather thee;" those, namely, of the Ancient of Days.

659. This have we learned. In those eyes (of Microprosopus), and in the two colours of themnamely, in the
red and in the blackthere are said to abide two tears, and when He, even the Holy of the Holy Ones, desireth
to have mercy upon the Israelites, then He sendeth down those two tears so that they may grow sweet in the
( waters of the) great sea.

660. The great sea, which is that of excellent wisdom, so that in that stream (otherwise, white brilliance) and
in that fountain they may be cleansed; and they go forth from the great sea, and there is mercy upon the
Israelites.

CHAPTER XXXII. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MICROPROSOPUS.


661. WE have learned it in the "Book of Concealed Mystery." The nose of Microprosopus. From the nose is
the countenance known. In this nose is diverse symbolism.

662. For it is written, Ps. xviii. 8: "There went up a smoke out of His nose, and fire out of His mouth
devoured; coals were kindled by it."

663. "There went up a smoke out of His nose." In this smoke are included both the fire and the burning coals;
for there is no smoke without fire, neither fire without smoke. Truly all things result ( herefrom: otherwise,
are kindled herein) and go forth from His nose.

664. Also we have learned that when these three things are associated together which are included in that
smoke which issueth from the nose, the nose is lengthened.

665. And therein are two colours, for the smoke bloweth and rusheth forth black and red; and they call it
AP, Aph, wrath; and ChIMH, Chimah, fervour; and MShChITh, Meshachith, perdition.

666. And if thou sayest wrath and fervour, it is well, since it is written, Deut. ix. 19: "Since I have feared
because of wrath and fervour." For these are the black and red smoke. But whence is added MShChITh,
Meshachith, perdition?

667. Because it is written, Gen. xiii. 10: "Before that Tetragrammaton destroyed Sodom and Gomorrah." But
the word ShChTh, Shachith, denoted perdition brought about by burning, kindled fire.

668. Also we have learned that there are five GBVRAN, Geboran, severities in this conformation of
Microprosopus, and they ascend in one thousand and four hundred severities, GBVRAN; and they are
extended in His nose, and in His mouth, and in His arms, and in His hands, and in His fingers.

669. And therefore is it written, Ps. cvi. 2: "Who can declare the GBVRVTh, Geburoth, powers of
Tetragrammaton?"

670. Hence it is written, "powers" Geburoth (in the plural number ); and it is written, 1 Chron. xxix. ii:
"Thine! O Tetragrammaton, are Gedulah and Geburah," in the singular (number).

671. Assuredly thus have we learned. When all those severities are amalgamated into one, then are they
called one Geburah, GBVRH.

CHAPTER XXXII. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MICROPROSOPUS. 104


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

672. And all those powers, Geboran, commence to descend from the nose. And from it depend a thousand
times a thousand and four hundred myriads in their single (form).

673. And from that smoke which issueth from his nose depend a thousand times a thousand myriads, and four
hundred and five which belong to this (idea of) Severity. For all the severities depend from this nose.

674. For it is written, Ps. cxlv. 4: "From generation unto generation shall they praise thy works, and announce
thy GBVRVTh, Geburoth."

675. And when that GBVRH, Geburah, Strength, commenceth ( to be manifested), all the severities radiate
thence, and are sharpened, until they descend in the form of a swift, whirling fire−flaming sword (Gen. iii.
24.) 676. It is written, Gen. xix. 13: "For we will destroy this place." Also it is written, Gen. xiii. 10: "Before
that Tetragrammaton destroyed Sodom and Gomorrah?" And again, Gen. xix. 24: "Tetragrammaton rained
upon Sodom and ."

677. Assuredly thus have we learned: There is no judge over the wicked, but they themselves convert the
measure of Mercy into a measure of judgment.

678. But how do they convert it thus? Also it is written, Mal. iii. 6: "I, Tetragrammaton, change not."

679. Assuredly as many times as the Ancient of the Ancient Ones and that White Head uncovereth the
benevolence of benevolences, great mercies are found everywhere.

680. But when that is not uncovered, all the judgments of Microprosopus are prepared; and in this manner, if
it be permitted us to say so, Mercy becometh judgment; that is, the most Ancient One of all.

681. We have learned in Barietha : "When the Ancient of the Ancient Ones uncovereth the benevolence of
benevolences, all those lights which are called by a similar name shine, and Mercy is found in all things."

682. But when that Concealed One of the Concealed Ones is not uncovered, and those lights shine not,
judgments are stirred up, and judgment is exercised.

683. Who therefore is the cause of that judgment? The benevolence of the benevolences, because it is not
uncovered, and therefore do sinners change Mercy into judgment (as regardeth themselves).

684. But because this is said, Gen. xix. 24: "From Tetragrammaton out of heaven," it is said concerning Zauir
Anpin, Microprosopus.

685. And whence is this obtained? Because it is written (in the preceding passage): MN HShMIM, Men
Ha−Shamayim, out of heaven. (But the word HShMIM Ha−Shamayim, is equivalent to) ASh VMIM, Ash
Ve−Mim, fire and water, Mercy and judgment, in the antithesis of that (condition) wherein no Judgment is
found at all.

686. We have learned that this nose (of Microprosopus) is short, and when the smoke commenceth to issue
therefrom, it departeth thence swiftly, and judgment is exercised.

687. But what hindereth that nose that it may not produce smoke? The nose of the Ancient and Holy One; for
He is also called before all others ARK APIM, Arikh Aphim, Long of Nose.

688. And this is the Arcanum which we have learned: Between the two words, IHVH, IHVH,
Tetragrammaton, Tetragrammaton, an accent is interpolated (whensoever these two are found in

CHAPTER XXXII. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MICROPROSOPUS. 105


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

juxtaposition in Scripture).

689. For wheresoever an y name is repeated twice over, a distinction is made (between them), as when it is
said, Gen. xxii. 11, "Abraham, Abraham;" also, Gen. xlvi. 2, "Jacob, Jacob;" also, 1 Sam. iii. 10, "Samuel,
Samuel;" where, by the Psiq accent, these pairs of names are distinguished; excepting that place, Exod. iii. 4,
"Moses, Moses," where no accent interveneth.

690. For what reason? "Abraham, Abraham," Gen. xxii. xx (herein therefore is an accent introduced because
that) the latter ( of these two names) denoteth that which is perfect, but the former that which is not as yet
perfect; for at this time he is perfected with ten temptations, and therefore is the (Psiq) accent interpolated,
for. at this time he can hardly be said to be the same man as he was before.

691. (When it is said), "Jacob, Jacob" (Gen. xlvi. 2), the latter denoteth that which is perfect, the former that
which is not as yet perfect; for now the messenger had come to him from his son Joseph, and over him was
the Schechinah at rest.

692. Also, now at this time was perfected in the earth the holy tree, similar unto the Supernal One, in having
twelve limitations and seventy branches, which were not hitherto completed; and therefore the latter
denoteth that which is perfect, and the former that which is not as yet perfect; whence the accent falleth
between them.

693. In the passage, "Samuel, Samuel" (1 Sam. iii. 10), an accent is also interpolated: wherefore? The latter
name denoteth that which is perfect; the former that which is not as yet perfect; for now he is a prophet,
whereas before this he was not as yet a prophet.

694. But when it is said, Exod. iii. 4: "Moses, Moses," no accent is interpolated, because he was perfect from
the very day of his birth, seeing it is written, Exod. ii. 2: "And she saw him, that he was good."

695. So also here between these two names of Tetragrammaton, Exod. xxxiv. 6, the Psiq accent is
interpolated; for the first is indeed a perfect name, but the latter is thoroughly and completely perfect.

696. But Moses speaketh thus in the place of judgment, in order that for them he may cause Mercy to descend
upon Microprosopus from the Most Holy Ancient One.

697. For thus is the tradition. So great was the virtue of Moses that he could make the measures of Mercy
descend.

698. And when the Ancient One is uncovered toward Microprosopus all things are beheld in the light of
Mercy, and the nose is appeased, and fire and smoke issue not therefrom.

699. Like as it is written, Isa. xlviii. 9: "And with my praise will I defer mine anger for thee."

700. Also we have learned: The nose hath two nostrils. From the one issueth a flaming smoke, and it entereth
into the opening of the Great Abyss.

701. And from the other nostril issueth afire which is kindled by its flame; and it floweth into four thousand
worlds, which are upon His left side.

702. Truly, he who is the cause of war is called the fire of Tetragrammaton, the consuming fire, the fire
which consumeth all other fires.

CHAPTER XXXII. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MICROPROSOPUS. 106


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

703. And that fire is not mitigated save by the fire of the altar.

704. And that smoke which issueth forth from the other nostril is not mitigated unless by the smoke of the
sacrifice of the altar. But all things depend from the nose.

705. Therefore is it written, Gen. viii. 12: "And Tetragrammaton smelled a sweet savour." For all these are
attributed unto the nose, to smell a savour, and to emit smoke and fire, and red colour, and therefore is it
opposed unto the benevolence (namely, the forehead ).

706. And for that cause is it written, Exod. iv. 14: "And the anger of Tetragrammaton was kindled." Deut. vii.
4: "And the anger of Tetragrammaton will be kindled." Exod. xxii. 24: "And My wrath is kindled." Deut. vi.
15: "Lest the wrath of Tetragrammaton be kindled." Which are all to be understood concerning Zauir Anpin,
or Microprosopus.

CHAPTER XXXIII. CONCERNING THE EARS OF MICROPROSOPUS.


707. This have we learned. It is written, 2 Kings xix. 16: "Incline, O God, Thine ear and hear;" namely, that
ear which is hidden beneath the hair, and the hair hangeth down over it, and yet the ear is there for the
purpose of hearing.

708. And from the inner part of the ear, elaborated with strongly marked concave formations, like a winding
spiral ladder, with incurvation on every side.

709. But wherefore with curvings? So that He may hear both good and evil.

710. Also we have learned: From that curving part within the ears depend all those Lords of Wings
concerning whom it is written, Eccles. x. 20: "For a bird of the air shall carry the voice, and the Lord of the
Wings shall tell the matter."

711. Within that ear, (the Spirit) floweth from the three hollow places of the brain into this opening of the
ears. And from that afflux (the Spirit) the voice departeth into that profound depth (otherwise, incurvation)
and is conjoined with (the Spirit) in that distillation, as well good as evil.

712. In good: as it is written, Psa. lxix. 33: "For Tetragrammaton heareth the poor." In evil; as it is written,
Num. xi. i: "And Tetragrammaton heard, and His wrath arose, and the fire of Tetragrammaton was kindled
against them."

713. And that ear is closed from without, and a depth otherwise an incurvation) proceedeth within that gallery
of inspiration from the brain.

714. So that the voice may be collected together within, neither issue forth thence, and that it may be guarded
and shut in on every side; hence it is in the nature of an Arcanum.

715. Woe unto Him who discloseth secrets! For he who revealeth secrets doth the same thing as if he should
deny the superior formation, which is so arranged that the secrets may be collected together, and that they
may not issue forth without.

716. Also we have learned in Barietha : At that time when they call aloud in their troubles, and the hairs are
moved from before the ears, the voice entereth into the ears through that channel, and the spirit of distillation
from the brain (entereth into that that channel likewise).

CHAPTER XXXIII. CONCERNING THE EARS OF MICROPROSOPUS. 107


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

717. And in the brain is it collected (otherwise, and it slideth on into the brain), and departeth through the
nostrils of the nose, and is bound, and the nose becometh shorter (that of Microprosopus, namely ) and
gloweth with fire, and fire and smoke issue forth; and from those nostrils are excited all the severities, and
vengeance is exercised.

718. Truly before that from those nostrils the fire and smoke issue forth, that voice ascendeth upwards, and
slideth into the beginning of the brain; and the two tears flow down from the eyes.

719. And by means of that voice the smoke goeth forth, and the fire from the brightness which openeth those
gates; for through that voice which entereth into the ears all these things are excited and urged forth
(otherwise, are mingled together).

720. And therefore is it written, Num. xi. 1: "And Tetragrammaton heard, and His wrath was kindled, and the
fire of Tetragrammaton was kindled against them." For through that hearing of that voice the whole brain is
stirred up.

721. We have learned. It is written, 2 Kings xix. 16: "Incline, O my God, Thine ear;" like as if it should be
said, "Let six hundred thousand myriads of those wings which depend from those ears be elongated;" and
they are all called the ears of Tetragrammaton.

722. When therefore it is said, "Incline, O Tetragrammaton, Thine ear," (this phrase) "Thine ear," is that of
Microprosopus.

723. From one cavity of the brain do those ears depend; and from the fifty gates which proceed from that
cavity, this is one gate, which extendeth and goeth forth and openeth into that channel of the ear.

724. Like as it is written, Job xxxiv. 3: "Because the ear trieth words." Also it is written, Ps. vii. 10: "And He
trieth the heart and reins."

725. And in proportion to the expansion of that cavity of fifty gates which proceedeth into the body, so is the
latter expanded even in that place wherein the heart resideth.

726. Therefore concerning the ear it is said that in it is made probation; and also concerning the heart it is said
that in it is made probation; because that they proceed (alike) from one place.

727. We have learned in the "Book of Concealed Mystery" that, like as this ear proveth as well the good as
the evil, so all things which are in Microprosopus have part good and part evil, right and left, Mercy and
Judgment.

728. And this ear is contiguous unto the brain; and because it is contiguous unto the brain, hence that voice is
directed into a cavity which entereth into the ear.

729. Therefore concerning the ear it is called hearing; but in this hearing, Binah, the Understanding (the third
Sephira) is comprehended; for, also, to hear, is the same as to understand, because that thereby all
examinations are examined together.

730. And those words of the Lord of Lords are given forth so that they may be heard, so that they may be
meditated upon and be understood.

731. Come, behold I it is written, Hab. iii. 1: "Tetragrammaton! I have heard Thy voice, and was afraid."

CHAPTER XXXIII. CONCERNING THE EARS OF MICROPROSOPUS. 108


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

732. This passage hath this meaning: When that holy prophet heard and understood and knew, and was
occupied with those conformations, it is written: "I was afraid." Rightly was it (so written) that he should be
afraid and be broken before Him, for these words are said concerning Microprosopus.

733. When further he understood and knew, what is then written? "O Tetragrammaton! revive Thy work in
the midst of the years." But concerning the Ancient of Days is this said.

734. And in every passage wherein is found Tetragrammaton, Tetragrammaton, with Yod He twice, or with
Aleph Daleth and Yod He, the one belongeth unto Microprosopus, and the other unto the Ancient of the
Ancient Ones. For because all these things are one certain thing, hence by one name are they called.

735. Also we have learned. When is the full name expressed? When it is written, IHVH ALHIM,
Tetragrammaton Elohim. For that is the full name of the Most Ancient of all, and of Microprosopus; and
when joined together they are called the full name. But other forms are not called the full name, like as we
have established.

736. When it is said, Gen. ii. 8: "And Tetragrammaton Elohim planted," &c., the name is given in full, where
the discourse is concerning the planting of the garden; and whensoever Tetragrammaton Elohim occurreth the
full name is expressed.

737. In IHVH IHVH all things generally are comprehended, and then mercies are stirred up over all things.

738. (When it is said) "O Tetragrammaton! revive Thy work in the midst of the years," concerning the
Ancient of Days is it said. 739. What is "Thy work"? Zauir Anpin, Microprosopus.

740. "In the midst of years." These are the former years, which are called IMI QDM, Yemi Qedem, former
days; and not years, OVLM, Olahm, or of the world.

741. The former years are the former days; the years of the world are the days of the world.

742. And here (it is said): "In the midst of the years." What years? The former years.

743. "Revive it." Concerning whom is it said, "Revive it"? Concerning Microprosopus. For all His splendour
is preserved by those years, and therefore is it said, "Revive it."

744. "In wrath remember mercy." He looketh to that supernal benignity wherein mercies are excited over all;
(those mercies) who desire compassion, and to whom mercy is owing.

745. We have learned, Rabbi Schimeon said: "I call to witness the heavens which are above me, towards all
those who stand around, that great joy ariseth in all the worlds because of these words.

746. "Also these words excite joy in my heart; and in the veil of excellent expansion are they hidden and do
they ascend; and He, the Most Ancient One of all, preserveth them, He, the Concealed and Hidden of all.

747. "And when we began to speak my companions know not that all these words therein were worthy hereof
in any degree.

748. "O how blessed is your portion, companions of this conclave! and blessed is my portion with you in this
world, and in the world to come!"

CHAPTER XXXIII. CONCERNING THE EARS OF MICROPROSOPUS. 109


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

CHAPTER XXXIV. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS.


749. RABBI SCHIMEON commenced and said, Deut. iv 4: "And ye shall cleave unto Tetragrammaton your
God," &c.

750. What nation is so holy as Israel? for it is written concerning them, Deut. xxxiii. 29: "Blessed art thou, O
Israel! who is like unto thee?" Because that they are applied unto God in this world through the holy name.

751. And in the world to come more than here, for therein shall we never be separated from that conclave
wherein the just are assembled.

752. And this is that which is written: "And ye shall cleave in Tetragrammaton;" for it is not written
"ChDPQIM LIHVH, Chedebeqim Le Tetragrammaton, Ye shall cleave unto Tetragrammaton;" but "BIHVH,
Be Tetragrammaton, in Tetragrammaton," properly.

753. We have learned this. There is a descent from the beard which is venerable, holy, excellent, hidden and
concealed in all (the beard, namely, of Macroprosopus), through the holy magnificent oil, into the beard of
Microprosopus.

754. And if thou shalt say that this beard is not to be found, for that even Solomon only spake of the cheeks,
but not at all of the beard.

755. Truly thus have we learned (we make answer) in the "Book of Concealed Mystery." It is that which is
hidden and recondite, and of which mention is not made, neither is it uncovered; it is that which is venerable
and excellent before all things, seeing that it is Concealed and hidden.

756. And since the beard is the praise and perfection and dignity of the whole countenance, in these sacred
things it is found to be hidden, neither is it discerned.

757. And that beard is the perfection and beauty of the countenance in Microprosopus. In nine conformations
is it disposed.

758. But when the venerable beard of the Ancient of the Ancient Ones shineth upon this beard of
Microprosopus, then the thirteen fountains of excellent oil flow down upon this beard.

759. And therein are found twenty−two parts, and thence extend the twenty−two letters of the holy law.

760. Also we have learned that this beard departeth from His ears, and descendeth and ascendeth, and
toucheth upon the places of fragrance.

761. What are the places of fragrance? Like as it is said, Cant. v. 13: "Like a bed (singular) of spices," and
not "beds" (plural ).

762. But this beard of Microprosopus is disposed in nine conformations.

763. And also the hairs being black, and in careful order, like a handsome man, as it is written, Cant. v. 15:
"Excellent as the cedars."

764. The first conformation. The hair is conformed from the portion which is above, and there goeth forth
therefrom a spark which is of most intense brilliance; and it goeth forth from the Absolute of the pure ether,
and passeth beneath the hair of the head, even beneath those locks which are above the ears; and it

CHAPTER XXXIV. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS. 110


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

descendeth in front of the opening of the ears, hair above hair, even unto the beginning of the mouth.

765. The second conformation. The hair goeth forth, and ascendeth from the one part of the mouth even unto
the other part of the opening of the mouth; and it descendeth beneath the mouth unto the other side, hair
above hair, in beautiful arrangement.

766. The third conformation. From the midst, beneath the nose, and beneath the two nostrils, there goeth forth
a certain path, and short and coarse hairs fill up that path; and the remaining hairs fill up the place from this
side unto that, around this path.

767. But this path is not clearly seen (to be continued) below (the mouth), but only the upper part of it which
descendeth even unto the beginning of the lips, and there is this path applied.

768. The fourth conformation. The hair goeth forth and is disposed in order, and ascendeth, and is spread
over His cheeks, which are the place of fragrance of the Ancient One.

769. The fifth conformation. The hair is wanting, and there are seen two apples on this side and on that, red as
a red rose, and they radiate into two hundred and seventy worlds, which are enkindled thereby.

770. The sixth conformation. The hair goeth forth as in a tress about (the border of) the beard, and hangeth
down even unto the commencement of the vital organs, but it descendeth not unto the parts about the heart.

771. The seventh conformation. That the hairs do not hang over the mouth, but that the mouth is uncovered
on every side, and that the hairs are disposed in order about it.

772. The eighth conformation. That the hairs descend beneath the beard, and cover the throat, so that it
cannot be seen; all those hairs are slender, hairs above hairs, plentiful in every part.

773. The ninth conformation. That the hairs are mingled together with those which are joined unto them; and
that they all are in equality from the cheeks even unto those hairs which hang down; all are in fair equality,
like a brave man, and like a hero victorious in war.

774. Through these nine conformations there proceed and flow down nine fountains of magnificent oil, and
these indeed flow down from that magnificent supernal oil (of the heard of Macroprosopus) into all those
inferiors.

775. Those nine conformations are found in form herein (otherwise, in this beard); and in the perfection of
the conformation of this beard is the inferior son of man called the brave man.

776. For whosoever seeth (in sleep) that his beard existeth in proper form, in him is found courage and
strength.

777. Rabbi Schimeon spake unto Rabbi Eleazar, his son, and said: "Arise, O my Son, and expound the parts
of the holy beard in its conformations."

778. Rabbi Eleazar arose, and commenced and said, Ps. cxviii. 5: "'I called upon IH, Yah, in my distress; Yah
heard me at large. Tetragrammaton is on my side, I will not fear; what can man do unto me? Tetragrammaton
taketh my part with them that help me, and I shall see my desire upon mine enemies. It is better to trust in
Tetragrammaton than to put any confidence in man; it is better to trust in Tetragrammaton than to put any
confidence in princes.'

CHAPTER XXXIV. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS. 111


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

779. "Herein are delineated the nine conformations of this beard. For King David had need of these
dispositions, that he might vanquish other kings and other nations.

780. "Come, behold! After that he had said these nine conformations, he added (verse 10): 'All nations
compassed me about, but in the name of Tetragrammaton I win destroy them.'

781. "Therefore did he rehearse those conformations which we have repeated. But what was the necessity for
so doing? Because that he said: 'All nations compassed me about.' For in this disposition of those nine
conformations which are the name of IHVH, Tetragrammaton , are they cut off from the earth.

782. "This is that same which is written: 'In the name of IHVH will I destroy them.'

783. "Also this have we learned in the 'Book of Concealed Mystery.' David hath here enumerated the nine
conformations; of which six consist in the holy name, for there are six names; and there are three in the
word ADM, Adam, or man.

784. "And if thou shalt say that there are only two (in the word Adam), assuredly there are three, because also
the princes pertain unto the idea of the word Adam.

785. "This have we learned. These are the six names, because it is thus written: 'I called upon Yah in my
distress.' The first.

786. "'Yah heard me at large.' The second.

787. Tetragrammaton is on my side, I will not fear.' The third.

788. "'Tetragrammaton taketh my part with them that help me.' The fourth.

789. "'It is better to trust in Tetragrammaton.' The fifth.

790. "'It is better to trust in Tetragrammaton.' The sixth.

791. "But in the word ADM, Adam, Man, are three; for it is written: 'Tetragrammaton is on my side, I will not
fear; what can ADM, Adam, Man, do unto me?' The first.

792. "'It is better to trust in Tetragrammaton than to put any confidence in princes.' The second. 793. "'It is
better to trust in Tetragrammaton than to put any confidence in ADM, Adam, Man.' The third.

794. "And come, behold! There is an Arcanum hidden in this thing; and wheresoever in this passage mention
is made of the word ADM, Adam , thereunto the Holy name is joined; and truly for a reason, seeing that man
subsisteth only, through that which is analogous unto himself.

795. "But what is it which is analogous unto him? The Holy Name; because it is written, Gen. ii. 7: 'And
IHVH ALHIM, Tetragrammaton Elohim, created ADM, Adam, Man,' with the full Name, which is IHVH
ALHIM, analogous to him (Adam), seeing that IHVH, Tetragrammaton, denoteth the masculine, and
ALHIM, Elohim, the feminine.

796. "And therefore in this passage there is no mention made of ADM, Adam, Man, without the Holy Name.

797. "Also we have learned this. It is written: 'I called upon IH, Yah, in my distress; IH, Yah, heard me at
large.' IH is here twice repeated, IH, IH, in reference to the two jaws unto which the hairs (of the beard)

CHAPTER XXXIV. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS. 112


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

adhere, and from which it is seen that the hairs issue and depend.

798. "He hasteneth and saith (i.e., King David): 'IHVH, Tetragrammaton, is on my side; I will not fear;
IHVH taketh my part with them that help me; wherein the Name is not written defectively (IH as before, but
IHVH) which is the Holy Name, and with this Name mention is also made of man.

799. "And what is this thing which is said, 'What can ADM, Adam , Man, do unto me?' It is thus, as we have
learned by tradition: All those sacred diadems of the King, when He is conformed in his dispositions (that
is, when the letters of Tetragrammaton are all conjoined together), are called ADM, Adam, Man, which is the
Form which comprehendeth all things.

800. "But when any portion is taken away therefrom (that is to say, when it is said IH, and not IHVH), then is
understood ( Microprosopus) the Holy Name (by the letter I, Yod) and ThORA, Tauara, or the Gate (that is,
the Bride, to whom is attributed the name ADNI, Adonai, whose number when written in its Plenitude is
671, as the word ThORA or ThROA exhibiteth it, summed up in the letter H, He, of the name IH), and that
which is therein.

801. "When therefore it is called Tetragrammaton, man is mentioned, with the Gate Tauara included, and
those which are therein [otherwise, concerning the inferior worlds. And when it is taken away from the gate
(that is, when the letters Vau and He are not joined hereunto, of which the latter denoteth the inferior gate),
then is understood the Holy Name (by the Yod), and the Gate and those which are therein (by the He in the
name IH). But when it is called IHVH, it is called the man, ADM, and all the rest (conjoined therewith ),
namely, the gate and those (paths) which are therein.]

802. "And therefore did David enumerate those nine conformations; because he unto whom it is allowed to
touch the beard of the King can do all which he desireth.

803. "Wherefore then the beard, and not the body? Because the body is hidden behind the beard, but the
beard hath no place (of concealment) behind the body.

804. "But he in reckoning it proceedeth in a duplex manner once as we have given it; and next thus, when
he saith: 'I called upon Yah in my distress.' The first.

805. "'Yah heard me at large.' The second.

806. "'Tetragrammaton is on my side; I will not fear. The third.

807. "'What can man do unto me?' The fourth.

808. "'Tetragrammaton taketh my part with them that help me.' The fifth.

809. "'And I shall see my desire upon mine enemies.' The sixth.

810. "'It is better to trust in Tetragrammaton.' The seventh.

811. "'Than to put any confidence in man.' The eighth.

812. "'It is better to trust in Tetragrammaton.' The ninth.

813. "'Than to put any confidence in princes.' The tenth. (Otherwise: 'It is better to trust in Tetragrammaton
than to put any confidence in man.' The seventh. 'It is better to trust in Tetragrammaton.' The eighth. 'Than to

CHAPTER XXXIV. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS. 113


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

put any confidence in princes.' The ninth.)

814. "'I called upon Yah in my distress.' What is this which he saith? Assuredly doth David say all these
things which are here said concerning the form of the beard." 815. Rabbi Yehudah answered and said: "'I
called upon Yah in my distress.' From the part where the beard beginneth to extend, which is from the more
remote part (is one), before the ears, beneath the hair (is the second). And therefore is it twice said, IH, IH.

816. "But in that place wherein the beard is expanded, and descendeth before the ears, in wider extension, the
name of ADM, Adam , Man, hath place (that is to say, the complete Tetragrammaton). Also this expansion
was necessary to David when he wished to subject to himself the Icings and nations through the dignity of
this beard. (Otherwise, when therefore he saith, 'Tetragrammaton is on my side, I will not fear;' for this is
such a one who spareth not the wicked, and this was altogether necessary, &c.)

817. "Also we have learned this in the 'Book of Concealed Mystery' : Whosoever seeth in his sleep that he
toucheth the beard or moustache of the supernal man with his hand, or extendeth his hand unto it, let him
know that he is at peace with the supernals, and that those who afflict him are about to be subjected unto
him."

818. "We have learned that the supernal beard is disposed in nine conformations, and that it is the beard of
Microprosopus..

CHAPTER XXXV. CONCERNING THE FIRST PART OF THE BEARD OF


MICROPROSOPUS.
819. "IN the first conformation the hair is disposed from above, and goeth forth before the opening of the
ears, beneath the locks which hang down over the ears; and the hairs descend, hairs above hairs, even unto
the beginning of the mouth.

820. "This have we learned. All those hairs which are in the beard are harder than all the hairs of the locks of
the hair of the head. But the hair of the head is longer and bendeth more easily, while these hairs (of the
beard) are not so long.

821. Of the hairs of the head some are hard and some are soft.

822. And whensoever the white locks of the Ancient of Days reach forward into Microprosopus, it is written
that, Prov. i. 20: 'Wisdom crieth without.'

823. "What is this (word) 'without'? In this (instance) in Microprosopus, wherein are conjoined the two
(forms of the) brain. Two forms of the brain, sayest thou? But it should rather be said, four forms of the brain.

824. (Assuredly) "there are three (forms of the) brain in Microprosopus, and they are found in the three
cavities of the skull of His head.

825. "And there is one calm and tranquil brain residing in its own clear brilliancy, which comprehendeth all
the three (forms of the ) brain, and from it are brought forth the productions of the hairs which are produced
and continued in equilibrium in the white hair into that part of Microprosopus, into His three (forms of) brain
(namely ), so that therein in Him are found four (forms of the) brain. 826. "And hence are perfected the four
texts which are written on the phylacteries, because in them is contained the Holy Name of the Ancient of
Days, the Ancient of the Ancient Ones, and that of Microprosopus.

CHAPTER XXXV. CONCERNING THE FIRST PART OF THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS.114


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

827. "For this is the perfection of the Holy Name, concerning which it is written, Deut. xxviii. 10: 'And all the
people of the earth shall see that the name of Tetragrammaton have been invoked over thee, and they shall be
afraid of thee.'

828. The Name of the Lord is this very Name of Tetragrammaton, which formeth the canals and hollows of
the phylacteries.

829. "And therefore is it said: 'Wisdom crieth without,' Prov. i. 20, because it is herein found (i.e., in
Microprosopus).

830. "For truly the Ancient of the Ancient Ones, even He who is concealed with all concealments, is not
found, neither doth His wisdom come forth (openly); seeing that His wisdom is concealed in all, and doth not
make itself manifest.

831. "And since there are four (forms of the) brain associated together, and that herefrom, even from
Microprosopus, there flow down four fountains in four directions, and that they are all distributed from one
fountain, which proceedeth from them all, therefore are there four.

832. Also we have learned: From the Wisdom which is comprehended in the Quaternary the hairs flow down,
which hang in curls upon curls, and all are strong and close, and they extend and flow down singly each in its
own direction.

833. "And so many thousand thousand myriads of myriads depend from them that they are innumerable.

834. "This is that same which is written, Cant. v. 11: 'His locks are bushy, ThLThLIM, Teltelim,' as if it were
ThLI ThLIM, curls heaped upon curls.

835. "And all are strong and close (fit) for breaking ( whatsoever is opposed to them), hard as the rock, and as
hardest stone.

836. "Until they can make openings in the skull, and the fountains can flow down beneath the locks, those
strong fountains flow forth in separate directions, and in separate ways.

837. "And because those locks are black and obscure, it is written, Job xii. 22: 'He discovereth deep things
out of darkness, and bringeth out to light the shadow of death.'

838. "Also we have learned that those hairs of the beard are so much harder than those hairs of the head,
because these alone make themselves so prominent, and are easily found, and are hard in their paths.

839. "Wherefore sayest thou that they are hard? Is it because they all symbolize Judgment? By no means; for
truly in those dispositions Mercy as well as Judgment is found.

840. "When the thirteen fountains of the rivers of oil descend, all these are mercies.

841. "But yet we have learned that all those hairs of the beard are hard. Wherefore? Those which symbolize
mercies necessarily must be hard in order to divert the course of Judgment.

842. "And all those which denote Judgment, are also firm; and therefore it is necessary in every instance that
they should both be hard. 843. "When the Universe hath need of Mercy, mercies are strong, and prevail over
Judgment; but when it requireth Judgment, Judgment is strong, and prevaileth over Mercy; and therefore is it
necessary that in each instance they should be firm and strong.

CHAPTER XXXV. CONCERNING THE FIRST PART OF THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS.115


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

844. "And whensoever Mercy is required, those hairs which symbolize Mercy stand forth, and the beard is
evident in those hairs only (otherwise, is contained by those hairs only), and all are abundant mercies.

845. "But when Judgment is required the beard is evident in those hairs only (which denote judgment), and all
consist in judgments.

846. "But when that holy white beard is uncovered, all these ( hairs denoting Mercy) and all those (hairs
denoting Judgment) are alike illuminated and made brilliant, like as when a man cleanseth himself in a deep
river from his uncleanness.

847. "And all consist together in Mercy, and there is no Judgment to be found at all.

848. "And when all those nine forms shine together, all are made white with Mercy.

849. "And therefore Moses saith in another place, Num. xiv. 18: 'Tetragrammaton is ARK APIM, Arikh
Aphim, long−suffering ( literally long of nose), and of great mercy.'

850. "And that which he had said concerning truth, Exod. xxxiv. 6, he addeth not (in this passage), because
the Arcanum of the matter is these nine measurements which shine down from the Ancient of Days into
Microprosopus.

851. "For when Moses in the second passage rehearseth these praises of God, Num. xxiv. 18, he enumereth
the nine conformations; and these are the conformations of the beard, even those which are found in
Microprosopus, and descend from the Ancient of Days and shine down into Him.

852. "The word AMTh, Emeth, Truth, therefore dependeth from the Ancient One; whence in this passage
Moses saith not: 'And in truth.'

853. "We have learned that the hairs of the head of Microprosopus are all hard and curling, and not soft.

854. "For we see that in Him three forms of the brain are found in the three cavities (of the skull), which shine
forth from the hidden and concealed brain.

855. "And because the brain of the Ancient of Days is tranquil and quiet, like good wine upon the tees, hence
all His hairs are soft, and anointed with excellent oil.

856. "And therefore is it written, Dan. vii. 9: 'His head like pure wool.'

857. "But those which are in Microprosopus are partly hard, and partly not hard, because they all hang down,
and are not diverted from their course.

858. "And therefore Wisdom floweth forth and proceedeth ( therefrom); but it is not the Wisdom of
Wisdom, for that is quiet and tranquil.

859. "For we have learned that no one knoweth the brain of the Ancient of Days save Himself alone. 860.
"This is that very thing which is said, Job xxviii. 23: 'God understandeth the way thereof,' &c.; which (words)
are spoken concerning Microprosopus."

861. Rabbi Schimeon said (unto him): "Blessed be thou, O my son! in that Holy and Blessed One, in this
world and in the world to come!"

CHAPTER XXXV. CONCERNING THE FIRST PART OF THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS.116


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

CHAPTER XXXVI. CONCERNING THE SECOND PART OF THE BEARD


OF MICROPROSOPUS.
862. "THE second conformation. The hair goeth forth and ascendeth from the beginning of (the one side of)
the mouth even unto the beginning of the other side of the mouth; and descendeth beneath the mouth unto the
other side, hair above hair, in beautiful arrangement. Arise, Rabbi Abba!"

863. Rabbi Abba arose, and commenced and said: "When the disposition of this beard is instituted in the
formation of the King, then is He Himself like a brave hero, strong and beautiful in appearance, valiant and
conquering.

864. "This is that same which is written, Ps. cxlvii. 5: 'Great is our Lord and great is His power.'

865. "And whilst He is mitigated by the disposition of the venerable and holy beard (of Macroprosopus), and
this (beard of Microprosopus) reflected that, then through its light is He called 'God merciful,' Exod. xxxiv.
6: 'and gracious, long−suffering, and abundant in goodness and in truth.' And thus is the second disposition
instituted.

866. "When He shineth in the light of the Ancient of Days, then is He called 'abundant in Mercy,' and when
another of the other forms is considered, in that form is He called 'and in truth,' for this is the light of His
Countenance."

CHAPTER XXXVII. CONCERNING THE THIRD PART OF THE BEARD OF


MICROPROSOPUS.
867. "ALSO we have learned, Bearing iniquity is this second conformation called, like as in the Holy Ancient
One.

868. "But because that path which goeth forth in the third disposition beneath the two nostrils is filled with
short and rigid hairs; hence because of that path these conformations are not called 'bearing iniquity and
passing over ;' but these are collected together in another place.

869. "Also we have learned in Barietha that three hundred and seventy−five mercies are comprehended in the
benignity of the Ancient of Days; which are all called primal benignities.

870. "Like as it is said, Psalm lxxxix. 50: 'Where are thy former mercies?' And they are all comprehended in
the benignity of the Most Holy Ancient One, the most concealed of all.

871. "But the benignity of Microprosopus is called ChSD OVLM, Chesed Olahm, the benignity of time.

872. "And in the 'Book of Concealed Mystery' (have we learned ) that on account of the former benignity of
the Ancient of Days is he called 'Abundant in Benignity.' But in Microprosopus (the word) 'mercy' is placed
alone and absolutely. 873. "And therefore is it here written: 'And abundant in benignity;' and again it is
written: 'Keeping mercy for thousands;' plain and without addition.

874. "And now we have taught concerning this Name, 'And abundant in benignity,' because therefrom is
mitigated the (interior) benignity, so that it may shine into all the lights (otherwise, this Name, 'Abundant in
mercy,' stretcheth down even unto the 'mercy' which is so called absolutely, so that it may illuminate it, and
kindle the lights).

CHAPTER XXXVI. CONCERNING THE SECOND PART OF THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS.


117
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

875. "For we have learned that that path which descendeth beneath the two nostrils of the nose is filled with
short hairs; and concerning this path, that it is written: 'Passing over transgression' (otherwise, and the shorter
hairs fill that path. But that path is not called 'Passing over transgression'); because there is therein no
occasion for passing over; for a double reason.

876. "Firstly, because that path is a hard place for passing over. (Otherwise, because the hairs which are
found therein are hard.)

877. "Secondly, because the passing over of that path descendeth even unto the commencement of the mouth.

878. "But concerning this it is written, Cant. v. 13: 'His lips like roses (that is, red as roses), dropping
sweet−smelling myrrh while passing over;' which denoteth notable redness.

879. "And this path of that place is a duplex form, and is not mitigated, whence he who wisheth to threaten
toucheth that path twice with his hand."

CHAPTER XXXVIII. CONCERNING THE SEVEN LAST PORTIONS OF THE


BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS.
880. "THE fourth conformation. This path of hairs is, disposed, and ascendeth and descendeth in His cheeks
into the place of fragrance.

881. "This disposition is fair and beautiful in appearance, and it is Glory and Honour; and it is taught in
Barietha that the Supernal Honour, HVD, Hod, goeth forth and is crowned, and floweth down, so that it may
be comprehended in His cheeks, and is called the Honour of the Beard.

882. "And thence depend Glory and Honour, which are as vestments, and as very precious purple, so that He
may be clothed therewith.

883. "For it is written, Ps. civ. 1: 'Thou art clothed with Honour and Majesty.' (Otherwise: In the fourth
conformation the hair goeth forth, and is disposed, and ascendeth and descendeth in the cheeks, in the places
of fragrance. This conformation is elegant and beautiful in appearance, and it is the supernal glory. And this
is the tradition: The supernal glory goeth forth, and is crowned, and floweth down in the beauty of the cheeks.
And this glory is called the glory of the beard; and from it depend honour and glory, the vestments of
adornment, those magnificent purple garments wherewith he is clothed. Concerning which it is written: 'Thou
art clothed with honour and majesty, which are the forms of clothing. In this form of man is he formed, rather
than in any other form.)

884. "These are the dispositions denoting the clothing (of the divine form), and he is more fitly symbolized
under this figure of man than under any other forms.

885. "Also we have learned, that when this glory (of Microprosopus ) is illuminated by the light of the
excellent beard, and emitteth light into the other dispositions, then it is called 'Bearing Iniquity' on the one
side, and 'Passing over Transgression' on the other side.

886. "And therefore in Scripture is it called by the name of his jawbones.

887. "And in the 'Book of Concealed Mystery' is the same called Glory, HVD, Hod, and Honour, HDR,
Hadar, and ThPARTh, Tiphereth, Beauty.

CHAPTER XXXVIII. CONCERNING THE SEVEN LAST PORTIONS OF THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOP
118
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

888. "And unto Tiphereth, Beauty, appertaineth the title 'Passing over Transgression,' since it is said, Prov.
xix. it 5: 'And it is His Beauty (Tiphereth) to pass over transgression.'

889. "Also we have learned that we should only refer that Tiphereth, Beauty, unto the ninth conformation (of
the beard of Microprosopus); as it is said, Prov. xx. 29: 'And the beauty of young men is their strength.' And
therefore also is it (the ninth conformation) called Beauty; and when they are weighed together in the balance
they are as one."

890. Rabbi Schimeon said unto him: "Worthy art thou, O Rabbi Abba! for which reason mayest thou be
blessed by the Most Holy Ancient One, from whom all blessings proceed.

891. "The fifth conformation. The hair is wanting, and there appear two apples, on this side and on that, red
as red roses, and they radiate into two hundred and seventy worlds.

892. "As to those two apples, when they shine on either side, from the light of the two supernal apples (the
cheeks of Macroprosopus ), redness is removed therefrom, and a white brilliance cometh upon them. 893
"Concerning this is it written, Num. vi. 25: 'Tetragrammaton make His face shine upon thee, and be gracious
unto thee.' Seeing that when they shine he is blessed by the world.

894. "But when that redness is stirred up (in them), it is written, ibid. 26: 'Tetragrammaton take away His
wrath from thee;' as if it were said: 'It is taken away, and wrath is no longer found in the world.'

895. "We have learned that all the lights which shine from the Most Holy Ancient One are called the former
benignities, because all those lights are the benignities of time.

896. The sixth conformation. The hair goeth forth as it were in a certain tress, among the hairs in the
circumference of the beard; and this is called one of the five angles which depend from the ChSD, Chesed,
Mercy and Compassions.

897. "And it is not permitted to lose this benignity, as it is said.

898. Therefore is it written, Lev. xix. 27: 'Thou shalt not lose the angle of thy beard.'

899. "The seventh conformation is that the hairs hang not over the mouth, and that the mouth is uncovered on
every side. Arise thou, Rabbi Yehudah."

900. Rabbi Yehudah arose, and commenced, and said, Dan. iv. 17: "'This matter is by the decree of the
Watchers.'

901. "Many thousands of myriads stand around, and are preserved by this mouth, and depend therefrom, and
all those are called (by the general title of) the mouth.

902. "As it is written, Ps. xxxiii. 6: 'And all the host of them by the Spirit of His mouth.'

903. "And by this Spirit which goeth forth from the mouth are all those exteriors clothed who depend from
that mouth.

904. "And by that mouth, when that path is opened, are clothed many true prophets; and they are all called
the mouth of Tetragrammaton.

905. "And in that place where the Spirit goeth forth no other thing is mingled therewith; for all things wait

CHAPTER XXXVIII. CONCERNING THE SEVEN LAST PORTIONS OF THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOP
119
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

upon that mouth, that they may be clothed with the Spirit going forth therefrom.

906. "And this disposition ruleth over the six (foregoing conformations), because herein are all things
established and comprehended.

907. "And therefore are the hairs (of this conformation) equal around the mouth, and this itself is uncovered
on every side."

908. Rabbi Schimeon said (unto him): "Blessed be thou, by the Most Holy Ancient One.

909. "The eighth conformation is that the hairs descend beneath the beard, covering the throat, that it cannot
be seen.

910. "For we have learned in the exotic tradition that neither the throat nor any of its parts (are apparent)
through (the hair ). And if in the time of contest (otherwise of Victory, NTzCh, Netzach ), during such
contest any portion of (the throat) be visible, then it appeareth like Strength (Geburah).

911. "For we have learned that a thousand worlds are contained thereby.

912. "This is that which is said, Cant. iv. 4: 'Wherein there hang a thousand bucklers, all shields of mighty
men.' And this 'thousand shields' is an Arcanum.

913. "It is related in the 'Book of Concealed Mystery' that 'all the shields of the mighty men,' which come
from the side of the rigours, are derived from those severities (Geboran, GBVRAN).

914. "The ninth conformation is that the hairs flow down in perfect equilibrium even unto those hairs which
hang down beneath, and all of them in beautiful arrangement, like (that of) a brave hero, ( of) a chief
victorious in war.

915. "Because all the hairs follow those which hang down, and all are joined unto those which hang down,
and each holdeth its own course.

916. "Concerning this it is written, Prov. xx. 29: 'The beauty of a young man is his strength.'

917. "And He appeareth upon the (Red) Sea, like a beautiful youth, which is written in Cant. v. 16:
'Excellent (or young) as the cedars.'

918. "Like a hero hath He exhibited His valour, and this is that ThPARTh, ChILA, VGBVRThA, VRChMI,
Tiphereth, Chila, Ve Geburatha, Ve Rechemi, Beauty, Strength, and Valour, and Mercy."

CHAPTER XXXIX. CONCERNING THE BODY OF MICROPROSOPUS IN


GENERAL, UNDER THE CONDITION OF AN ANDROGYN.
919. This have we learned. Rabbi Schimeon said: All those dispositions and all those words ought to be
revealed by those who are weighed in the balance, and not by those who have not entered therein, but by
those who have both entered therein and departed therefrom. For he who entereth therein and goeth not out
therefrom, better were it for that man that he had never been born.

920. The sum of all is this: The Ancient of the Ancient Ones existeth in Microprosopus; He is the all−existent
One; He was all, He is all, He will be all; He will not be changed, neither is He changed, neither hath He been

CHAPTER XXXIX. CONCERNING THE BODY OF MICROPROSOPUS IN GENERAL, UNDER 120


THE COND
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

changed. 921. But by means of those conformations hath He conformed Himself in that form which
comprehendeth all forms, in that form which comprehendeth all names.

922. But this form wherein He Himself only appeareth is in the similitude of this form; and is not that form,
but is analogous unto this form namely, when there are associated therewith the crowns and the diadems
and the perfection of all things.

923. And therefore is the form of the man the form of the superiors and inferiors which are included therein.

924. And because that form comprehendeth the superiors and the inferiors, therefore by such a disposition is
the Most Holy Ancient One conformed; and thus also is Microprosopus configurated in this disposition.

925. And if thou sayest: What, then, is the difference between the one and the other?

926. Assuredly all things are equally (balanced in the) Unity. But yet from our point of view (i.e., from our
plane) His paths are divided, and from our point of view (on our plane) is judgment found, and from the side
which is turned towards us are ( His attributes) by turns duplicated.

927. And these Arcana are not revealed save unto the reapers of the Sacred Land.

928. For it is written, Ps. xxv. 14: "The secret of Tetragrammaton is with them that fear Him."

929. Also it is written, Gen. ii. 7: "VIlTzR IHVH ALHIM ATh HADM, Va−Yeyetzer Tetragrammaton Eloim
Ath Ha−Adam. And Tetragrammaton Elohim formed the substance of man, completed (him) formation by
formation from the most ethereal (portion) of the refined ( element of) earth (otherwise formation within
formation from the best, &c.)

930. And this is Va−Yeyetzer VIITzR, written with two ( Yod's, I's instead of VITzR, Va−Yetzer, with one
Yod, I).

931. Wherefore? There is an Arcanum of the Most Holy Ancient One, and an Arcanum of Microprosopus.

932. VIITzR, Va−Yeyetzer, and formed. What did (Tetragrammaton Elohim) form? Form in form. And this
is VIlTzR.

933. And what is form in form? The two names, which are called the full name, IHVH ALHIM,
Tetragrammaton Elohim.

934. And this is the Arcanum of the two I's, Yods, in VIITzR; and of how it hath been conformed form within
form; namely, in the disposition of the perfect name, Tetragrammaton Elohim.

935. And in what are they comprehended? In the supernal beard (otherwise, in this supernal form which is
called (the supernal) man; the man who comprehendeth Male and Female equally).

936. And therefore is it written: "ATh HADM, Ath Ha−Adam (5 20the substance of man," because it
comprehendeth equally the Male and the Female, for to the word ADM, ATh is subjoined, so as to extend
and exaggerate the species which is here produced. Most assuredly here therefore is it as Male and as Female.

937. "OPR MN HADMH, Ophir Men Ha−Adamah, from the dust of the ground," dust, form within form
(otherwise, from the most ethereal portion of the refined element of earth, one within the other).

CHAPTER XXXIX. CONCERNING THE BODY OF MICROPROSOPUS IN GENERAL, UNDER 121


THE COND
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

939. But wherefore are all these things so? Because that from the supernals there was sent down into him
(Man) the Arcanum of the supernal Arcana, even the end of all Arcana. 939. This is that which is herein
written: "VIPCh BAPIV NShMThChIIM, Ve−Yepech Be−Ephaiu Neschamath Chiim, and breathed into his
nostrils the Neschamath of (their) lives.

940. Their souls, from which all things living, superiors and inferiors, alike depend, and wherein they have
their existence.

941. "VIHI HADM LNPSh ChIH, Va−Yehi Ha−Adam Le−Nephesch Chiah , and the Adam was formed into
a living Nephesch," so that it (the physical Nephesch form) might be attached to himself (otherwise, so that it
might be developed in him), and that he might form himself into similar conformations; and that he might
project himself in that Neschamah from path into path, even unto the end and completion of all the paths.

942. So that in all this Neschamah might be found, and that it might be extended into all, and that it itself
might be still one.

943. Whence he who taketh this away from the universe doth the same thing as if he should take away this
Neschamah for the purpose of setting in its place another Neschamah beside it.

944. And therefore shall such a man and his remembrance be cut off from generations unto generations.

CHAPTER XL. CONCERNING THE FEMININE PORTION OF


MICROPROSOPUS; AND CONCERNING THE REMAINING PARTS OF
THE BODY OF EACH.
945. THUS in this Adam androgyneity hath commenced to be disposed when it hath been formed in its
disposition. It hath commenced from His back. (Otherwise, from His breast.)

946. Between the two arms, in that part whereunto the beard hangeth down, which is called Tiphereth, the
Beauty.

947. And this Beauty is expanded and disposeth two breasts.

948. And it is separated from the back, and produceth the Head of a Woman completely covered on every
side by Her hair as far as to (the limits of) the face of Her head.

949. Insomuch that through that Tiphereth, Beauty, Adam becometh in one body, Male and Female.

950. This is that which is written, Isa. xliv. 13: "According to the beauty of a man, KThPARTh ADM,
Ke−Tiphereth Adam, that it may remain in the house."

951. When the countenance of the Female Head is created, one curled lock of hair at the back of
Microprosopus hangeth over the head of the Woman.

952. And all hairs red gold are produced in Her head; yet so that other colours are intermixed therewith.

953. This is that which is written, Cant, vii. 5: "The hair of Thy head like ARGMN, Argaman, purple."

954. What is Argaman? Colours intermixed with other colours. 955. This Tiphereth, Beauty, hath been
extended from the heart, and penetrateth it, and passeth through unto the other side, and instituteth the

CHAPTER XL. CONCERNING THE FEMININE PORTION OF MICROPROSOPUS; AND CONCERNING


122 T
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

formations from the Countenance of the Woman even unto Her heart; so that from the parts about the heart it
taketh its rise on this side, and in the parts about the heart it terminateth on that side.

956. Moreover, this Tiphereth is extended, And it formeth the internal parts of a Man.

957. And it entereth into and disposeth therein all mercies and aspects of mercies.

958. Also we have learned that in those internal parts are comprehended six hundred thousand Lords of
Mercies, and that they are called the Lords of the Internal Parts.

959. Whence it is written, Jer. xxxi. 20: "Therefore My bowels are troubled for him, I will surely have mercy
upon him, saith Tetragrammaton."

960. We have learned that this Tiphereth, Beauty, embraceth Mercies and Judgment, and that Mercy is
extended in the Male.

961. And it passeth over and goeth through unto (otherwise, shineth on) the other side, and formeth the
internal parts of a Woman on the side of Judgment; and thus also are Her internal parts disposed.

962. We have learned that the Male hath been conformed on His side (otherwise, from His heart), in 248
members; of which some are within, some without; some Mercies, some Judgments.

963. All which pertain unto Judgment, cohere in Judgment around the hinder part, where the Woman is
extended; and they coalesce and are extended round about on that side.

964. Also we have learned that five nakednesses can be revealed on that side, which are the five judgments
and these five judgments are extended into 248 paths.

965. And thus have we learned: the voice in the Woman is uncovered; the hair in the Woman is uncovered;
the leg in the Woman is uncovered; the hand in the Woman is uncovered; the foot in the Woman is
uncovered.

966. And also, furthermore, concerning these two our companions have not inquired, yet them two have more
nakedness.

967. Also, we have learned in the "Book of Concealed Mystery" that the Male is extended and conformed
with His parts, and there is formed in Him forma partis tegandæ puræ, at illud est membrum purum.

968. Longitudo autem membri hujus est 248 mundorum, at omnes illi pendent in orificio membri hujus quad
dicitur, I, Yod.

969. Et cum detegitur Yod, orificium membri; detegitur Benignitas superna. "

970. And this member is the Benignity, quo nomine tamen proprie vocatur orificium membri; neither is it
called Benignity until I, Yod , orificii membri, is uncovered.

971. And come, behold, Abraham is not called perfect in that Benignity, until I, Yod, of the member is
uncovered; but when that is uncovered he is called perfect.

972. This is that which is written: "Walk before Me and be thou perfect; really and truly perfect," Gen. xvii. i.

CHAPTER XL. CONCERNING THE FEMININE PORTION OF MICROPROSOPUS; AND CONCERNING


123 T
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

973. Also it is written, Ps. xviii. 24: "I will be upright before Him, and will keep myself from the sinner."

974. Who is he concerning whom the discourse is both in the first and second instance (in this passage)?
Assuredly, he who uncovereth that Yod; et cavet, ne Yod istud introducat in potestatem adversam; so that he
may have part in the world to come, and that he may be bound together in the sheaf of life.

975. What is this, "in potestatem adversam"? Even that which is written, Mal. ii. 11: "And hath married the
daughter of a strange god."

976. And therefore is it written: "I will be upright before Him," because "he hath become perfect in the
uncovering of Yod," and "I will keep myself from the sinner."

977. Et dum extenditur membrum hoc, etiam extenditur latus rigoris de illis rigoribus sinistræ in fæmina.

978. Et inseritur in fæminam, in loco quodam, et signatioram, facit in nuditate, seu parte maxime contegenda
in toto corpore fæminino. 979. Et ille locus dicitur nuditas ab omnibus occultanda, locus scilicet pro membro
illo, quod dicitur Benignitas, ut scilicet mitigetur rigor iste, qui continet quinque rigores.

980. And that Benignity comprehendeth in itself five Benignities (otherwise, and herein existeth the
Benignity from the other Benignities). And Benignity is from those on the right, but Severity from those on
the left.

981. And when the latter is mitigated by the former He is called man, consisting in both aspects.

982. And therefore in all the crowns (the former state of things ) was not permanent, before that the
conformations of the King were prepared by the Ancient of the Ancient Ones, so that He might construct
the worlds, and form (their) conformations, for the purpose of establishing that Woman, so that She might
be mitigated.

983. Until the supernal Benignity could descend, and then the conformations of the Woman became
permanent, and were mitigated by this member (of Microprosopus), which is called the Benignity.

984. This is that which is written, Gen. xxxvi.: "And these are the kings which reigned in the land of Edom;"
which is the place where all the judgments are found, and they are the constitutions of the Woman.

985. For it is not written, "Who were," but "Who reigned," because they were not mitigated until all were
formed, and that Benignity went forth.

986. Therefore is it said, "And he died," because they were not permanent, neither was Judgment mitigated
through Judgment

987. But, and if thou sayest: "That if it be thus that all are judgments, wherefore is it written, Gen. xxxvi. 37:
'And Saul of Rechoboth by the waters reigned in his stead,' for this man truly doth not appear (to symbolize)
a judgment? "

988. We have learned that all denote judgment, excepting one, which last remaineth.

989. But this Saul of Rechoboth by the waters is one order (otherwise, one side or aspect), an order which is
expanded, and goeth forth from Rechoboth by the waters.

990. And this is Binah, wherefrom are opened the fifty gates in the aspects of the world of lights and

CHAPTER XL. CONCERNING THE FEMININE PORTION OF MICROPROSOPUS; AND CONCERNING


124 T
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

luminaries.

991. This is what is said concerning Rechoboth by the waters. And they were not all permanent. Thou shalt
not say that they were abolished, but that they were not permanent in that kingdom which is from the side of
the Woman.

992. Until there was excited and extended that Last One of them all concerning whom it is said: "And Hadar,
HDR, reigned after him."

993. Who is Hadar? The Supernal Benignity.

994. "And the name of his city was POV, Paau (crying aloud )." What is Paau? Through this the man prayeth
who is worthy of the Holy Spirit.

995. "And the name of his wife was Mechetabel, MChITBAL," herein are they mitigated together, and his
(Hadar's) wife is named, which is not written concerning any other of them. MChITBAL, Mechetabel (which
bears the

signification of "as if were made better by the name of Benignity, AL, EL, MChI TB AL

") mitigation of the one by the other.

996. "The daughter of MTRD, Matred," the elaborations, on the side of Severity: "the daughter of MIZHB,
Mezahab;" that is they have been firmly contempered and intertwined togethernamely MI, Me , Mercury,
and ZHB, Zahab, Gold, Mercy, and Judgment.

CHAPTER XLI. CONCERNING THE SEPARATE MEMBERS OF EACH


PERSONIFICATION, AND ESPECIALLY CONCERNING THE ARMS OF
MICROPROSOPUS.
997. HEREUNTO have adhered together both the Woman and the Man; now in Their condition are They
separated in arms and limbs.

998. Of the Male, one arm is right and the other left.

999. In the first arm (otherwise in the holy arm) three members (or divisions) are bound together.

1000. And the two arms are completed. And they are perfected in three members in the right arm, and in three
members in the left arm.

1001. The three members of the right arm correspond to the three members of the left arm.

1002. And therefore is mention only made of the one arm. For of the arms there is only made mention of that
on the right side; but in Exod. xv. 6 it is called, "Thy right hand, O Tetragrammaton!"

1003. Therefore it is said "the right hand of Tetragrammaton," with reference to the three divisions of the
Patriarchs who have occupied those parts.

1004. And if thou shalt say: "Also these are found (symbolized ) in the three cavities of the skull."

CHAPTER XLI. CONCERNING THE SEPARATE MEMBERS OF EACH PERSONIFICATION, AND


125 ESPEC
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

1005. We have learned that all these three (as to their conceptions) are expanded through and connected with
the whole body (of Microprosopus) through those three which are bound together in the right arm.

1006. And therefore David desired Him, and said, Ps. cx. i: "Sit thou with those on my right hand," that he
might be associated with the Patriarchs, and sit there in the perfect throne.

1007. And therefore it is written, Ps. cxviii. 22: "The stone which the builders rejected," because that he sat
on the right hand.

1008. This is that which is written, Dan. xii. 13: "And thou shalt rest, and rise again in thy lot at the limit of
My right hand."

1009. Like as if it were said: "Even as he who is worthy of the friendship of the King is happy when the King
extendeth His right hand, and placeth him at His right hand."

1010. But when He sitteth, certain members are extended as to this right hand, but the arm extendeth not the
hand (otherwise, when He sitteth, also the members are not extended, and the arm is not stretched forth but
remaineth still), with its three members, of which mention hath been made before.

1011. But when sinners are stirred up and spread abroad in the world, three other members are excited, which
are severe judgment, and His arm is stretched forth.

1012. And when that arm is stretched forth, it is as it were the right hand (also); but it is called "the arm of
Tetragrammaton": "O Tetragrammaton! Thine arm hath been stretched forth" (1 Kings viii. 42).

1013. When these three members are contained in those three, all are called the right hand, and judgment is
exercised and mercy.

10l4. This is that which is said, Exod. xv. 6: "Thy right hand, O Tetragrammaton, is marvellous in power;
with Thy right hand, O Tetragrammaton, wilt Thou dash in pieces the enemy;" seeing that therein are stirred
up the mercies.

10l5. Also, we have learned that unto this right hand adhere three hundred and fifty thousand myriads
(otherwise, which are called the right hand, and one hundred and eighty−five thousand myriads) from the
arm, which is called the arm of Tetragrammaton.

1016. Therefore, from either side is the arm (i.e., it is either the right arm or the left arm), because that it is
said (to be) on either side of Tiphereth.

1017. For it is written, Isa. lxiii. 12: "That led Moses to his right hand, by the arm of his Tiphereth."

1018. The first expression denoteth the right; but the "arm" denoteth the left; for it is written, "by the arm of
his Tiphereth," one (side) with the other (i.e., right and left).

1019. Moreover, we have learned that to that which is on the left side there adhere four hundred and fifty
Lords of Shields, and that they adhere unto those separate fingers.

1020. And in the single fingers there are found ten thousand Lords of the Shields. Go thou then forth, and
number how many of them there are in the hand.

1021. And this right hand is called the Holy Aid, which cometh forth from the right arm, from the three.

CHAPTER XLI. CONCERNING THE SEPARATE MEMBERS OF EACH PERSONIFICATION, AND


126 ESPEC
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

members (thereof).

1022. And although it be called the hand, yet is it Aid, since it is written, 2 Sam. iii. 12. "And behold, My
Hand is with thee."

1023. And in it are contained one thousand and four myriads and five hundred and eight thousand lords, the
aiders in every world, who are called the supernal hand of the Tetragrammaton, the inferior hand of the
Tetragrammaton.

1024. And although everywhere it be called the hand of Tetragrammaton, it is understood (that sometimes)
the left hand (is intended to be spoken of). For if they be benevolent, it is called the right hand of
Tetragrammaton, and the hand is included in the arm, and is for aid, and is called the hand; and if, on the
other hand, it be not so, the inferior hand of Tetragrammaton is (to be understood).

1025. We have learned that when the severe judgments are excited so that they may descend into the world,
that then it is written, Ps. xxv. 14: "The Arcanum of Tetragrammaton is over those who fear Him."

CHAPTER XLII. CONCERNING THE SEPARATION OF THE MASCULINE


AND THE FEMININE, AND CONCERNING THEIR CONJUNCTION.
1026. ALSO we have learned in the "Book of Concealed Mystery" that all the judgments which arise from
the Masculine are vehement in the commencement, and relax in the termination; but that those which are
found to arise from the Feminine are relax in commencement, and vehement in termination.

1027. And were it not that they could be conjoined, the world could not suffer them; whence the Ancient of
the Ancient Ones, the Concealed by all things, separateth the one from the other, and associateth them
together so that at once they may be mitigated.

1028. And when He wisheth to separate them He causeth an ecstasy ( or trance, cf. Gen. ii. 21) to fall upon
Microprosopus, and separateth the Woman from His back.

1029. And He conformeth all Her conformations, and hideth Her even unto Her day, on which She is ready to
be brought before the Male.

1030. This is that which is said, Gen. ii. 21: "And Tetragrammaton Elohim caused a deep sleep to fall upon
Adam, and he slept."

1031. What is this, "And he slept?" This is that which is written, Ps. xliv. 24: "Awake! wherefore sleepest
thou, O Tetragrammaton?"

1032. And He taketh away one of his sides. What is this one? This is the Woman.

1033. And She is taken away and conformed; and in Her place is inserted Mercy and Benignity. 1034. Like
as it is said: "And he hath shut up flesh before her." Ezek. xxxvi. 26: "And I will take away from you the
stony heart out of your flesh, and I will give you a heart of flesh."

1035. And when He wisheth to introduce the Sabbath, then did He create the spirits, and the malignant
demons, and the authors of disturbance; neither at first did He finish them, until the Mother could come into
Her formation, and could sit before Him.

CHAPTER XLII. CONCERNING THE SEPARATION OF THE MASCULINE AND THE FEMININE,
127AND CO
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

1036. When She could sit before Him, He ceased from those creatures, and they were not completed because
the Mother sat before the King, and they were associated together face to face.

1037. Who shall enter between Them? Who shall stir up war between Them mutually?

1038. Because the Arcanum of the matter is hidden in the time of the disciples of wisdom, who know our
Arcanum, from Sabbath unto Sabbath.

1039. And when they are associated together, then are They mutually mitigated in that day on which all
things are mitigated. And therefore are the judgments mitigated mutually and restored into order, both
superiors and inferiors.

CHAPTER XLIII. CONCERNING THE JUDGMENTS.


1040. ALSO, we have learned in the "Book of Concealed Mystery" that when the Most Holy Ancient One
desired to see whether the judgments could be mitigated, and whether these two could adhere together, that
then from the side of the Woman there went forth a vehement judgment, which the world could not bear.
1041 Whence it is written: "And Adam knew Eve his wife" (Gen. iv. 1). And she conceived and brought forth
QIN, Qain, and said: "I have acquired a man with Tetragrammaton."

1042. And She was not perfect, because She had not been mitigated, and the powerful serpent had transmitted
unto Her the pollution of severe judgment; and therefore She could not be mitigated.

1043. When therefore this man Qain proceeded from the side of the Woman, he went forth rigorous and
severe; severe in his judgment, rigorous in his judgment.

1044. But when he had gone forth, She Herself became thereafter weaker and more gentle. And there went
forth another and gentler birth.

1045. And the former one was removed, which was so vehement and rigorous that all the judgments could
not be mingled together before Her.

1046. Come and see. What is written? "And it came to pass when they were both in the field." "In the field,"
which is known to be the supernal (field); "in the field," which is called the field of the apple−trees.

1047. And this judgment hath conquered his brother because he is stronger than he, and hath subdued him,
and hath concealed him in his own power.

1048. Then therefore, that Holy God was stirred up regarding thismay His Name be blessed!and took him
away from the midst before him, and placed him in the mouth of the Great Abyss.

1049. And enclosed his brother by immersion in the Great Sea, so that he might temperate the supernal tears.

1050. And from them men descend in the world according to their path.

1051. And although they are concealed, yet are they extended mutually in themselves and from one body.

1052. And from that body descend the souls, NShMThHVN, of the impious, of the sinners, and of the
hardened in spirit. 1053. From them both at once, dost thou think? No but one floweth down from the one
side, and another from the other.

CHAPTER XLIII. CONCERNING THE JUDGMENTS. 128


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

1054. Blessed are the just, whose NShMThHVN, souls, are drawn from that Holy Body which is called
Adam, which includeth all things; the place, as it were, wherein all the Crowns and Holy Diadems are
associated together, arrayed in the equilibrium of balance.

1055. Blessed are the just, because all these are holy words which are sent forth through the Supernal Holy
Spirit, the spirit wherein all the Holy Ones are comprehended; the spirit in whom the supernals and inferiors
are collected together (otherwise, whom the supernals and inferiors hear).

1056. Blessed are ye, O Lords of Lords, Reapers of the Field, who know and contemplate those words, and
know well your Lord, face to face, and eye to eye; and through those words worthy in the world to come.

1057. This is that very thing which is written, Deut. iv. 38: "Know therefore this day, and consider it in thine
heart, that Tetragrammaton, He is Elohim (HVA HALHIM), in the heavens above, and upon the earth
beneath: there is none other."

1058. Where Tetragrammaton is the Ancient of Days. Hoa Ha−Elohim , that is the One, blessed be His Name
for ever, and unto the Ages of the Ages.

CHAPTER XLIV. FURTHER REMARKS CONCERNING THE SUPERNAL


MAN.
1059. RABBI SCHIMEON spake, and said: Let us behold. The superiors are below, and the inferiors are
above. 1060. The superiors are below. That is the form of the Man which is the Universal Superior
Conformation.

1061. We have learned this which is written, "And the just man is the foundation, ISVD, Yesod, of the
world," Prov. x. 25, because He comprehendeth the Hexad in one enumeration.

1062. And this is that which is written, Cant. v. 15: "His legs are as columns, ShSh, Shesh, of the Number
Six."

1063. We have learned in the "Book of Concealed Mystery" that in man are comprehended the Superior
Crowns in general and in special; and that in man are comprehended the Inferior Crowns in special and in
general.

1064. The Superior Crowns in general (are comprehended in) the figure of all those conformations, as hath
been already said.

1065. (The Superior Crowns) in special (are comprehended ) in the fingers of the hands, which are ChMSh
KNGD ChMSh, Chamesh Ke−Neged Chamesh, Five over against (or opposed to, or chief above) Five.

1066. The Inferior Crowns (are comprehended in) the toes of the feet, which are special and general.

1067. For the body is not seen with them, seeing they are extraneous to the body. And therefore they are not
in the body, seeing the body hath receded from them.

1068. For if so, what is this, Zach. xiv. 4: "And His feet shall stand in that day?" Truly the feet of the body,
the Lords of Judgments to exercise vengeance.

1069. And they are called the Lords of the Feet; and certain of them are powerful, and the Lords of the

CHAPTER XLIV. FURTHER REMARKS CONCERNING THE SUPERNAL MAN. 129


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Judgments, who are below, adhere unto the inferior crowns.

1070. We have learned that all those superior conformations which are in the Holy Body, in the Male and in
the Female, which ( arrangement of Male and Female) is the proper ordering (of the Form) of the man, are
deduced from themselves by turns, and that by turns they adhere each to its (order of deviation): and that by
turns they flow down into themselves (i.e., the duplicate Male and Female join).

1071. Like as the blood floweth through the passages of the veinsnow through one, now through another;
now hither, now thither; from one place into another place.

1072. And those interior portions of the Body bind themselves together by turns until all the worlds are
illuminated, and receive benediction because of them.

1073. We have learned that all those Crowns which are not comprehended in the Body are all far distant and
impure, and pollute whom they are permittedwhosoever, namely, cometh near unto them so that he may
learn anything from them.

1074. This have we learned. Wherefore, then, is there so great a desire for them among the Disciples of
Wisdom? For no other reason than that they (the Crowns which are impure) should approach that Holy Body,
and that thus perchance through them (the Disciples of Wisdom) they (the impure Crowns) may seek to be
comprehended in that Body. 1075. But if thou sayest that if it be so, surely the Holy Angels also are not
included in the comprehension of the Body.

1076. Most assuredly it is not so in the least. For if, He being absent from them, there were Holy Ones
without the conformative arrangement of the Body, surely (He being absent from them) they could neither
(continue to) be holy, nor to subsist.

1077. And nevertheless it is written, Dan. x. 6: "And his body like as ThRShISh, Tarshish;" also, Ezek. x. 12:
"And their backs full of eyes;" also, Dan. ix. 21: "The man Gabriel." All these passages refer to the analogy
of the Man.

1078. Those being accepted which exist not in the ordered arrangement of the Body; for those are impure,
and pollute himnamely, whosoever shall approach unto them.

1079. Also, we have learned that these are found to proceed from the spirit of the left side, which is not
mitigated in human form; and they have gone out from the ordered arrangement of the Holy Body, neither do
they adhere unto it.

1080. And therefore are they all impure, and they wander to and fro, and fly through the world.

1081. And they are entered into the mouth of the Great Abyss, so that they may adhere unto that former
judgment which had gone forth from the ordered arrangement of the Body, and which is called the Inferior
Qain.

1082. And they wander to and fro, and fly up and down, through the whole world, being carried abroad hither
and thither; and they adhere not in the Syntagma of the Body.

1083. And therefore are they without, and impure, among all the hosts above and below; like as it is written,
Lev. xiii. 46: "And his habitation shall be without the camp." 1084. But from the Spirit which is called Abel,
which hath been more mitigated in the Syntagma of the Holy Body, others go forth who have been more
mitigated, and can adhere unto the body, but cannot completely be inherent within it.

CHAPTER XLIV. FURTHER REMARKS CONCERNING THE SUPERNAL MAN. 130


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

1085. They all hang in the air, and go forth from this genus of those Impure Ones, and bear whatsoever may
be said above and below; and concerning them they have knowledge who have spoken concerning them.

1086. Also, this is the tradition in the "Book of Concealed Mystery." When the Syntagma of the Supernal
Man had been mitigated as to the Holy Body, in Male and Female form, these two were conjoined together
again for the third time.

1087. And the temperation of all things proceeded therefrom, and the superior and inferior worlds were
mitigated.

1088. And thenceforth the superior and inferior worlds are bound together under the form of the Holy Body,
and the worlds are associated together, and cohere together, and have been made one Body.

1089. And since all things are one Body, the Schechinah Superior, the Schechinah Inferiorthat Holy One,
may His be blessed above! that Holy One, may He be blessed below!hence is His Spirit drawn forth, and
She entereth into the One Body, and in all things there appeareth nothing but the Unity.

1090. QDVSh, QDVSh, QDVSh, IHVH TzBAVTh; Qadosh, Qadosh, Qadosh, Yod He Vau He Tzabaoth;
Holy, holy, holy, Tetragrammaton of the Hosts! the whole earth is full of Thy glory, for all things are Thy
One Body.

1091. We have learned that because the one hath been tempered by the other, hence it is written, Cant. i. 11:
"We will make thee borders of gold with studs of silver." For judgment and mercy are connected together
(otherwise, judgment is tempered through mercy), and She is mitigated by Him.

1092. And therefore She ascendeth not without Him, like as with the palms; one sex ariseth not without the
other.

1093. And therefore have we learned by tradition that if any one in this world cutteth himself off from the
race of mankind, he hereafter, when he quitteth this world, shall not enter into the Syntagma of mankind,
which is called the Holy Body; but (shall enter) among those who are not called mankind, so that he shall go
forth from the Syntagma of the Body.

1094. We have learned in exotic tradition that this is the sense of "We will make the borders of gold with
studs of silver" (Cant. i. 11), that judgment is mitigated through mercy, so that there can be no judgment in
which mercy is not found.

1095. And therefore it is written, ibid. 10: "Thy cheeks are beautiful in their outlines, and thy neck in pearls."

1096. "In outlines (or borders)," as it is written: "He will make thee borders of gold."

1097. "In pearls," answering to that which is written "With studs of silver."

1098. "Thy neck" involveth the perfection of the Woman. This is found to be the habitation of the Sanctuary
above, but the Jerusalem below.

1099. And all this is after that She is mitigated through the Male, and They twain are become one being, even
the Syntagma of Truth.

1100. What is this Truth? Wherein is found all Truth?

CHAPTER XLIV. FURTHER REMARKS CONCERNING THE SUPERNAL MAN. 131


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

1101. Thus have we learned. If any one be called Adam, and his soul ( Neschamah) goeth from him, and he
dieth, it is forbidden to leave him in his abode so that he should abide upon the earth.

1102. On account of the honour of that Body wherein no corruption can appear.

1103. For it is written, Ps. xlix. 13: "Man (Adam) shall not abide in honour;" that is, Adam, who is more
worthy that all honour, shall not abide.

1104. Wherefore? Because if it were thus, he would be like unto the beasts (BHMVTh, Behemoth) which
perish.

1105. In what manner is it with the beast? He is not in the race of Adam, neither is he able to receive the Holy
Spirit (RVChA QDIShA), for thus also would he be like unto the beast were his body without the Spirit,
when at the same time that body (of his), which is the most honourable of all (bodies, seeing it is the image of
the Supernal), is not meet to be associated with those things which are ignominious.

1106. Also we have learned in the "Book of Concealed Mystery," that were any one permitted to remain in
such (image of the) Holy Body, and yet without the Spirit (Ruacha), there would be a void in the Body of the
World.

1107. For assuredly, therefore, it could not be permitted unto him that he should abide in the holy place, in
that earth wherein justice abideth. (Otherwise: Under the command of the Holy Crown, Kether , of the King,
Microprosopus, in the earth, concerning which it is written, Isa. i. 21, "Justice abideth in Her.")

1108. Since that venerable Body is the Form of the King; but if it were thus permitted to remain, then it
would be counted as one of the beasts. (Otherwise: Since this venerable Body is called the Form of the King,
and if it were thus left abiding, it would be like as the beast.) Therefore is it said, "Like unto the beasts which
perish."

1109. We have learned this which is written, Gen. vi. 2: "And the sons of the Elohim beheld the daughters of
Adam." These (sons of the Elohim) are they who were withdrawn, and who fell into the mouth of the Great
Abyss.

1110. "The daughters of Adam." (Here it is to be. noted that it is written HADM, Ha−Adam, the initial being
demonstrative and emphatic, signifying) of that especial Adam.

1111. And it is written: "And they came in unto them . . . the same were mighty men, who were from the
Earth," &c. From that place, namely, which is called the earth, like as the tradition is concerning the phrase
IMI OVLM, Yemi Olahm, the day of the world.

1112. The impurities of the Name. From them have gone forth the Spirits, RVChIN, Ruachin, and the
Demons, ShDIN, Shedin, into the world, so that they may adhere unto the wicked.

1113. "There were HNPILIM, Ha−Nephilim, Giants, BARTz, Be−Aretz, in the earth;" for the restraining of
those who were left, who existed not in the earth.

1114. Those giants are OZA, Auza, and OZAL, Auzael, who were in the earth, the sons of the Elohim were
not in the earth. And this is an Arcanum, and all these things are said.

1115. It is written, Gen. vi. 6: "And it repented Tetragrammaton that He had formed Adam in the earth;" i.e.,
for the restriction of the Supernal Adam, who is not in the earth.

CHAPTER XLIV. FURTHER REMARKS CONCERNING THE SUPERNAL MAN. 132


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

1116. "And it repented Tetragrammaton;" this is said concerning Microprosopus.

1117. "And He was grieved about His heart;" it is not written, VIOTzB, Va−Yautzeb, and He affected with
grief; but VIThOTzB, Va−Yethautzeb, and He was touched with grief; i.e., He was affected with grief from
whom the matter depended, for the restriction of Him who was not touched with grid.

1118. "About His heart." It is not written, "within His heart," but "about His heart like as when any man is
afflicted with grief, and mourneth before his Lord; for herein it is referred unto the heart of all hearts.

1119. And Tetragrammaton said: "I will destroy the Adam whom I have created, from off the face of
HADMH, Ha−Adamah, the Earth," &c., for the restriction of the Adam, who is supernal.

1120. And if thou sayest that the Inferior Adam is alone to be understood, it is to be known that these cannot
altogether be opposed, seeing that the one existeth not without the other.

1121. And unless Chokmah, Wisdom, could be hidden from all, all things could be conformed like as from
the beginning.

1122. Hence it is said, Prov. viii. 12: "ANI ChKMH, Ani Chokmah , I, Wisdom, have dwelt with Prudence;"
read it not ShKNThI, Shekenethi, I have dwelt; but ShIKNTnI, Shikeneth−i, My Shechinah or my Presence.

1123. And unless Adam were thus, the world could not consist; like as it is written, Prov. iii. 19:
"Tetragrammaton in Chokmah hath founded the earth, IHVH BChKMH ISD ARTz, Tetragrammaton
Bo−Chokmah Yesed Aretz.

1124. Also it is written, Gen. vi. 8: "And Noah found grace in the eyes of Tetragrammaton."

1125. Also we have learned that all brains depend from this brain ( supernal).

1126. And Chokmah, Wisdom, also is a general name, but this concealed Wisdom corroborateth and
conformeth the form of the Man, so that He may abide in his place.

1127. Like as it is written, Eccl. vii. 19: "Wisdom is a strength to a wise man more than ten rulers which are
in a city;" which (ten ) are the integral conformation of the man.

1128. Adam, truly, is the interior conformation, wherein consisteth the RVCh, Ruach, Spirit; like as it is said,
1 Sam. xvi. 6: "Because Adam seeth according to the eyes, but Tetragrammaton seeth according to the heart,"
which is within the interior parts.

1129. And in that formation appeareth the true perfection of all things, which existeth above the Throne. Like
as it is written: "And the appearance as the likeness of Adam upon it from above" (Ezek. 1. 26).

1130. Also it is written, Dan. vii. 13: "And, behold, there came with the clouds of heaven one like unto a son
of man, and even unto the Ancient of Days he came, and they made Him approach unto Him."

CHAPTER XLIV. FURTHER REMARKS CONCERNING THE SUPERNAL MAN. 133


CHAPTER XLV.
CONCLUSION.
1131. HEREUNTO are the concealed words, and the more secret meaning (of then; hath been set forth in
many Places). Blessed is his portion who hath known and beheld them, and who erreth not therein.

1132. Because these words are not given forth save unto the Lords of Lords and the Reapers of the Field, who
have both entered into and departed therefrom. 1133. Like as it is written, Hosea xiv. 9: "For the paths of
Tetragrammaton are right, and the just shall walk in them, but transgressors shall fall therein."

1134. This have we learned. Rabbi Schimeon wept, and lifted up his voice and said: "If on account of our
words which be here revealed, the Companions are to be concealed in the Conclave of the world to come, and
are to be taken away from this world, it is justly and rightly done, in order that they may not reveal (these
secrets) unto one of the children of this world."

1135. Again he said: "I return unto myself. For truly I have revealed (these secrets) before the Ancient of the
Ancient Ones, the Concealed One with all Concealments; but not for mine own glory, not for the glory of the
house of my father, not for the glory of these my Companions, have I done (this thing).

1136. "But in order that they might not err in His paths, nor that they might enter into the portals of His
Palace to be made ashamed, nor that they might be destroyed for their error. Blessed be my portion with them
in the world to come."

1137. We have learned that before the companions departed from this Assembly, Rabbi Yosi, Rabbi
Chizqiah, and Rabbi Yisa died.

1138. And the companions beheld that the holy angels carried them away into that veil expanded above. And
Rabbi Schimeon spake a certain word, and fell upon his face.

1139. Rabbi Schimeon cried aloud and said: "Wherefore is this? Because a certain decree hath been decreed
against us to punish us, seeing that through us that hath been revealed which had not been revealed hitherto,
from that day wherein Moses stood upon the mountain of Sinai.

1140. "Like as it is written, Exod. xxxiv. 28: 'And he was there with Tetragrammaton forty days and forty
nights.' Why then do I tarry here, if therefor I am to be punished?"

1141. And a Voice was heard which spake, and said: "Blessed art thou, Rabbi Schimeon, and blessed is thy
portion, and that of those companions who are with thee; for unto ye hath that been revealed which is not
revealed unto the whole supernal host.

1142. "But come, behold. It is written, Josh. vi. 26: 'And in his first−born son shall he establish it, and in his
youngest son shall he set up the gates thereof;' much more than in this instance also are these taken away,
seeing that with most severe and vehement study have they applied their souls (NPShThHVN,
Nepheschethhun) hereunto at this time.

1143. "Blessed is their portion, for assuredly they have been taken away in perfection; and such were not
those who were before them."

1144. Wherefore died they? We have learned this. When thus far these words were revealed, the Supernals

CHAPTER XLV. 134


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

and Inferiors of those Chariots were disturbed, and the Voice which revealed the Ancient Word below
resounded through two hundred and fifty worlds.

1145. And before that those (three Rabbis) could recollect their souls, NShMThIIHV, Nesehamathiyehu,
among those words ( of that Voice) their souls had gone forth with a kiss ; and were joined unto that
expanded veil, and the Supernal Angels carried them away.

1146. But wherefore those? Because they had entered in, and had not gone forth alternately, before this time.
But all the others had entered in, and had gone forth.

1147. Rabbi Schimeon spake and said: "How blessed is the portion of those three, and therefore also blessed
is our portion!"

1148. And a second time that Voice pealed forth and said, Deut. iv. 4: "But ye that did cleave unto
Tetragrammaton, your God, are alive every one of you this day."

1149. They arose, and behold there was no place whence a fragrance went not forth.

1150. Rabbi Schimeon spake and said: "From this I perceive that the world receiveth blessing on account of
us."

1151. And the faces of them all shone, so that men could not look upon them.

1152. We have learned that there were ten (Rabbis) entered into (the Assembly), and that seven came forth.

1153. And Rabbi Schimeon rejoiced, and Rabbi Abba was sad.

1154. On a certain day Rabbi Schimeon sat, and Rabbi Abba with him. Rabbi Schimeon spake a certain word.

1153. And they saw those three (Rabbis) who had died, and with them were most beautiful angels, who were
showing unto them the supernal treasures and conclaves, on account of their great dignity.

1156. And they were entering into a mountain of pure balm; and the soul of Rabbi Abba was comforted.

1157. We have learned that after that day the companions did not quit the house of Rabbi Schimeon.

1158. And when Rabbi Schimeon revealed the Arcana, there were found none present there save those
(companions).

1159. And Rabbi Schimeon called them the seven eyes of Tetragrammaton, like as it is written, Zach. iii. 9:
"These are the seven eyes of Tetragrammaton." And this was said concerning us. 1160. Rabbi Abba spake
and said: "We six are lights which shine forth from a seventh (light); thou art the seventh light (the origin of )
us all.

1161. "For assuredly there is no stability in those six, save (what they derive) from the seventh. For all things
depend from the seventh."

1162. Rabbi Yehudah called him the Sabbath of all the six (Rabbi).

1163. Like as it is written: "The Sabbath for Tetragrammaton, holy unto Tetragrammaton."

CHAPTER XLV. 135


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

1164. What is the Sabbath? Holy unto Tetragrammaton; so also Rabbi Schimeon is, like the Sabbath, holy
unto Tetragrammaton.

1165. Rabbi Schimeon said: "It is strange that he who is girded about the loins, and clothed with a heavy
garment, was not found in the place of our conclave when those holy matters were revealed!"

1166. Meanwhile Elihu entered, and three beams of light shone in his countenance.

1167. Rabbi Schimeon said unto him: "Why was it that he was not present (otherwise, Why was not my lord
present) in the sculptured square of his Lord in the nuptial day?"

1168. He answered unto him: "Through thy life, Rabbi, seven were chosen before Him, the Holy Onemay
He be blessed!(otherwise, seven days are prostrate before the blessed God) all those who could come and
abide with Him, before that ye could enter into the House of Conclave.

1169. "And I prayed that I might come among the others, and I wished to adhere unto His shoulders
(otherwise, And I asked Him, that it might be permitted me to enter in, but He constrained my shoulders), and
I could not. 1170. "For in that day was I sent that I might perform miracles for Rav Hamenuna the elder and
his companions, who had been taken away into the palace (otherwise: into the prison) of the King.

1171. "And I performed a miracle for them, and cast down the King's rampart (otherwise: I cast down the
wall of the royal palace for them), with whose chains they were bound; so that (their) forty−five warders
were kept back.

1172. "And I led forth Rav. Hamenuna and his companions, and brought them up unto the valley of Aunu;
and they have been set free.

1173. "And I have given unto them bread and water, seeing they had not eaten for three days.

1174. "And all the day I quitted them not.

1175. "And when I returned (hither), I found the Veil expanded which all these Columns upheld; and three
of the Companions ( had ascended) above it.

1176. "And I spake unto them, and they answered: 'This is the portion of God the most Holy Onemay He be
blessed!from the nuptials of Rabbi Schimeon and his companions.'

1177. "Blessed art thou, Rabbi Schimeon, and blessed is thy portion, and that of those companions who are
sitting in thy presence.

1178. "How many paths are prepared for ye in the world to come! how many lights of lights are prepared that
they may enlighten ye!

1179. "And come, behold! Therefore on this day there are bound together for thee fifty crowns for Rabbi
Benchas Ben Yair, thy father−in−law, and I walk with him.

1180. "And all those are rivers of the mountains of pure balm, for assuredly his place and lot is chosen
(otherwise: and I saw that he had, &c.). 1181. (Rabbi Schimeon) said unto him: "Are therefore the just united
by the Union of the Diadems more on the days of the New Moon, of the feasts, and of the Sabbaths, than on
any other days? "

CHAPTER XLV. 136


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

1182. He answered unto him: "Most certainly; also all those who are without. Like as it is written, Isa. lxvi.
23: 'And it shall come to pass that from one new moon to another, and from one sabbath unto another, shall
all flesh come to worship before me, saith Tetragrammaton.'

1183. "If those come, how much more the just!

1184. "Wherefore from one new moon unto another? Because the patriarchs surround the Holy Chariot.

1185. "And from one Sabbath unto another Sabbath, because the seventh day is surrounded by all the other
six days.

1186. "Like as it is written: 'And the Elohim blessed the seventh day,' &c.

1187. "And thou, Rabbi Schimeon, art the seventh: thou shalt be the chief; and thou shalt be more crowned
and sanctified than all.

1188. "And with three most delicious feasts of the seventh day shall the just be entertained because of thee in
the world to come.

1189. "Also it is written, Isa. lviii. 13: 'Thou shalt call the sabbath a delight, the holy of Tetragrammaton,
honourable.'

1190. "Who is He, the Holy One of Tetragrammaton? This is Rabbi Schimeon Ben Yochai, who is called
very glorious (both) in this world and in (the world) to come."

Hereunto is the Greater Holy Assembly.

HADRA ZVTA QDIShA (HA IDRA ZUTA QADISHA) OR THE


LESSER HOLY ASSEMBLY.
CHAPTER I. WHICH CONTAINETH THE INTRODUCTION.
1. TRADITION.On that day on which the Companions were assembled together in the house of Rabbi
Schimeon, and on which he had arranged his affairs because he was about to depart from the world, before
him were Rabbi Eleazar his son, and Rabbi Abba, and the rest of the Companions; and the house was full.

2. Therefore lifting up his eyes, Rabbi Schimeon saw that the house was full. And Rabbi Schimeon wept,
saying: "The second time when I was sick, and Rabbi Benchas Ben Yair was in my presence, and until I had
chosen my place, life hath been prolonged unto me even until now.

3. "When I was restored, fire surrounded (my habitation) which hitherto hath never ceased, neither did any
man enter in unto me without permission.

4. "But now I see that it is taken away, and that the house is filled."

5. Whilst they were sitting down, Rabbi Schimeon, opening his eyes, beheld a certain vision, and lo! fire
surrounded the house!

6. Therefore all (the others) went forth, and Rabbi Eleazar his son, and Rabbi Abba remained; but the other
Companions sat without.

HADRA ZVTA QDIShA (HA IDRA ZUTA QADISHA) OR THE LESSER HOLY ASSEMBLY. 137
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

7. Rabbi Schimeon said unto Rabbi Eleazar his son: "Go forth, and see whether Rabbi Yitzchaq be present,
for whom I have made myself surety.

8. "And say thou unto him that he dispose his affairs, and that he may sit down with me. Blessed is his
portion."

9. Rabbi Schimeon arose and again sat down; and he laughed aloud, and rejoicing, said: "Where are the
Companions?"

10. Rabbi Eleazar arose and introduced them, and they sat down in his presence.

11. Rabbi Schimeon lifted up his hands and prayed a prayer, and was joyful.

12. And he said: "Let those Companions who were in the former Conclave assemble here."

13. Therefore, all the others having gone forth, there remained Rabbi Eleazar his son, and Rabbi Abba, and
Rabbi Yehudah, and Rabbi Yosi Bar Yoqeb, and Rabbi Chiya.

14. In the meantime Rabbi Yitzchaq entered, to whom Rabbi Schimeon said: "How excellent is thy lot! How
much joy is this day stored up for thee!"

15. Rabbi Abba sat down behind his (i.e., Rabbi Schimeon's) back, and Rabbi Eleazar before him (i.e., Rabbi
Schimeon).

16. Rabbi Schimeon spake and said: "Surely now is the time of benevolence, and I desire to enter without
confusion into the world to come.

17. "And verily these sacred things, which hereunto have never been revealed, I desire to reveal before the
Schekhinah; 18. "Lest they should say that I have kept back anything, and that I have been taken away from
the world; for even until now these things have been concealed in my heart, so that having entered into these
very matters I may be with them in the world to come.

19. "But this is my arrangement of you; let Rabbi Abba write, and let Rabbi Eleazar my son speak openly; but
let the rest of the Companions in silence meditate in their heart."

20. Rabbi Abba arose from his seat behind him, and Rabbi Eleazar his son sat down.

21. He said unto him, "Arise, O my son, for another shall sit in that seat;" and Rabbi Eleazar arose.

22. Rabbi Schimeon covered himself and sat down; and he commenced, and said Ps. cxv. 17: "'The dead shall
not praise IH, Yah, nor all they who go down into silence!

23. "'The dead shall not praise Yah; 'so it is certain that it is assuredly those who are called dead; for He, God,
the most Holy Onemay He be blessed!is called the Living One, and is Himself commemorated among
those who are called living, and not with those who are called dead.

24. "And the end of this text runneth thus: 'Nor all they who go down into silence;' for all they who go down
into silence remain in Gehenna.

25. "There is another reason appertaining to those who are called living, for God the must Holy Onemay He
be blessed!desireth their glory."

HADRA ZVTA QDIShA (HA IDRA ZUTA QADISHA) OR THE LESSER HOLY ASSEMBLY. 138
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

26. Rabbi Schimeon said: "How different is this occasion from that of the former conclave! For into a certain
conclave came He, the most Holy and Blessed God, and His Chariot.

27. "Now verily He, the Holy One, is heremay He be blessedand He hath approached with those just who
are in the Garden of Eden, which did not occur in the former conclave.

28. "And God, the Most Holy Onemay He be blessedmore promoteth the glory of the just than His own
glory.

29. "As it is written concerning Jeroboam, who sacrificed unto and served other gods, and yet God, the Most
Holy Onemay He be blessed!waited for him.

30. "But because he stretched forth his hand against Iddo the prophet, his hand became withered.

31. "For it is written, 1 Kings xiii. 4: 'And his hand became withered, &c. Here it is not written that it was
because he served other gods, but because he extended his hand against Iddo the prophet, &c.

32. "Now, therefore, God the Most Holy Onemay He be blessed!promoteth their glory (i.e., that of the
just), and they all come with Him,"

33. He said. "Verily, Rav Hamenuna the elder is here, and around him are seventy just represented in his
circle, of whom certain shine with the splendour of the Ancient and Most Holy One, the Concealed with all
Concealments.

33. He, I say, cometh, in order that with joy he may hear those words which I shall speak."

34. And when he had sat down be said: "Assuredly here a seat hath been set aside for Rabbi Benchas Ben
Yair."

35. The companions who were there trembled greatly, and they arose, and sat down in the lower part of the
house; but Rabbi Eleazar and Rabbi Abba (still sat) before Rabbi Schimeon.

36. Rabbi Schimeon said: "In the former Assembly we acted thus, namely, that all the companions spoke, and
I also with them, by turns. 37. "Now I shall speak alone, and let all hear my words superiors and inferiors;
blessed be my portion this day!"

38. Rabbi Schimeon commenced, and said, Cant. vii. 10: "'I am my beloved's, and his desire is towards me.'

39. "As long as I have been bound unto this world in one link with God, the Most Holy Onemay he be
blessed!have I been bound, and therefore now is His desire towards me.

40. "For He Himself and His whole holy company come, so that with joy they may hear the concealed words,
and the praise of Him, the Most Holy Ancient One, the Concealed with all Concealments.

41. "And He separateth Himself ever more and more; He is separated from all things, neither yet doth He
altogether separate Himself, seeing that unto Himself all things adhere, and that He Himself adhereth unto all;
HVA, Hoa, He Himself is all; He the Most Holy Ancient of all Ancients, the Concealed with all
Concealments.

42. "He hath been formed, and yet as it were He hath not been formed. He hath been conformed, so that He
may sustain all things; yet is He not formed, seeing that He is not discovered.

HADRA ZVTA QDIShA (HA IDRA ZUTA QADISHA) OR THE LESSER HOLY ASSEMBLY. 139
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

43. "When He is conformed He produceth nine Lights, which shine forth from Him, from His conformation.

44. "And from Himself those Lights shine forth, and they emit flames, and they rush forth and are extended
on every side, like as from an elevated lantern the rays of. light stream down on every side.

45. "And those rays of light, which are extended, when anyone draweth near unto them, so that they may be
examined, are not found, and there is only the lantern alone.

46. "So also is He the Most Holy and Ancient One: He is that highest Light concealed with all concealments,
and He is not found; those rays (proceeding from Him) being excepted, which are extended, which are
revealed, and which are hidden.

47. "And they are called the Holy Name, and therefore are all things One.

48. "Which truly our companions have said in former books, that certain paths have been created by the Most
Holy Ancient One, who is revealed through them collectively and severally; since they are the conformations
of the Most Holy Ancient One, concerning them now there is not time for examination.

49" I have spoken concerning them in the Holy Assembly, and I have beheld that which before I did not
understand in such a manner, and I have hidden the matter in my heart.

50. "But now I alone will describe these things before the Holy King, and all those assuredly just men who
have assembled to hear these words."

CHAPTER II. CONCERNING THE SKULL OF THE ANCIENT ONE, AND


CONCERNING HIS BRAIN; AND CONCERNING THE THREE HEADS,
AND THE HAIR, AND THE DISCRIMINATORY PATHS.
51. THE skull of the White Head hath not beginning, but its end is the convexity of its joining together,
which is extended, and shineth.

52. And from it the just shall inherit four hundred desirable worlds in the world to come.

53. And from this convexity of the joining together of this White Skull daily distilleth a dew into
Microprosopus, into that place which is called Heaven; and in that very place shall the dead be raised to life
in the time to come.

54. Like as it is written, Gen. xxvii. 27: "And Elohim shall give thee from the dew of heaven."

55. And His head is filled with that dew, and all the place of the apple−trees distilleth therewith.

56. He, the Most Holy Ancient One, is hidden and concealed, and in that Skull is the Supernal Wisdom
concealed, who is found and who is not found.

57. For assuredly in Him, the Ancient One, nothing is revealed save the Head alone, seeing that that Head is
itself the Head of all heads.

58. The beginning of that Supernal Wisdom which also is itself the Head, is hidden therein, and is called the
Supernal Brain, the Hidden Brain, the Tranquil and Calm Brain; neither doth any man know it save He
Himself.

CHAPTER II. CONCERNING THE SKULL OF THE ANCIENT ONE, AND CONCERNING HIS BRAIN;
140 AND
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

59. Three Heads have been formed forth, one within the other, and the other above the other.

60. One Head is the Concealed Wisdom, which is covered and is not disclosed.

61. And this Hidden Wisdom is the Head of all things, and the Head of the remaining wisdoms.

62. The Supernal Head is the Most Holy Ancient One, the Concealed with all Concealments.

63. The Head of all Heads, the Head which is not a Head namely, that which is in that Headneither
knows nor is known, because it cannot be comprehended either by Wisdom or Understanding.

64. And therefore is it read, Num. xxiv. 11: "Fly thee in thy place;" and Ezek. i. 14. The Chaioth, living
creatures, are said to run forth and return. 65. And therefore is the Most Holy Ancient One called AIN, Ain,
the Negatively Existent; seeing that back from Him dependeth the AIN, the Negative Existence.

66. But all these hairs and all those locks depend from the Hidden Brain.

67. And all are calm (otherwise, are disposed) in the Equilibrium; neither in any manner is the neck seen (i.e.,
because of the locks which overshadow it).

68. Because He the Most Holy Ancient One is in an unvarying condition of joy, neither changeth He from
mercy for ever.

69. But in the thirteen measurements of mercies is He found, because that Wisdom hidden in Him is divided
into three, paths in a quarternary, and He Himself the Ancient One comprehendeth them, and through them
doth He reign over all things.

70. One (path) which shineth in the midst of the hairs going forth from the Skull, is that path by whose light
the just are led into the world to come.

71. Like as it is written, Prov. iv. 18: "And the path of the just shineth as the light."

72. And concerning this it is written, Isa. lviii. 14: "Then shalt thou delight thyself in Tetragrammaton." 73.
And from that path are all the other paths illuminated which depend from Microprosopus.

74. He the Eternal Ancient of the Ancient Ones is the highest Crown among the Supernals, wherewith all
Diadems and Crowns are crowned.

75. And from Him are all the Lights illuminated, and they flash forth flames and shine.

76. But He verily is the Supreme Light, which is hidden, which is not known.

77. And all the other Lights are kindled by Him, and derive (their ) splendour (from him).

78. He the Most Holy Ancient One is found to have three heads, which are contained in the one Head.

79. And He Himself is that only highest supreme Head.

80. And since He the Most Holy Ancient One is thus symbolized in the Triad, hence all the other Lights
which shine are included in Triads.

CHAPTER II. CONCERNING THE SKULL OF THE ANCIENT ONE, AND CONCERNING HIS BRAIN;
141 AND
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

81. Moreover, the Most Holy Ancient One is also symbolized by the Duad.

82. And the division of the Ancient One in the Duad is so that the ( one form is) the Highest Crown of all the
Supernals, the Head of all Heads.

83. And (the other is) that superior Head, and It is not known.

84. So also all the remaining Lights are mystically divided into Duads.

85. Furthermore, the Most Holy Ancient One is symbolized and concealed under the conception of the Unity,
for He himself is One, and all things are One.

86. And thus all the other Lights are sanctified, are restricted, and are bound tog−ether in the Unity or Monad,
and are One; and all things are HVA, Hoa, Himself.

CHAPTER III. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF THE MOST HOLY


ANCIENT ONE.
87. THE Forehead, which is uncovered in the Most Holy Ancient One, is called Grace.

88. For that Supernal Head concealed in the Higher, which no man hath known, expandeth a certain external
manifestation, beautiful and gracious, which is comprehended in the Forehead.

89. And since He Himself is the grace of all graciousness; hence He assumeth the conformation of the
Forehead, which is disclosed in the most intense light (otherwise, hath a formation in the figure of a leaf).

90. And when It is disclosed, the grace of all gracious. ness is found in all worlds.

91. And all the prayers of the Inferiors are accepted; and the countenance of Microprosopus is illuminated,
and all things are found to exist in mercy.

92. And since (through this) all judgments are hidden

and subjected, hence in the Sabbath, in the time of the afternoon prayers, in which all judgments are excited,
that Forehead is disclosed.

93. And all the judgments are turned aside, and mercies are found.

94. And therefore is the Sabbath found without judgment, as well that which is above as that which is below;
also the fire of Gehenna is restrained in its place, and the transgressors are at rest.

95. And therefore is the Spirit, NShMTh, of joy added on the Sabbath.

96. And it behoveth man to rejoice with three feasts on the Sabbath; for all truth, and the whole system of
truer faith, is found therein ( i.e., in the Sabbath).

97. And it behoveth man to prepare the table, that he may eat in the three feasts of true faith, and rejoice in
them.

98. Rabbi Schimeon said: "I attest concerning myself, before all these who are here present, that through all

CHAPTER III. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT ONE. 142
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

my days I have not omitted these three feasts, and that because of them I have not been compelled to fast on
the Sabbath.

99. "Furthermore, also on other days I have not been compelled ( to fast), much less on the Sabbath, for he
who, rightly acteth concerning these (feasts) is the adept of perfect truth.

100. "The first feast is that of the Great Mother; the second that of the Holy King; and the third that of the
Most Holy Ancient One, the Concealed with all Concealments.

101. "And in this world, who can thoroughly follow out, through them, those paths? 102. "If this RTzVN,
Ratzon, Grace, be revealed, all those judgments are enlightened, and are diverted from their concentrated
rigour.

103. "The conformation of Him, the Most Holy Ancient One, is instituted through one form, which is the
ideal Syntagma of all forms.

104. "The same is the Concealed Supernal Wisdom, the synthesis of all the rest.

105. "And this is called ODN, Eden, or the supernal Paradise, concealed with all occultations.

106. "And it is the Brain of the Most Holy Ancient One, and that Brain is expanded on every side.

107. "Therefore is it extended into Eden, or another Paradise, and from this is Eden or Paradise formed forth.

108. "And when this Head, which is concealed in the Head of the Ancient One, which is not known,
extendeth a certain frontal formation, which is formed for brilliance, then flasheth forth the Lightning of His
Brain.

109. And it is formed forth and illuminated with many Lights.

110. And it produceth and designeth (a certain effect) in this Light (otherwise, in this opening), in this
Forehead, whereon is inscribed a certain Light, which is called RTzVN, Ratzon, Grace.

111. "And that Grace is extended backward into the beard, even unto that place where it can remain in the
beard, and it is called the Supernal, ChSD, Chesed, Mercy.

112. "And when this Grace is uncovered, all the Lords of Judgment behold It, and are turned aside."

CHAPTER IV. CONCERNING THE EYES OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT


ONE.
113. THE eyes of the Head of the Most Holy Ancient One are two in one, equal, which ever watch, and
sleep not.

114. Like as it is written, Ps. cxxi. 4: "The Keeper of Israel neither slumbereth nor sleepeth," &c.namely, of
Israel the holy.

115. And therefore are there no eyebrows nor eyelashes unto His eyes.

116. This Brain is conformed and illuminated with three supernal white brilliances.

CHAPTER IV. CONCERNING THE EYES OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT ONE. 143
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

117. With this white brilliance are the eyes of Microprosopus bathed.

118. As it is written, Cant. v. 12: "Washed with milk," flowing down from the fulness of that primal white
brilliance.

119. And with the remaining white brilliances are the other lights cleansed and purified.

120. The Brain is called the fountain of Benevolence, the fountain wherein all blessings are found.

121. And since this Brain radiateth into the three white brilliances of the eye (of Microprosopus), hence is
that called the "good eye," concerning which it is said, Prov. xxii. 9: "It shall be blessed," or rather that from
it dependeth blessing.

122. For through the Brain are manifested the white brilliances of the eye.

123. And when this eye looketh upon Microprosopus, all the worlds are (in a state of) happiness. 124. This is
the right eye. The inferior eyes are right and left, two in duplicate colour.

125. In the "Book of Concealed Mystery" have we taught that there is a Superior Yod, an Inferior Yod; a,
Superior He, an Inferior He; a Superior Vau, an Inferior Vau.

126. Unto the Ancient One pertain all the Superiors, and unto Microprosopus the Inferiors.

127. They depend not in another manner, but only thus; for from the Most Holy Ancient One do they depend.

128. For the Name of the Ancient One is concealed in all things, neither is it found.

129. But those letters which depend from the Ancient One, so that they may be established, are all inferiors.
For were it not so, they could not be established.

130. And therefore is the Holy Name alike concealed and manifest.

131. For that which is concealed pertaineth unto the Most Holy Ancient One, the Concealed in all things.

132. But that, indeed, which is manifested, because it dependeth, belongeth unto Microprosopus. (Otherwise,
that which is manifested, is so for this reasonthat it is manifested because it dependeth, &c.)

133. And therefore do all the blessings require both concealment and manifestation.

134. Those concealed letters which hang behind depend from the Most Holy Ancient One.

135. Wherefore do they hang behind? For the purpose of establishing the Inferior Yod. (Otherwise, assuredly
from the Skull, from the Forehead, from the Eyes, do they depend. And the Yod Maternal dependeth
towards the Inferior Yod.)

CHAPTER V. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT


ONE.
136. THE NOSE. From this nose, from the openings of the nostrils, the Spirit of Life rusheth forth upon
Microprosopus.

CHAPTER V. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT ONE. 144
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

137. And from that opening of the nose, from those openings of the nostrils, dependeth the letter He, in order
to establish the other and Inferior He.

138. And that Spirit proceedeth from the hidden brain, and She is called the Spirit of Life, and through that
Spirit will all men understand ChKMThA, Chokmatha, Wisdom, in the time of King Messiah.

139. As it is written, Isa. xi. 2: "And the Spirit of Wisdom and Understanding, RYC ChKMH VBINH,
Ruach Chokmah Va−Binah, shall rest upon Him," &c.

140. This nose is life in every part; perfect joy, rest of spirit, and health.

141. The nose of Microprosopus is as we have (before) conformed it.

142. Since concerning Him it is said, Ps. xviii. 9: "There ascendeth a smoke in His nose," &c.

143. But concerning this it is written, Isa. xlviii. 9: "And for my name's sake will I defer mine anger (literally,
lengthen my nose) for thee."

144. (But in the Book which is called "The Treatise of the School of Rav Yeyeva the Elder," the letter He is
located in the mouth, and he doth not argue in the same manner as in the text, neither doth he bring about the
same combination, although the matter eventuateth in the same manner.)

145. But yet from the letter the judgment dependeth, and judgment pertaineth unto the nose (of
Microprosopus). Like as it is written, Ps. xviii. 9: "Smoke ascendeth out of His nose."

146. And if thou sayest that behold also it is written, "And fire out of His mouth consumeth," surely the
foundation of wrath dependeth from His nose.

147. All the conformations of the Most Holy Ancient One are formed forth from the calm and concealed
brain.

148. And all the conformations of Microprosopus are formed through the Inferior Chokmah, Wisdom. Like as
it is written, Ps. civ. 24: "All these hast thou made in Chokmah." And certainly it (Wisdom ) is the epitome of
all things.

149. Now what is the difference between H, He, and H, He ? By the Inferior He is judgment stirred up; but in
this instance, through the other lire, mercy unto mercy is denoted.

CHAPTER VI. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT


ONE.
150. From the Beard of the Most Holy Ancient One hangeth the whole ornament of all, and the Influence; for
all things are called from that beard, Influence.

151. This is the Ornament of all Ornaments, and this influence do all the superiors and inferiors alike behold.
152. From this Influence dependeth the life of all things.

153, From this Influence heavens and earth depend, the rains of grace, and the nourishment of all things.

154. From this Influence cometh the providence of all things. From this Influence depend all the superior and

CHAPTER VI. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF THE MOST HOLY ANCIENT ONE. 145
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

inferior hosts.

155. Thirteen fountains of excellent and precious oil depend from this beard of most glorious Influence, and
they all flow down into Microprosopus.

156. Say not thou, however, that all do so, but nine of them are found (in Microprosopus) for the purpose of
diverting the judgments.

157. And whensoever this Influence hangeth down in equilibrium even unto the heart, all the Holinesses of
the Holinesses of Holiness depend from it.

158. In that Influence is extended an expansion of the Supernal Emanation, which is the Head of all Heads,
which is not known nor perfected, and which neither superiors nor inferiors have known, because from that
Influence all things depend.

159. In this beard the Three Heads concerning which we have spoken are expanded, and all things are
associated together in this Influence, and are found therein.

160. And therefore every ornament of ornaments dependeth from that Influence.

161. Those letters which depend from this Ancient One all hang in that beard, and are associated together in
that Influence.

162. And they hang therein for the purpose of establishing the other letters.

163. For unless those letters could ascend into the Ancient One, those other letters could not be established.

164. And therefore Moses saith when necessary IHVH, IHVH, twice; and so that an accent distinguishes the
one from the other.

165. For assuredly from the Influence all things depend.

166. By that Influence are both superiors and inferiors brought into reverence, and are prostrate before It.

167. Blessed is he who attaineth hereunto.

CHAPTER VII. CONCERNING THE BRAIN AND THE WISDOM IN


GENERAL.
168. OF this Most Holy Ancient One, Concealed with all Concealments, there is no mention made, neither is
He found.

169. For since this Head is the supreme of all the supernals, hence He is only symbolized as a head alone
without body, for the purpose of establishing all things.

170. And He Himself is concealed, and hidden, and kept recondite by all things.

171. His conformation is that He is formed forth in that brain, the most hidden of all things, which is
expanded and formed forth, and hence proceedeth the superior and inferior ChSD, Chesed, Mercy.

CHAPTER VII. CONCERNING THE BRAIN AND THE WISDOM IN GENERAL. 146
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

172. And the superior Chesed is formed forth and expanded, and all things are comprehended in this
concealed brain.

173. For when that White Brilliance is formed forth in that Light, it acteth upon that which acteth upon this
brain, and it is enlightened.

174. And the second brain dependeth from that very glorious Influence, it is expanded into the thirty−two
paths, when it is illuminated, then it shineth from that very glorious Influence.

175. Therefore are the Three Supernal Heads illuminated; Two Heads, and One which comprehendeth them;
and they hang in that Influence, and by It are they comprehended.

176. Hence becometh the ornament of the beard to be manifested, which is the occult Influence.

177. And those inferiors are conformed, like as the Most Holy Ancient One.

178. The Three Heads surround Him; thus all things can appear in the Three Heads; and when they are
illuminated all things depend together from Him in the Three Heads, whereof two are on the two sides, and
one which includeth them.

179. And if thou sayest, "Who is the Most Holy Ancient One?" Come and see. The Supreme Head is that
which is not known, nor comprehended, nor designated, and that (Head) comprehendeth all things.

180. And the Two Heads are contained in Itself. (Otherwise hang, &c.)

181. And then are all these things thus ordained; truly Himself existeth not in numeration, nor in system, nor
in computation, but in the judgment of the heart.

182. Concerning this it is written, Ps. xxxix. 2: "I said I will take heed unto my ways, that I offend not with
my tongue."

183. The place of commencement is found from the Most Holy Ancient One, and it is illuminated by the
Influence. That is the Light of Wisdom.

184. And it is extended in thirty−two directions, and departeth from that hidden brain, from that Light which
existeth in Itself.

185. And because the Most Holy Ancient One shineth in the beginning (otherwise, in the wisdom), this itself
is this. And, the same is that beginning from which manifestation is made.

186. And is conformed in the Three Heads, which One Head includeth.

187. And those three are extended into Microprosopus, and from them all things shine forth.

188. Thenceforth this Wisdom instituteth a formation, and produceth a certain river which floweth down and
goeth forth to water the garden.

189. And it entereth into the head of Microprosopus, and formeth a certain other brain.

190. And thence it is extended and floweth forth into the whole body, and watereth all those plants (of the
garden of Eden).

CHAPTER VII. CONCERNING THE BRAIN AND THE WISDOM IN GENERAL. 147
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

191. This is that which standeth written, Gen. ii, 9: "And a river went out of Eden to water the garden, &c."

192. But also this Wisdom instituteth another formation, and is extended and goeth into the head of
Microprosopus, and formeth another brain.

193. That is the Light from which are produced those two rivulets which are associated together, carved out
hollows in the One Head, which is called the depth of the fountain.

194. Concerning which it is written, Prov. iii. 20: "In DOTh, Daath, Knowledge, the depths are broken up."

195. And it entereth into the head of Microprosopus, and formeth another brain.

196. And thenceforth is it extended and goeth into the interior parts of His body, and filleth all those
conclaves and assemblies of His body.

197. This is that same which is written, Prov. xxiv. 4: "In Daath shall the secret places be filled."

198. And those shine from the Light of that supernal concealed brain which shineth in the Influence, MZL, of
the Most Holy Ancient One.

199. And all things depend mutually from Himself, and mutually are bound together unto Himself, until He is
known, because all things are one, and HVA, Hoa, He, the Ancient One, is all things, neither from Him can
anything whatsoever be separated.

200. Into three other Lights, which are called the Fathers, do these three Lights shine, and these fathers shine
into the children, and all things shine forth from the one place.

201. When He, that Ancient One, who is the Grace of all Grace, is manifested, all things are found in light
and in perfect happiness.

202. This Eden is derived from the superior Eden, the Concealed with all Concealments.

203. And therefore is that Eden called the beginning in the Ancient One; neither yet, however, is there
beginning or end.

204. And since in Him beginning and end exist not, hence He is not called AThH, Atah, Thou; seeing that He
is concealed and not revealed. But HVA, Hoa, He, is He called.

205. But in that aspect wherein the beginning is found, the name AThH, Atah, Thou, hath place, and the name
AB, Ab, Father. For it is written, Isa, lxiii. 16: "Since Atah, Thou, art Ab, our Father."

206. In the teaching of the school of Rav Yeyeva the Elder, the universal rule is that Microprosopus be called
AThH, Atah, Thou; but that the most Holy Ancient One, who is concealed, be called HVA, Hoa, He; and also
with reason. 207. Now truly in that place wherein beginning is found, is He thus called, although He is
concealed.

208. And therefrom is the beginning, and it is called AThH, Atha , Thou; and He is the Father of the Fathers.

20g. And that Father proceedeth from the Most Holy Ancient One, like as it is written, Job. xxviii. 12: "And
ChKMH, Chokmah, Wisdom, is found from AIN, Ain, the Negatively Existent One;" and therefore is He
not known.

CHAPTER VII. CONCERNING THE BRAIN AND THE WISDOM IN GENERAL. 148
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

210. Come and see! It is written, ibid. 22: "The Elohim have known the path;" His path, properly speaking.

211. But again, further on: VHVA, Va−Hoa, and He Himself knoweth His place; "His place properly
speaking; much more His path; and much more this WISDOM which is concealed in the Most Holy Ancient
One.

212. This Wisdom is the beginning of all things. Thencefrom are expanded the thirty−two paths: ShBILIN,
Shebilin, Paths, I say; and not ARChIN, Archin, Byways.

213. And in them is the Law comprehended, in the twenty−two letters and in the ten utterances.

214. This Chokmah is the Father of Fathers, and in this Chokmah is beginning and end discovered; and
therefore is there one Chokmah supernal, and another Chokmah inferior.

215. When Chokmah is extended, then is He called the Father of Fathers, for in none else are all things
comprehended save in Him. (Otherwise, when they are expanded all things are called Chokmoth, and the
Father of Fathers; all things are comprehended in no place, save herein.) 20. As it is written, Ps. civ. 25: "All
things in Chokmah hast Thou formed."

217. Rabbi Schimeon lifted up his hands, and rejoiced, and said: Assuredly it is Eden or Paradise, and all
things have their operation in this hour.

CHAPTER VIII. CONCERNING THE FATHER AND THE MOTHER IN


SPECIAL.
218. COME and behold. When the Most Holy Ancient One, the Concealed with all Concealments, desired to
be formed forth, He conformed all things under the form of Male and Female; and in such place wherein
Male and Female are comprehended.

219. For they could not permanently exist save in another aspect of the Male and the Female (their
countenances being joined together).

220. And this Wisdom embracing all things, when it goeth forth and shineth forth from the Most Holy
Ancient One, shineth not save under the form of Male and Female.

221. Therefore is this Wisdom extended, and it is found that it equally becometh Male and Female.

222. ChKMH AB BINH AM, Chokmah Ab Binah Am: Chokmah is the Father, and Binah is the Mother, and
therein are Chokmah, Wisdom, and Binah, Understanding, counterbalanced together in most perfect equality
of Male and Female.

223. And therefore are all things established in the equality of Male and Female; for were it not so, how could
they subsist!

224. This beginning is the Father of all things; the Father of all Fathers; and both are mutually bound
together, and the one path shineth into the otherChokmah, Wisdom, as the Father; Binah, Understanding, as
the Mother.

225. It is written, Prov. ii. 3: "If thou callest Binah the Mother."

CHAPTER VIII. CONCERNING THE FATHER AND THE MOTHER IN SPECIAL. 149
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

226. When They are associated together They generate, and are expanded in truth.

2227. In the teaching of the school of Rav Yeyeva the Elder it is thus taught: "What is Binah the Mother of
Understanding?" Truly when They are mutually associated together.

228. Assuredly Yod, I, impregnateth the letter He, H, and produceth a Son, and She herself bringeth Him
forth.

229. And therefore is it called BINH, as if (it were a transposition of) BINH, Ben Yah, Son of IH (or I, Yod,
H, He, and BN, the Son).

230. But They both are found to he the perfection of all things when They are associated together, and when
the Son is in Them the Syntagma of all things findeth place.

231. For in Their conformations are They found to be the perfection of all thingsFather and Mother, Son,
and Daughter.

232. These things have not been revealed save unto the Holy Superiors who have entered therein and
departed therefrom, and have known the paths of the Most Holy. God (may He be blessed!), so that they have
not erred in them either on the right hand or on the left. 233. For thus it is written, Hos. xiv. 9: "The paths of
Tetragrammaton are true, and the just shall walk in them," &c.

235. For these things are concealed, and the Holy Highest Ones shine in them, like as light proceedeth from
the shining of a lantern.

236. These things are not revealed save unto those who have entered therein and departed therefrom; for as
for him who hath not entered therein and departed therefrom, better were it for him that he had never been
born.

237. For it hath been manifested before the Most Holy Ancient One, the Concealed with all Concealments,
because these things have shone into mine heart in the perfection of the love and fear of the Most Holy God,
may He be blessed!

238. And these, my sons, who are here present, know these things; for into these matters have they entered
and therefrom have they departed; but neither yet into all (the secrets of them).

239. But now are these things illustrated in (their) perfection, even as it was necessary. Blessed be my portion
with them in this world!

240. Rabbi Schimeon said: All which I have said concerning the Most Holy Ancient One, and all which I
have said concerning Microprosopus, all are one, all are HVA, Hoa, Himself, all are Unity, neither herein
hath separation place.

241. Blessed be HVA, Hoa, He, and blessed be His Name unto the Ages of the Ages.

242. Come, behold! This beginning which is called Father, is comprehended in I, Yod, , which dependeth
from the Holy Influence. 243. And therefore is I, Yod, the Most Concealed of all the other letters.

244. For I, Yod, is the beginning and the end of all things.

245. And that river which floweth on and goeth forth is called the World, which is ever to come and ceaseth

CHAPTER VIII. CONCERNING THE FATHER AND THE MOTHER IN SPECIAL. 150
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

never.

246. And this is the delight of the just, that they may be made worthy of that world which is to come, which
ever watereth the garden of Eden, nor faileth.

247. Concerning this it is written, Isa. lviii. 11: "And like a fountain of water, whose waters fail not."

248. And that world to come is created through I, Yod.

249. As it is written, Gen. ii. 9: "And a river went forth out of Eden to water the garden."

250. For I, Yod, includeth two letters.

251. In the teaching of the school of Rav Yeyeva the Elder thus is the tradition. Wherefore are VD, Vau
Daleth, comprehended in IVD, Yod? Assuredly the planting of the garden is properly called V, Vau; and
there is another garden which is D, Daleth , and by that Vau is Daleth watered, which is the symbol of the
quaternary.

252. And an Arcanum is extended from this passage, where it is written: "And a river went forth out of Eden."

253. What is Eden? It is the supernal ChKMH, Chokmah, Wisdom, and that is I, Yod (in I, V, D). 254. "To
water the garden." That is V, Vau.

255. "And thence it is divided and goeth forth into four heads." That is D, Daleth.

256. And all things are included in IVD, Yod, and therefore is the Father called All, the Father of Fathers.

257. The beginning of all is called the Home of All. Whence IVD, Yod, is the beginning and the end of all;
like as it is written, Ps. civ. 24: "All things in Chokmah hast Thou made."

258. In His place He is not manifested, neither is He known; when He is associated with the Mother, BAMA,
Be−Ama, then is He made known (otherwise, symbolized) in the Mother, BAIMA, Be−Aima.

259. And therefore is Aima known to be the consummation of all things, and She is signified to be the
beginning and the end.

260. For all things are called Chokmah, and therein are all things concealed; and the Syntagma of all things is
the Holy Name.

261. Thus far have we mystically described that which we have not said on all the other days. But now are the
aspects shown forth.

262. (As to the Sacred Name IHVH,) I, Yod, is included in this Chokmah, Wisdom; H, He, is Aima, and is
called Binah, Understanding; VH, Vau He, are those two Children who are produced from Aima, the Mother.

263. Also we have learned that the name BINH, Binah, comprehendeth all things. For in Her is I, Yod, which
is associated with Aima, or the letter H, He, and together they produce BN, Ben, the Son, and this is the word
Binah. Father and Mother, who are I, Yod, and H, He, with whom are interwoven the letters B, Beth, and N,
Nun, which are BN, Ben; and thus far regarding Binah.

264. Also is She called ThBVNH, Thebunah, the Special Intelligence. Wherefore is She sometimes called

CHAPTER VIII. CONCERNING THE FATHER AND THE MOTHER IN SPECIAL. 151
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Thebunah, and not Binah?

265. Assuredly Thebunah is She called at that time in which Her two Children appear, the Son and the
Daughter, BN VBTh, Ben Va−Bath, who are VH, Vau He; and at that time is She called ThBVNH, Thebunah.

266. For all things are comprehended in those letters, VH, Vau He , which are BN VBTh, Ben Va−Bath, Son
and Daughter; and all things are one system, and these are the letters ThBVNH.

267. In the Book of Rav Hamenuna the Elder it is said that Solomon revealeth the primal conformation (that
is, the Mother) when he saith, Cant. i. 15: "Behold, thou art fair, my love;" wherefore he followeth it out
himself.

268. And he calleth the second conformation the Bride, which is called the Inferior Woman.

269. And there are some who apply both these names (those, namely, of Love and Bride) to this Inferior
Woman, but these are not so.

270. For the first H, He (of IHVH), is not called the Bride; but the last H, He, is called the Bride at certain
times on account of many symbolic reasons.

271. For many are the times when the Male is not associated with Her, but is separated from Her.

272. Concerning this period it is said, Lev. xviii. 19: "Also thou shalt not approach unto a woman in the
separation of her uncleanness."

273. But when the Female hath been purified, and the Male desireth to be united unto Her, then is she called
the Bridethe Bride, properly so called. 274. But as to that which pertaineth unto the Mother, then the
benevolence of Them both is not taken away for all eternity.

275. Together They (Chokmah and Binah, IH) go forth, together they are at rest; the one ceaseth not from the
other, and the one is never taken away from the other.

276. And therefore is it written, Gen. ii. 10: "And a river went forth out of Eden"i.e., properly speaking, it
continually goeth forth and never faileth.

277. As it is written, Isa. lviii. 11: "And like a fountain of waters, whose waters fail not."

278. And therefore is She called "My love," since from the grace of kindred association They rest in perfect
unity.

279. But the other is called the Bride, for when the Male cometh that He may consort with Her, then is She
the Bride, for She, properly speaking, cometh forth as the Bride.

280. And therefore doth Solomon expound those two forms of the Woman; and concerning the first form
indeed he worketh hiddenly, seeing it is hidden.

281. But the second form is more fully explained, seeing that it is not so hidden as the other.

282. But at the end all his praise pertaineth unto Her who is supernal, as it is written, Cant. vi. 9: "She is the
only one of Her Mother, She is the choice one of Her that bare Her."

CHAPTER VIII. CONCERNING THE FATHER AND THE MOTHER IN SPECIAL. 152
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

283. And since this Mother, Aima, is crowned with the crown of the Bride, and the grace of the letter I, Yod,
ceaseth not from Her for ever, hence unto Her arbitration is committed all the liberty of those inferior, and all
the liberty of all things, and all the liberty of sinners, so that all things may be purified.

284. As it is written, Lev. xvi. 30: "Since in that day he shall atone for you."

285. Also it is written, Lev. xxv. 10: "And ye shall hallow the fiftieth year." This year is IVBL, Yobel,
jubilee.

286. What is Yobel? As, it is written, Jer. xvii. 8: "VOL IVBL, Va−El Yobel, And spreadeth out her roots by
the river;" therefore that river which ever goeth forth and floweth, and goeth forth and faileth not.

287. It is written, Prov. ii. 3: "If thou wilt call Binah the Mother, and wilt give thy voice unto Thebunah."

288. Seeing it is here said, "If thou wilt call Binah the Mother," wherefore is Thebunah added?

289. Assuredly, according as I have said, all things are supernal truth: Binah is higher than Thebunah. For in
the word BINH, Binah , are shown Father, Mother, and Son; since by the letters IH, Father and Mother are
denoted, and the letters BN, denoting the Son, are amalgamated with them.

290. ThBVNH, Thebunah, is the whole completion of the children, since it containeth the letters BN, Ben,
BTh, Bath , and VH, Vau He, by which are denoted the Son and Daughter.

291. Yet AB VAM, Ab Ve−Am, the Father and the Mother, are not found, save BAIMA, Be−Aima, in the
Mother, for the venerable Aima broodeth over Them, neither is She uncovered.

292. Whence it cometh that that which embraceth the two Children is called ThBVNH, Thebunah, and that
which embraceth the Father, the Mother, and the Son is called BINH, Binah.

293. And when all things are comprehended, they are comprehended therein, and are called by that name of
Father, Mother, and Son.

294. And these are ChKMH, Wisdom, Father; BINH, Understanding, Mother; and DOTh, Däath, Knowledge.
295. Since that Son assumeth the symbols of His Father and of His Mother, and is called DOTh, Däath,
Knowledge, since He is the testimony of Them both.

296. And that Son is called the first−born, as it is written, Exod. iv. 22: "Israel is my first−born son."

297. And since He is called first−born, therefore it implieth dual offspring.

298. And when He increaseth, in His Crown appear three divisions.

299. But whether it be taken in this way or in that, there are as well two as three divisions herein, for all
things are one; and so is it in this (light) or in that.

300. Nevertheless, He (the Son) receiveth the inheritance of His Father and of His Mother.

301. What is that inheritance? These two crowns, which are hidden within Them, which They pass on in
succession to this Son.

302. From the side of the Father (Chokmah) there is one Crown concealed therein, which is called Chesed.

CHAPTER VIII. CONCERNING THE FATHER AND THE MOTHER IN SPECIAL. 153
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

303. And from the side of the Mother (Binah) there is one Crown, which is called Geburah.

304. And all those crown His head (i.e., the Head of Microprosopus), and He taketh them.

305. And when that Father and Mother shine above Him, all (these crowns) are called the phylacteries of the.
Head, and that Son taketh all things, and becometh the heir of all.

306. And He passeth on His inheritance unto the Daughter, and the Daughter is nourished by Him. But,
properly speaking, henceforth ( from the parents) doth the Son become the heir, and not the Daughter.

307. The Son becometh the heir of His Father and of His Mother, and not the Daughter, but by Him is the
Daughter cherished.

308. As it is written, Dan. iv. 12: "And in that tree food for all."

309. And if thou sayest all, assuredly He as well as She are called TzDIQ, Tzediq, Just, and TzDQ, Tzedeq,
Justice, which are in one and are one.

310. All things are thus. Father and Mother are mutually contained in and associated with themselves.

311. And the Father is the more concealed (of the two), and the whole adhereth unto the Most Holy Ancient
One.

312. And dependeth from the Holy Influence, which is the Ornament of all Ornaments.

313. And they, the Father and the Mother, constitute the abode, as I have said.

314. As it is written, Prov. xxiv. 3, 4: "Through Chokmah is the abode constructed, and by Thebunah is it
established, and in Däath shall the chambers be filled with all precious and pleasant riches.

315. Also it is written, Prov. xxii. 18: "For it is a pleasant thing if thou keep (Däath) within thee."

316. This is the system of all things, even as I have said, and ( all things) depend from the Glorious Holy
Influence.

317. Rabbi Schimeon said: In the (former) Assembly I revealed not all things, and all those things have been
concealed even until now.

318. And I have wished to conceal them, even unto the world to come, because there also a certain question
will be propounded unto me. 319. As it is written, Isa. xxxiii. 6: "And Chokmah and Däath shall be the
stability of thy times, and strength of salvation; the fear of Tetragrammaton is His treasure," &c., and they
shall seek out Wisdom, Chokmah.

320. Now truly thus is the will of the Most Holy and Blessed God, and without shame will I enter in before
His palace.

321. It is written, 1 Sam. ii. 3: "Since AL DOVTh, El Daoth, is Tetragrammaton." Daoth, or of Knowledges
(plural), properly speaking, for He acquireth Daoth by Inheritance.

322. Through Daoth are all His palaces filled, as it is written, Prov. xxix.: "And in Däath shall the chambers
be filled."

CHAPTER VIII. CONCERNING THE FATHER AND THE MOTHER IN SPECIAL. 154
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

323. And therefore Däath is not furthermore revealed, for It occulty pervadeth Him inwardly.

324. And is comprehended in that brain and in the whole body, since "El Daoth is Tetragrammaton."

325. In the "Book of the Treatise" it is said concerning these words, "Since El Daoth is Tetragrammaton,"
read not DOVTh, Daoth, of knowledges, but ODVTh, Edoth, of testimony.

326. For HVA, Hoa, He Himself, is the testimony of all things, the testimony of the two portions.

327. And it is said, Ps. lxxviii. 5: "And He established a testimony, ODVTh, in Jacob."

328. Moreover, also, although we have placed that matter in the "Book of Concealed Mystery," still also there
what is mentioned of it is correct, and so all things are beautiful and all things, are true.

329. When the matter is hidden, that Father and Mother contain all things, and all things are concealed in
them.

330. And they themselves are hidden beneath the Holy Influence of the Most Ancient of all Antiquity; in Him
are they concealed, in Him are all things included.

331. HVA, Hoa, He Himself, is all things; blessed be Hoa, and blessed be His Name in eternity, and unto the
ages of the ages.

332. All the words of the conclave of the Assembly are beautiful, and all are holy wordswords which
decline not either unto the right hand or unto the left.

333. All are words of hidden meaning for those who have entered in and departed thence, and so are they all.

334. And those words have hereunto been concealed; therefore have I feared to reveal the same, but now they
are revealed.

335. And I reveal them in the presence of the Most Holy Ancient King, for not for mine own glory, nor for
the glory of my Father's house, do I this; but I do this that I may not enter in ashamed before His palaces.

336. Henceforth I only see that He, God the Most Holymay He be blessed!and all these truly just men who
are here found, can all consent (hereunto) with me.

337. For I see that all can rejoice in these my nuptials, and that they all can be admitted unto my nuptials in
that world. Blessed be my portion!

338. Rabbi Abba saith that when (Rabbi Schimeon) had finished this discourse, the Holy Light (i.e., Rabbi
Schimeon) lifted up his hands and wept, and shortly after smiled.

339. For he wished to reveal another matter, and said: I have been anxious concerning this matter all my
days, and now they give me not leave,

340. But having recovered himself he sat down, and murmured with his lips and bowed himself thrice;
neither could any other man behold the place where he was, much less him.

CHAPTER VIII. CONCERNING THE FATHER AND THE MOTHER IN SPECIAL. 155
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

CHAPTER IX. CONCERNING MICROPROSOPUS AND HIS BRIDE IN


GENERAL.
341, HE said: Mouth, mouth, which hath followed out all these things, they shall not dry up thy fountain.

342. Thy fountain goeth forth and faileth not: surely concerning thee may this be applied: "And a river went
forth out of Eden;" also that which is written Like a fountain of waters whose waters fail not."

343. Now I testify concerning myself, that all the days which I have lived I have desired to behold this day,
yet was it not the will (of God).

344. For with this crown is this day crowned, and now as yet I intend to reveal certain things before God the
Most Holymay He be blessed!and all these things crown mine head.

345. And this day suffereth not increase, neither can it pass on into the place of another day, for this whole
day hath been yielded unto my power.

346. And now I begin to reveal these things, that I may not enter ashamed into the world to come. Therefore I
begin and say:

347. "It is written, Ps. lxxxix. 14: 'TzDQ VMShPT, Tzedeq Va−Meshephat, Justice and Judgment are the
abode of Thy throne; ChSD VAMTh, Chesed Va−Emeth, Mercy and Truth shall go before Thy countenance.'"

348. What wise man will examine this, so that he may behold His paths, (those, namely,) of the Most Holy
Supernal One, the judgments of truth, the judgments which are crowned with His Supernal crowns.

349. For I say that all the lights which shine from the Supreme Light, the Most Concealed of All, are all paths
(leading) towards that light.

350. And in that Light which existeth in those single paths, whatsoever is revealed is revealed.

351. And all those lights adhere mutually together, this light in that light, and that light in this light.

352. And they shine mutually into each other, neither are they divided separately from each other.

353. That Light, I say, of those lights, severally and conjointly, which are called the conformations of the
King, or of the Crown of the King, that which shineth and adhereth to that Light, which is the innermost of all
things, nor ever shineth without them.

354. And therefore do all things ascend in one path, and all things are crowned by one and the same thing,
and one thing is not separated from another, since HVA, Hoa, Himself, and His Name, are one.

355. That Light which is manifested is called the Vestment; for He Himself, the King, is the Light of all the
innermost.

356. In that Light is Hoa, Who is not separated nor manifested.

357. And all those lights and all those luminaries shine forth from the Most Holy Ancient One, the Concealed
with all Concealments, who is the Highest Light.

CHAPTER IX. CONCERNING MICROPROSOPUS AND HIS BRIDE IN GENERAL. 156


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

358. And whensoever the matter is accurately examined all those lights which are expanded are no longer
found, save only that Highest Light.

359. Who is hidden and not manifested, through those vestments of ornament which are the vestments of
truth, QShVT, Qeshot, the forms of truth, the lights of truth.

360. Two light−bearers are found, which are the conformation of the throne of the King; and they are called
TzDQ, Tzedeq, Justice, and MShPT, Meshephat, Judgment.

361. And they are the beginning and the consummation. And through them are all the judgments crowned, as
well superior as inferior.

362. And they all are concealed in Meshephat. And from that Meshephat is Tzedeq nourished.

363. And sometimes they call the same, MLKI TzDQ MLK ShLM, Meleki Tzedeq Melek Shalem,
Melchizedek, King of Salem.

364. When the judgments are crowned by Meshephat, all things are mercy; and all things are in perfect peace,
because the one temperateth the other.

365. Tzedeq and the Rigours are reduced into order, and all these descend into the world in peace and in
mercy.

366. And then is the hour sanctified, so that the Male and the Female are united, and the worlds all and
several exist in love and in joy.

367. But whensoever sins are multiplied in the world, and the sanctuary is polluted, and the Male and Female
are separated.

368. And when that strong Serpent beginneth to arise, Woe, then, unto thee, O World! who in that time art
nourished by this Tzedeq. For then arise many slayers of men and executioners (of judgment) in thee, O
World. Many just men are withdrawn from thee.

369. But wherefore is it thus? Because the Male is separated from the Female, and judgment, Meshephat, is
not united unto justice, Tzedeq.

370. And concerning this time it is written, Prov. xiii. 23: "There is that is destroyed, because therein is not
Meshephat." Since Meshephat is departed from this Tzedeq which is not therefore restrained; and Tzedeq
hath operation after another manner.

371. And concerning this (matter) thus speaketh Solomon the king, Eccles. vii. 16: "All these things have I
seen in the days of my HBL, Hebel; there is a just man who perisheth in his Tzedeq," &c.

372. Where by the word HBL, Hebel (which is usually translated "vanity"), is understood the breath from
those supernal breathers forth which are called the nostrils of the King.

373. But when he saith HBLI, Hebeli, of my breath, Tzedeq, Justice, is to be understood, which is
MLKVThA QDIShA, Malkutha Qadisha, the holy Malkuth (Sanctum Regnum, the Holy Kingdom).

374. For when She is stirred up in Her judgments and severities, then hath this saying place: "There is a just
man who perished in his Tzedeq."

CHAPTER IX. CONCERNING MICROPROSOPUS AND HIS BRIDE IN GENERAL. 157


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

375. For what reason? Because Judgment, Meshephat, is far from Justice, Tzedeq. And therefore is it said,
Prov. xiii. 23: "And there is that is destroyed because therein is not Meshephat."

376. Come and see! When some sublimely just man is found in the world, who is dear unto God the Most
Holy Onemay He be blessed!then even if Tzedeq, Justice, alone be stirred up, still on account of him the
world can bear it.

377. And God the Most Holymay He be blessed!increaseth His glory so that He may not be destroyed by
the severity (of the judgments ).

378. But if that just man remaineth not in his place, then from the midst is he taken away for example by that
Meshephat, judgment, so that before it he cannot maintain his place, how much less before Tzedeq, Justice.

379. David the king said at first, Ps. xxvi. 2: "Try me, O Tetragrammaton, and prove me!" For I shall not be
destroyed by all the severities, not even by Tzedeq, Justice Herself, seeing that I am joined thereunto.

380. For what is written, Ps. xvii. 15: "In Tzedeq, Justice, I will behold Thy countenance." Therefore,
properly speaking, I cannot be destroyed through Tzedeq, seeing that I can maintain myself in its severities.

381. But after that he had sinned, he was even ready to be consumed by that Meshephat, Judgment. Whence it
is written, Ps. cxliii. 2: "And enter not into Meshephat, Judgment, with Thy servant!"

382. Come and see! When that Tzedeq, Justice, is mitigated by that Meshephat, Judgment, then is it called
TzDQH, Tzedeqah, Liberality.

383. And the world is tempered by Chesed, Mercy, and is filled therewith.

384. As it is written, Ps. xxxiii. 5: "Delighting in TzDQH, Liberality, and MShPT, Judgment; the earth is full
of the ChSD, Mercy, of Tetragrammaton."

385. I testify concerning myself, that during my whole life I have been solicitous in the world, that I should
not fall under the severities of justice, nor that the world should be burned up with the flames thereof.

386. As it is written, Prov. xxx. 20: "She eateth and wipeth her mouth."

387. Thenceforward and afterwards all and singular are near unto the Abyss.

388. And verily in this generation certain just men are given ( upon earth); but they are few who arise that
they may defend the flock from the four angles (otherwise, but judgments arise against the world, and desire
to rush upon us).

CHAPTER X. CONCERNING MICROPROSOPUS IN ESPECIAL, WITH


CERTAIN DIGRESSIONS; AND CONCERNING THE EDOMITE KINGS.
389. HEREUNTO have I propounded how one thing agreeth with another; and I have expounded those things
which have been concealed in the most Holy Ancient One, the Concealed with all Concealments; and how
these are connected with those.

390. But now for a time I will discourse concerning the requisite parts of Microprosopus; especially
concerning those which were not manifested in the Conclave of the Assembly, and which have been

CHAPTER X. CONCERNING MICROPROSOPUS IN ESPECIAL, WITH CERTAIN DIGRESSIONS;


158 AND C
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

concealed in mine heart, and have not been given forth in order therefrom.

397. Hereunto have I mystically and in a subtle manner propounded all those matters. Blessed is his portion
who entereth therein and departeth therefrom, and (blessed the portion) of those who shall be the heirs of that
inheritance.

392. As it is written, Ps. cxliv. 15: "Blessed are the people with whom it is so," &c.

393. Now these be the matters which we have propounded. The Father and the Mother adhere unto the
Ancient One, and also unto His conformation; since they depend from the Hidden Brain, Concealed with all
Concealments, and are connected therewith.

394. And although the Most Holy Ancient One hath been conformed ( as it were) alone (i.e., apparently
apart from all things at first sight); yet when all things are accurately inspected, all things are HVA, Hoa,
Himself, the Ancient One, alone.

395. Hoa is and Hoa shall be; and all those forms cohere with Himself, are concealed in Himself, and are not
separated from Himself.

396. The Hidden Brain is not manifested, and (Microprosopus) doth not depend immediately from it.

397. The Father and the Mother proceed from this Brain, and depend from It, and are connected with It,

393. (Through Them) Microprosopus dependeth from the Most Holy Ancient One, and is connected (with
Him). And these things have we already revealed in the Conclave of the Assembly.

399. Blessed is his portion who entereth therein and departeth therefrom, and hath known the paths; so that he
declineth not unto the right hand, or unto the left.

400. But if any man entereth not therein and departeth therefrom, better were it for that (man) that he had
never been born. For thus it is written, Hos. xiv., 10: "True are Thy ways, O Tetragrammaton!"

401. Rabbi Schimeon spake and said: Through the whole day have I meditated on that saying where it is said,
Ps. xxxiv. 2: "My Nephesch shall rejoice in Tetragrammaton, the humble shall hear thereof and rejoice;"
and now that whole text is confirmed (in my mind).

402. "My Nephesch shall rejoice in Tetragrammaton." This is true, for my Neschamah is connected
therewith, radiateth therein, adhereth thereto, and is occupied thereabout, and in this same occupation is
exalted in its place.

403. "The humble shall hear thereof and rejoice." All those just and blessed man who have come into
communion with God, the most Holyblessed be He!all hear and rejoice.

404. Ah I now is the Holy One confessed; and therefore magnify Tetragrammaton with me, and let us exalt
His Name together!" 405. Thus is it written, Gen. xxxvi. 31: "And those are the kings who reigned in the land
of Edom." And also it is written thus, Ps. xlviii. 4: "Since, lo! the kings assembled, they passed away
together."

406. "In the land of Edom." That is, "in the place wherewith the judgments are connected."

407. "They passed away together." As it is written, "And he died, and there reigned in his stead."

CHAPTER X. CONCERNING MICROPROSOPUS IN ESPECIAL, WITH CERTAIN DIGRESSIONS;


159 AND C
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

408. "They themselves beheld, so were they astonished; they feared, and hasted away." Because they
remained not in their place, since the conformations of the King had not as yet been formed, and the Holy
City and its wall were not as yet prepared.

409. This is that which followeth in the text: "As we have heard, so have we seen, in the city," &c. For all did
not endure.

410. But She (the Bride) now subsisteth beside the Male, with Whom She abideth.

411. This is that which is written, Gen. xxxvi. 39: "And Hadar reigned in his stead, and the name of his city
was Pau, and the name of his wife was Mehetabel, the daughter of Matred, the daughter of Mizaheb."

412. Assuredly this have we before explained in the Assembly.

413. Now, also, in the book of the teaching of Rav Hamenuna the Elder it is said: "And Hadar reigned in his
stead." The word HDR, Hadar, is properly to be expounded according unto that which is said, Lev. xxiii. 40:
"The fruit of trees which are HDR, Hadar, goodly."

414. "And the name of his wife Mehetabel," as it is written (in the text just cited), "branches of palm trees."

415. Also it is written, Ps. xcii. 3: "The just man shall flourish as the palm tree." For this is of the male and
female sex.

416. She is called "the daughter of Matred;" that is, the Daughter from that place wherein all things are bound
together, which is called AB, Father.

417. Also it is written, Job. xxviii. 13: "Man knoweth not the price thereof, neither is it found in the land of
the living."

418. She is the Daughter of Aima, the Mother; from Whose side the judgments are applied which strive
against all things.

419. The Daughter of Mizaheb because She hath nourishment from the two Countenances (Chokmah and
Binah, which are within Kether); and shineth with two coloursnamely from ChSD, Chesed, Mercy; and
from DIN, Din, Judgment.

420. For before the world was established Countenance beheld not Countenance.

421. And therefore were the Prior Worlds destroyed, for the Prior Worlds were formed without (equilibrated)
conformation.

422. But these which existed not in conformation are called vibrating flames and sparks, like as when the
worker in stone striketh sparks from the flint with his hammer, or as when the smith smiteth the iron and
dasheth forth sparks on every side.

423. And these sparks which fly forth flame and scintillate, but shortly they are extinguished. And these are
called the Prior Worlds.

424. And therefore have they been destroyed, and persist not, until the Most Holy Ancient One can be
conformed, and the workman can proceed unto His work.

CHAPTER X. CONCERNING MICROPROSOPUS IN ESPECIAL, WITH CERTAIN DIGRESSIONS;


160 AND C
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

425. And therefore have we related in our discourse that that ray sendeth forth sparks upon sparks in three
hundred and twenty directions.

426. And those sparks are called the Prior Worlds, and suddenly they perished.

427. Then proceeded the workman unto His work, and was conformed, namely as Male and Female. 428.
And those sparks became extinct and died, but now all things subsist.

429. From a Light−Bearer of insupportable brightness proceeded a Radiating Flame, dashing off like a vast
and mighty hammer those sparks which were the Prior Worlds.

430. And with most subtle ether were these intermingled and bound mutually together, but only when they
were conjoined together, even the Great Father and Great Mother.

431. From Hoa, Himself, is AB, the Father; and from Hoa , Himself, is Ruach, the Spirit; Who are hidden in
the Ancient of Days, and therein is that ether concealed.

432. And It was connected with a light−bearer, which went forth from that Light−Bearer of insupportable
brightness, which is hidden in the Bosom of Aima, the Great Mother.

CHAPTER XI. CONCERNING THE BRAIN OF MICROPROSOPUS AND ITS


CONNECTIONS.
433. AND when both can be conjoined and bound together mutually ( i.e., the Father and the Mother), there
proceedeth thenceforth a certain hard Skull.

434. And it is extended on its sides, so that there may be one part on one side, and another one on another
side.

435. For as the Most Holy Ancient One is found to include equally in Himself the Three Heads, so all things
are symbolized under the form of the Three Heads, as we have stated.

436. Into this skull (of Microprosopus) distilleth the dew from the White Head (of Macroprosopus), and
covereth it.

437. And that dew appeareth to be of two colours, and by it is nourished the field of the holy apple trees.

438. And from this dew of this Skull is the manna prepared for the just in the world to come.

439. And by it shall the dead be raised to life.

440. But that manna hath not at any other time been prepared so that it might descend from this dew, save at
that time when the Israelites were wandering in the wilderness, and the Ancient One supplied them with food
from this place; because that afterwards it did not fall out so more fully.

44n This is the same which is said, Exod. xvi. 4: "Behold I rain upon you bread from heaven." And also that
passage where it is thus written, Gen. xxvii. 28: "And the Elohim shall give unto thee of the dew of heaven."

442. These things occur in that time. Concerning another time it is written: "The food of man is from God the
Most Holy Oneblessed be He!"and that dependeth from MZLA, Mezla, the Influence; assuredly, from the

CHAPTER XI. CONCERNING THE BRAIN OF MICROPROSOPUS AND ITS CONNECTIONS. 161
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Influence rightly so called.

443. And therefore is it customary to say: "Concerning children, life, and nourishment, the matter dependeth
not from merit, but from the Influence." For all these things depend from this Influence, as we have already
shown.

444. Nine thousand myriads of worlds receive influence from and are uphold by that GVLGLThA,
Golgeltha, Skull. 445. And in all things is that subtle AVIRA, Auira, Ether, contained, as It Itself containeth
all things, and as. in It all things are comprehended.

446. His countenance is extended in two sides, in two lights, which in themselves contain all things.

447. And when His countenance (i.e., that of Microprosopus) looketh back upon the countenance of the Most
Holy Ancient One, all things are called ARK APIM, Arikh Aphim, Vastness of Countenance.,

448. What is ARK APIM, or Vastness of Countenance? Also it should rather be called ARVK APIM, Arokh
Aphim, Vast in Countenance.

449. Assuredly thus is the tradition, since also He prolongeth His wrath against the wicked. But the phrase
ARK APIM, Arikh Aphim, also implies the same as "healing power of countenance."

450. Seeing that health is never found in the world save when the countenances (of Macroprosopus and
Microprosopus) mutually behold each other.

451. In the hollow of the Skull (of Microprosopus) shine three lights. And although thou canst call them
three, yet notwithstanding are there four, as we have before said.

452. He (Microprosopus) is the heir of His Father and of his Mother, and there are two inheritances from
Them; all which things are bound together under the symbol of the Crown of His Head. And they are the
phylacteries of His Head.

453. After that these are united together after a certain manner they shine, and go forth into the Three Cavities
of the Skull.

454. (And then) singly they are developed each after its own manner, and they are extended through the
whole body.

455. But they are associated together in two Brains, and the third Brain containeth the others in itself.

456. And it adhereth as well to the one side as to the other, and is expanded throughout the whole body.

457. And therefrom are formed two colours mixed together in one, and His countenance shineth.

458. And the colours of His countenance are symbols of Ab (the Father) and Aima (the Mother), and are
called Däath ( Knowledge) in Däath.

459. As it is written, 1 Sam. ii. 3: "Since El Daoth (plural) is Tetragrammaton," because in him there are two
colours.

460. Unto Him (Microprosopus) are works ascribed diversely; but to the Most Holy Ancient One
(operations) are not ascribed diversely.

CHAPTER XI. CONCERNING THE BRAIN OF MICROPROSOPUS AND ITS CONNECTIONS. 162
KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

461. For what reason doth He (Microprosopus) admit of variable disposition? Because He is the heir of two
inheritances ( i.e., from Chokmah and Binah).

462. Also it is written, Ps. xviii. 26: "With the merciful man thou shalt show thyself merciful."

463. But also truly and rightly have the Companions decided concerning that saying where it is written, Gen.
xxix. 12: "And Jacob declared unto Rachel that he was her father's brother, and that he was Rebekah's son.

464. It is written, "Rebekah's son," and not "the son of Isaac." And all the mysteries are in Chokmah. 465.
And therefore is (Chokmah ) called the Perfection of all: and to it is ascribed the name of Truth.

466. And therefore is it written, "And Jacob declared:" and not written, "and Jacob said."

467. Those (two) colours are extended throughout the whole Body (Microprosopus) and His Body cohereth
with them.

468. In the Most Holy Ancient One, the Concealed with all Concealments, (things) are not ascribed diversely,
and unto Him do they not tend (diversely), since the whole is the same ( with itself) and (thus is) life unto all
(things); and from Him judgment dependeth not (directly).

469. But concerning Him (Microprosopus) it is written, that unto Him are ascribed (diverse) works, properly
speaking.

CHAPTER XII. CONCERNING THE HAIR OF MICROPROSOPUS.


470. FROM the skull of the Head (of Microprosopus) depend all those chiefs and leaders (otherwise, all those
thousands and tens of thousands), and also from the locks of the hair.

471. Which are black, and mutually bound together, and which mutually cohere.

472. But they adhere unto the Supernal Light from the Father, AB, Ab, which surroundeth His Head (i.e., that
of Microprosopus ); and unto the Brain, which is illuminated from the Father.

473. Thencefrom, even from the light which surroundeth His Head ( i.e., that of Microprosopus) from the
Mother, Aima, and from the second Brain, proceed long locks upon locks (of hair). 474. And all adhere unto
and are bound together with those locks which have their connection with the Father.

475. And because (these locks are) mutually intermingled with each other, and mutually intertwined with
each other, hence all the Brains are connected with the Supernal Brain (of Macroprosopus).

476. And hence all the regions which proceed from the Three Cavities of the Skull are mingled mutually
together, as well pure as impure, and all those accents and mysteries are as well hidden as manifest.

477. And since all the Brains have a secret connection with the ears of Tetragrammaton, in the same way as
they shine in the crown of the Head, and enter into the hollow places of the Skull.

478. Hence all these locks hang over and cover the sides of the ears, as we have elsewhere said.

479. And therefore is it written, 2 Kings xix. 16: "Incline, O Tetragrammaton, Thine ear, and hear!"

480. Hence is the meaning of this passage, which is elsewhere given: "If any man wisheth the King to incline

CHAPTER XII. CONCERNING THE HAIR OF MICROPROSOPUS. 163


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

His ear unto him, let him raise the head of the King and remove the hair from above the ears; then shall the
King hear him in all things whatsoever he desireth."

481. In the parting of the hair a certain path is connected with the (same) path of the Ancient of Days, and
therefrom are distributed all the paths of the precepts of the law.

482. And over these (locks of hair) are set all the Lords of Lamentation and Wailing; and they depend from
the single locks.

483. And these spread a net for sinners, so that they may not comprehend those paths.

484. This is that which is said, Prov. iv. 18: "The path of the wicked is as darkness."

485. And these all depend from the rigid locks hence also these are entirely rigid, as we have before said.

486. In the softer (locks) adhere the Lords of Equilibrium, as it is written, Ps. xxv. 10: "All the paths of
Tetragrammaton are ChSD, Chesed, and AMTh, Emeth, Mercy and Truth."

487. And thus when these developments of the Brain emanate from the Concealed Brain, hencefrom each
singly deriveth its own nature.

488. From the one Brain the Lords of Equilibrium proceed through those softer locks, as it is written: Ps. xxv.
10: "All the paths of Tetragrammaton are Chesed and Emeth."

489. From the second Brain the Lords of Lamentation and Wailing proceed through those rigid locks and
depend (from them). Concerning whom it is written: Prov. iv. 19: "The path of the wicked is as darkness;
they know not wherein they stumble."

490. What is this passage intended to imply? Assuredly the sense of these words, "they know not," is this,
"They do not know, and they do not wish to know."

491. "Wherein they stumble." Do not read "BMH, Bameh, wherein," but "BAIMA, Be−Aima, in Aima, the
Mother," they stumble. That is, through those who are attributed unto the side of the Mother.

492. What is the side of the Mother? Severe Rigour, whereunto are attributed the Lords of Lamentation and
Wailing.

493. From the third Brain the Lords of Lords proceed through those locks arranged in the middle condition
(i.e. partly hard and partly soft), and depend (therefrom); and they are called the Luminous and the
Non−Luminous Countenances.

494. And concerning these it is written, Prov. iv. 26: "Ponder the path of thy feet."

495. And all these are found in those locks of the hair of the Head.

CHAPTER XIII. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF MICROPROSOPUS.


496. THE forehead of the Skull (of Microprosopus) is the forehead for visiting sinners (otherwise, for rooting
out sinners).

497. And when that forehead is uncovered there are excited the Lords of judgments against those who are

CHAPTER XIII. CONCERNING THE FOREHEAD OF MICROPROSOPUS. 164


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

shameless in their deeds.

498. This forehead hath a rosy redness. But at that time when the forehead of the Ancient one is uncovered
over against this forehead, the latter appeareth white as snow.

499. And that time is called the Time of Grace for all.

500. In the "Book of the Teaching of the School of Rav Yeyeva the Elder" it is said: The forehead is
according as the forehead of the Ancient One. Otherwise, the letter Cheth, Ch, is placed between the other
two letters, according to this passage, Num. xxiv. 17: "VMChTz, VeMachetz, and shall smite the corners of
Moab?"

501. And we have elsewhere said that it is also called NTzCh, Netzach, the neighbouring letters (M and N;
neighbouring letters in the alphabet that is, and allied in sense, for Mem = Water, and Nun = Fish, that
which lives in the water) being counterchanged. ( Netzach = Victory, and is the seventh Sephira).

502. But many are the NTzChIM, Netzachim, Victories; so that another (development of) Netzach may be
elevated into another path, and other Netzachim may be given which are extended throughout the whole body
(of Microprosopus).

503. But on the day of the Sabbath, at the time of the afternoon prayers, the forehead of the Most Holy
Ancient One is uncovered, so that the judgments may not be aroused.

504. And all the judgments are subjected; and although they be there, yet are they not called forth.
(Otherwise, and they are appeased.)

505. From this forehead depend twenty−four tribunals, for all those who are shameless in their deeds.

506. And it is written, Ps. lxxiii. 11: "And they have said, 'How can El know? and is there knowledge in the
Most High?'"

507. But truly (the tribunals) are only twenty; wherefore are four added? Assuredly, in respect of the
punishments of the inferior tribunals which depend from the Supernals.

508. Therefore there remain twenty. And therefore unto none do they adjudge capital punishment until he
shall have fulfilled and reached the age of twenty years in respect of these twenty tribunals.

509. But in our doctrine regarding our Arcana have we taught that the books which are contained in the Law
refer back unto these twenty−four.

CHAPTER XIV. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MICROPROSOPUS.


510. THE Eyes of the Head (of Microprosopus) are those eyes from which sinners cannot guard themselves;
the eyes which sleep, and yet which sleep not.

511. And therefore are they called "Eyes like unto doves, KIVNIM, Ke−Ionim." What is IVNIM, Ionim?
Surely it is said, Lev. xxv. 17 "Ye shall not deceive any man his neighbour."

512. And therefore is it written, Psalm xciv. 7: "IH, Yah, shall not behold." And shortly after verse 9: "He that
planteth the ear, shall He not hear? He that formeth the eye, shall He not see?"

CHAPTER XIV. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MICROPROSOPUS. 165


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

513. The part which is above the eyes (the eyebrows) consisteth of the hairs, which are distributed in certain
proportions.

514. From those hairs depend one thousand seven hundred Lords of Inspection for striving in battles. And
then all their emissaries arise and unclose the eyes.

515. In the skin which is above the eyes (the eyelids) are the eyelashes, and there unto adhere thousand
thousands Lords of Shields.

516. And these be called the covering of the eyes. And all those which are called (under the classification of)
the eyes of IHVH, Tetragrammaton, are not unclosed, nor awake, save in that time when these coverings of
the eyelashes be separated from each othernamely, the lower from the upper (eyelashes).

517. And when the lower eyelashes are separated from the upper, and disclose the abode of vision, then are
the eyes opened in the same manner as when one awaketh from his sleep.

518. Then are the eyes rolled around, and (Microprosopus) looketh back upon the open eye (of
Macroprosopus), and they are bathed in its white brilliance.

519. And when they are thus whitened, the Lords of the judgments are turned aside from the Israelites. And
therefore it is written, Ps. xliv. 24: "Awake: wherefore sleepest thou, O Tetragrammaton? Make haste," &c.

520. Four colours appear in those eyes; from which shine the four coverings of the phylacteries, which shine
through the emanations of the Brain.

521. Seven, which are called the eyes of Tetragrammaton, and the inspection, proceed from the black colour
of the eye; as we have said.

522. As it is written, Zach. iii. 9: "Upon one stone seven eyes." And these colours flame forth on this side.

523. From the, red go forth others, the Lords of Examination for Judgment.

524. And these are called: "The eyes of Tetragrammaton going forth throughout the whole earth."

525. Where it is said (in the feminine gender) "MShVTTVTh, Meshoteloth, going forth," and not
"MShVTTIM, Meshotetim," in the masculine, because all are judgment.

526. From the yellow proceed others who are destined to make manifest deeds as well good as evil.

527. As it is written, Job xxxiv. 21: "Since His eyes are upon the ways of man." And these Zach. iv. 10, are
called "The eyes of Tetragrammaton, MShVTTIM, Meshotetim, going forth around, but in the masculine
gender, because these extend in two directionstowards the good and towards the evil. 528. From the white
brilliance proceed all those mercies and all those benefits which are found in the world, so that through them
it may be well for the Israelites.

529. And then all those three colours are made white, so that He may have pity upon them.

530. And those colours are mingled together mutually, and mutually do they adhere unto each other. Each
one affecteth with its colour that which is next unto it.

531. Excepting the white brilliance wherein all are comprehended when there is need, for this enshroudeth

CHAPTER XIV. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MICROPROSOPUS. 166


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

them all.

532. So therefore no man can convert all the inferior coloursthe black, red, and yellowinto the white
brilliance.

533. For only with this glance (of Macroprosopus) are they all united and transformed into the white
brilliance.

534. His eyelashes (i.e., those of Microprosopus, for to the eye of Macroprosopus neither eyebrows nor
eyelashes are attributed) are not found, when (his eyes) desire to behold the colours; seeing that his eyelashes
disclose the place (of sight) for beholding all the colours.

535. And if they disclose not the place (of vision) the ( eyes) cannot see nor consider.

536. But the eyelashes do not remain nor sleep, save in that only perfect hour, but they are opened and closed,
and again closed and opened, according to that Open Eye (of Macroprosopus) which is above them.

537. And therefore is it written, Ezek. i. 14: "And the living creatures rush forth and return."

538. Now we have already spoken of the passage, Isa. xxxiii. 20: "Thine eye shall see Jerusalem quiet, even
Thy habitation."

539. Also it is written, Deut. ii. 12: "The eyes of Tetragrammaton thy God are ever thereon in the beginning
of the year," &c.

540. For so Jerusalem requireth it, since it is written, Isa. i. 21: "TzDQ, Tzedeq, justice abideth in Her."

541. And therefore (is it called) Jerusalem, and not Zion. For it is written, Isa. i. 26: "Zion is redeemed in
MShPT, Meshephat , Judgment, &c.," which are unmixed mercies.

542. Thine eye: (therefore) is it written "OINK, Ayinakh (in the singular number). Assuredly it is the eye of
the Most Holy Ancient One, the Most Concealed of All (which is here referred to).

S43. Now it is said: "The eyes of Tetragrammaton thy God are thereon;" in good, that is to say, and in evil;
according as either the red colour or the yellow is required.

544. But only with the glance (of Macroprosopus) are all things converted and cleansed into the white
brilliance.

545. The eyelids (of Microprosopus) are not found when ( His eyes) desire to behold the colours. But here (it
is said ), "Thine eyes shall behold Jerusalem." Entirely for good, entirely in mercy.

546. As it is written, Isa. liv. 7: "And with great mercies will I gather thee."

547. The eyes of Tetragrammaton thy God are ever thereon from the beginning of the year." Here the word
"MRShITh, Marashith, from the beginning," is written defectively without A, for it is not written RAShITh
with the A.

548. Hence it remaineth not always in the same condition. What doth not? The inferior H, He, (of IHVH).

549. And concerning that which is supernal it is written, Lam. ii. 1: "He hath cast down MShMIM,

CHAPTER XIV. CONCERNING THE EYES OF MICROPROSOPUS. 167


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

Me−Shamaim, from the heavens; ARTz, Aretz, the earth the Tiphereth, Israel."

550. Wherefore hath he cast down Aretz from Shamaim? Because it is written, Isa. l. 3: "I will cover the
heavens, Shamaim, with darkness," and with the blackness of the eye (of Microprosopus), namely, with the
black colour, are they covered.

551. "From the beginning of the year." What, then, is that place whence those eyes of Tetragrammaton
behold Jerusalem?

552. Therefore he hasteneth to expound this (saying immediately ): "From the beginning, MRShITh, of the
year," which (word MRShITh = being written thus), without the Aleph, A, symbolizeth judgment; for
judgment is referred unto that side, although virtually (the word Merashith) is not judgment.

553. "Even unto the end of the year." Herein, properly speaking, is judgment found. For it is written, Isa. i.
21: "Justice dwelt in her." For this is "the end of the year."

554. Come and see! A, Aleph, only is called the first ( letter). In A, Aleph, is the masculine power hidden and
concealed; that namely, which is not known.

555. When this Aleph is conjoined in another place then is it called RAShITh, Rashith, beginning.

556. But if thou sayest that (A) is conjoined herewith, truly it is not so, but (A) is only manifested therein
and illuminateth it; and in that case only is it called RAShITh, Rashith , beginning.

557. Now therefore in this (passage) RAShITh (spelt with the A) is not found as regards Jerusalem; for were
(the letter A ) herein, it would (denote that it would) remain for ever. 558. Hence it is written defectively
MRShITh, Me−Rashith. Also concerning the world to come it is written, Isa. xli. 27: "The first shall say to
Zion, Behold, behold them," &c.

CHAPTER XV. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MICROPROSOPUS.


559. THE nose of Microprosopus is the form of His countenance, for therethrough is His whole countenance
known.

560. This nose is not as the nose of the most Holy Ancient One, the Concealed with all Concealments.

561. For the nose of Him, the Ancient One, is the life of lives for all things, and from His two nostrils rush
forth the Ruachin De−Chiin , RVChIN DChIIN, spirits of lives for all.

562. But concerning this (nose of) Microprosopus it is written, Ps. xviii. 9: "A smoke ascendeth in His nose."

563. In this smoke all the colours are contained. In each colour are contained multitudes of lords of most
rigorous judgment, who are all comprehended in that smoke.

564. Whence all those are not mitigated save by the smoke of the inferior altar.

565. Hence it is written, Gen. Viii. 21: "And IHVH smelled a sweet savour." It is not written (He smelled) the
odour of the sacrifice. What is "sweet" save "rest?" Assuredly the spirit at rest is the mitigation of the Lords
of judgment.

566. (When therefore it is said) "And IHVH smelled the odour of rest," most certainly the odour of the

CHAPTER XV. CONCERNING THE NOSE OF MICROPROSOPUS. 168


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

sacrificed victim is not meant, but the odour of the mitigation of all those severities which are referred unto
the nose.

567. And all things which adhere unto them, all things, I say, are mitigated. But most of these severities
mutually cohere.

568. As it is written, Ps. cvi. 2: "Who shall recount GBVRVTh IHVH, the Geburoth of Tetragrammaton?"

569. And this nose (of Microprosopus) emitteth fire from the two nostrils, which swalloweth up all other fires.

570. From the one nostril (goeth forth) the smoke, and from the other nostril the fire, and they both are found
on the altar, as well the fire as the smoke.

571. But when He the most Holy Ancient One is unveiled, all things are at peace. This is that which is said,
Isa. xlviii. 9: "And for My praise will I refrain from thee" (literally, "block up thy nostrils" ).

572. The nose of the Most Holy Ancient One is long and extended, and He is called Arikh Aphim, Long of
Nose.

573. But this nose (of Microprosopus) is short, and when the smoke commenceth, it issueth rapidly forth, and
judgment is consummated.

574. But who can oppose the nose of Him the Ancient One? Concerning this, all things are as we have said in
the Greater Assembly, where concerning this matter the Companions were exercised.

575. In the book of the treatise of Rav Hamenuna the Elder he thus describeth these two nostrils (of
Microprosopus), saying that from the one proceed the smoke and the fire, and from the other, peace and the
beneficent spirits.

576. That is, when (Microprosopus) is considered as having ( in Himself the symbolism of) right side and left
side. As it is written, Hosea xiv. 7: "And his smell like Lebanon."

577. And concerning His Bride it is written, Cant. vii. 9: "And the smell of thy nostril like apples." Which if
it be true concerning the Bride, how much more concerning Himself? And this is a notable saying.

578. When therefore it is said, "And Tetragrammaton smelled the odour of peace," the word HNIChCh,
Ha−Nichach, of peace," can be understood in a double sense.

579. One sense is primary, when the Most Holy Ancient One, the Concealed with all Concealments, is
manifested; for HVA, Hoa, He, is the peace and mitigation of all things.

580. And the other respecteth the inferior mitigation, which is done through the smoke and fire of the altar.

581. And because of this duplicate meaning is the word NIChCh, Nichach, written with a double Ch. And all
these things are said concerning Microprosopus.

CHAPTER XVI. CONCERNING THE EARS OF MICROPROSOPUS.


582. THERE are two ears for hearing the good and the evil, and these two can be reduced into one.

583. As it is written, 2 Kings xix. 18: "Incline, O Tetragrammaton, Thine ear, and hear."

CHAPTER XVI. CONCERNING THE EARS OF MICROPROSOPUS. 169


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

584. The ear from within dependeth upon certain curves which are therein formed, so that the speech may be
made clearer before its entrance into the brain.

595. And the brain examineth it, but not with haste. For every matter which is accomplished in baste cometh
not from perfect wisdom. 586. From those ears depend all the Lords of Wings who receive the Voice of the
Universe; and all those are called thus, the Ears of Tetragrammaton.

587. Concerning whom it is written, Eccles. x. 20: "For a bird of the air shall carry the voice," &c.

588. "For a bird of the air shall carry the voice." This text hath a difficult (meaning). And now (for so much is
expressed) whence is the voice?

589. For in the beginning of the verse it is written: "Curse not the King even in thy thought." Where it is
written concerning even the ( unexpressed) thought, and concerning the secret thoughts of thy couch.

590. Wherefore? Because "a bird of the air shall carry the voice." Which (voice) as yet is unexpressed.

591. Assuredly this is the true meaning. Whatsoever a man thinketh and meditateth in his heart, he maketh
not a word until he bringeth it forth with his lips. (What the text intendeth is) if any man attendeth not
hereunto.

592. For that voice sent forward (from inconsiderate thought) cleaveth the air, and it goeth forth and
ascendeth, and is carried around through the universe; and therefore is the voice.

593. And the Lords of Wings receive the voice and bear it on unto the King (Microprosopus), so that it may
enter into His ears.

594. This is that which standeth written, Deut. v. 28: "And Tetragrammaton hath heard the voice of your
words." Again, Num. xi. 1: "And Tetragrammaton heard, and His wrath was kindled."

595. Hence every prayer and petition which a man poureth forth before God the Most Holy One−blessed be
He!requireth this, that he pronounce the words with his lips.

596. For if he pronounce them not, his prayer is no prayer, and his petition is no petition.

597. But as far as the words go forth, they cleave the air asunder, and ascend, and fly on, and from them is the
voice made; and that which receiveth the one receiveth also the other, and beareth it into the Holy Place in the
head of the King (otherwise, beneath Kether, the Crown).

598. From the three cavities (of the brain of Microprosopus) distilleth a certain distillation, and it is called the
Brook. As it is said in 1 Kings xvii. 3: "The brook Kherith," as it were an excavation or channel of the ears.

599. And the voice entereth into that curved passage, and remaineth in that brook of that distillation.

600. And then is it therein detained, and examined, whether it be good or whether it be evil. This is the same
which is said, Job. xxxiv. 3: "Because the ear examineth the words."

601. For what cause doth the ear examine the words? Because the voice is detained in that brook distilling
into the curved passage of the ears, and doth not swiftly enter into the body, and thereunto is an examination
instituted between the good and the evil.

CHAPTER XVI. CONCERNING THE EARS OF MICROPROSOPUS. 170


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

602. "As the palate tasteth meat." Wherefore can the palate taste meat? Because in the same manner it
causeth it to delay, and (the meat) doth not enter so rapidly into the body. And hence (the palate) proveth and
tasteth it (to discern) whether it he sweet and pleasant.

603. From this opening of the ears depend other openings (namely ) the opening of the eye, the opening of the
mouth, the opening of the nose.

604. From that voice which entereth into the opening of the ears, if it be necessary (a certain part) entereth
into the openings of the eyes, and these pour forth tears.

605. From that voice, if it be necessary (a certain part) entereth into the opening of the nose, and from that
voice it produceth smoke and fire. 606. This is that which is written, Num. xi. i.: "And Tetragrammaton
heard, and His wrath was kindled, and the fire of Tetragrammaton turned against them."

607. And if it be necessary that voice goeth forth into the opening of the mouth, and it speaketh, and
determineth certain things.

608. From that voice are all things: from that voice (a certain part) entereth into the whole body, and by it are
all things affected. Whence doth this matter depend? From that ear.

60g. Blessed is he who observeth his words. Therefore is it written, Ps. xxxiv. 13: "Keep thy tongue from
evil, and thy lips from speaking guile."

610. Unto this ear is attributed hearing, and under (the idea of ) hearing are those brains comprehended.

611. Chokmah is contained therein, as it is written, 1 Kings iii. 9: "And wilt Thou give unto Thy servant a
hearing heart."

612. Binah also, as it is written, 1 Sam. iii. 9: "Speak, for Thy servant heareth." Also 2 Kings xviii. 26:
"Because we have heard." And hencefrom all things depend.

613. Däath also, as it is said, Prov. iv. 10, "Hear, O my son, and receive My sayings." And again, ibid. ii. 1,
"Thou shalt hide My sayings with thee." And thereunto all things depend from the ears.

614. From these ears depend prayers and petitions, and the opening of the eyes.

615. This is the same which standeth written, 2 Kings xix. 16: "Incline, O Tetragrammaton, Thine ear, and
hear; open Thine eyes, and see. Thus all things depend hencefrom.

616. From this ear depend the highest Arcana, which go not forth without, and therefore is (this ear) curved
in the interior parts, and the Arcana of Arcana are concealed therein. Woe unto him who revealeth the Arcana!

617. And because the Arcana come into contact with this ear, and follow the curvings of that region, hence
the Arcana are not revealed unto those who walk in crooked paths, but unto those (who walk in ) those which
are not crooked.

618. Hence is it written, Ps. xxv. 14: "The SVD IHVH, Sod Tetragrammaton, Secret of Tetragrammaton, is
with them that fear Him, and He will show them His; covenant;" namely, unto such as keep their path and
thus receive His words.

619. But they who are perverse in their ways receive certain words, and quickly introduce the same into

CHAPTER XVI. CONCERNING THE EARS OF MICROPROSOPUS. 171


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

themselves, but in them is no place where they can be detained (for examination)

620. And all the other openings are opened therein, until those words can issue forth from the opening of the
mouth.

621. And such men are called the shiners of their generation, hating God the Most Holy One−blessed be He.

622. In Mischna, or our tradition, we have taught that such men are like unto murderers and idolaters.

623. And all these things are contained in one saying, where it is written, Lev. xix. 26: "Thou shalt not go up
and down as a tale−bearer among thy people, neither shalt thou stand against the blood of thy neighbour: ANI
IHVH, I am Tetragrammaton."

624. Therefore he who transgresseth the first part of that verse doth the same as if he were to transgress the
whole.

625. Blessed is the portion of the just, concerning whom it is said, Prov. xi. 13: "A tale−bearer revealeth
secrets, but he that is of a faithful spirit concealeth the matter."

626. "Spirit, RVCh, Ruach," properly (is used here) for the Ruach of such is extracted from the Supernal
Holy Place.

627. Now we have said that this is a symbol. Whosoever revealeth Arcana with fixed purpose of mind, he is
not of the body of the Most Holy King.

628. And therefore to such a man nothing is an Arcanum, neither is from the place of the Arcanum.

629. And whensoever his soul departeth, the same adhereth not unto the body of the King, for it is not his
place. "Woe unto that man! woe unto himself! woe unto his Neschamah!"

630. But blessed is the portion of the just who conceal secrets, and much more the Supernal Arcana of God
the Most Holy Oneblessed be He!the highest Arcana of the Most Holy King.

631. Concerning them it is written, Isa. lx. 21: "Thy people also shall be all righteous; they shall inherit the
land for ever."

CHAPTER XVII. CONCERNING THE COUNTENANCE OF


MICROPROSOPUS.
632. His countenance is as two abodes of fragrance, and all that I have said before is His testimony.

633. For the testimony, ShDVThA, Sahedutha, dependeth from Him, and in all his testimony dependeth.

634. But these places of fragrance are white and red; the testimony of Ab the Rather, and Aima the Mother;
the testimony of the inheritance which He hath taken by right and obtained.

635. And in our tradition we have also established by how many thousand degrees the whiteness differeth
from the redness.

636. But yet at once they agree together in Him in one, under the general form of the whiteness; for

CHAPTER XVII. CONCERNING THE COUNTENANCE OF MICROPROSOPUS. 172


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

whensoever it is illuminated from the light of the white brilliance of the Ancient One, then that white
brilliance overcloudeth the redness, and all things are found to be in light.

637. But whensoever judgments ascend (otherwise threaten) in the universe, and sinners are many, leprosy is
found in all things (otherwise, throughout the universe), and the redness spreadeth over the countenance, and
overcloudeth all the whiteness.

638. And then all things are found in judgment, and then (He putteth on) the vestments of zeal, which are
called "the garments of vengeance" (Isa. lix. 17), and all things depend herefrom.

639. And because the testimony existeth in all things, hence so many Lords of Shields are enshrouded by
those colours, and attend upon those colours.

640. When those colours are resplendent, the worlds all and singular exist in joy.

641. In that time when the white brilliance shineth all things appear in this colour; and when He appeareth in
redness, similarly all things appear in that colour.

CHAPTER XVIII. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS.


642. IN those abodes (otherwise forms) of fragrance the beard beginneth to appear from the top of the ears,
and it descendeth and ascendeth in the place of fragrance. 643. The hairs of the beard are black, and beautiful
in form as in (that of) a robust youth.

644. The oil of dignity of the supernal beard of the Ancient One ( floweth down) in this beard of
Microprosopus.

645. The beautiful arrangement of this beard is divided into nine parts. But when the most holy oil of dignity
of the Most Holy Ancient One sendeth down rays into this beard, its parts are found to be twenty−two.

646. And then all things exist in benediction, and thence Israel the patriarch (i.e., Jacob) took his blessing.
And the symbol of this is to be found in these words, Gen. xlviii. 20: "BK, with the twenty−two, shall Israel
bless." (The real translation of BK is "in thee," but the numerical value of BK is twenty−two; hence the
symbolism here rendered.)

647. We have described the conformations of the beard already, in the Conclave of the Assembly. Here also I
desire to enter upon this matter in all humility.

648. Now we thus examined all the parts of the beard, that in the Conclave of the Assembly (we found) that
they were all disposed from the parts of the beard of the Most Holy Ancient One.

649. Six there are; nine they are called. For the first conformation goeth forth through that Spark of the most
refulgent light−bearer, and goeth down beneath the hair of the head, assuredly beneath those locks which
overhang the ears.

650. And it descendeth before the opening of the ears unto the beginning of the mouth.

651. But this arrangement is not found in the Most Holy Ancient One. But when that fountain of Wisdom,
ChKMThA, Chokmatha, floweth down from MZLA, Mezla, the Influence of the Most Holy Ancient One,
and dependeth from Him, and when Aima, the Mother, ariseth, and is included in that subtle ether, then She,
Aima, assumeth that white brilliance.

CHAPTER XVIII. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS. 173


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

652. And the Scintilla entereth and departeth, and together mutually are They bound, and thence cometh the
One Form.

653. And when there is need, One ariseth above the Other, and the Other again. is concealed in the presence
of Its Companion.

654. And therefore there is need of all things; of one thing for performing vengeance, of another for showing
forth mercy.

655. And therefore David the king hath sought out this beard, as we have shown already.

656. In this beard nine conformations are found, (among which are ) six myriads which depend among them,
and are extended throughout the whole body.

657. And those six which depend hang in the locks which are beneath the abodes of fragrance, three on this
side and three on that.

658. And in the ornamentation of the beard hang the three remaining ( conformations); one above the lips,
and two in those locks which hang down upon the chest.

659. And all those six (other conformations), three on this side and three on that side, go forth, and all depend
from those locks which hang down, and they are extended throughout the whole body.

660. But on account of those three (conformations), which are more connected with the ornament of the beard
than all the others, the Holy Name is written in its purity.

661. When it is written thus. Ps. cxviii. 5: "I invoked IH, Yah , in my trouble: IH, Yah, heard me at large:
Tetragrammaton is with me, therefore I will not fear." 662. But that which we have already laid down in the
Conclave of the concerning these words, "In my trouble I invoked IH, Yah," that this is to be referred to that
place where the beard beginneth to be extended, which place is more remote, and before the ears, is also
correct.

663. And in the book of the dissertation of the school of Rav Yeyeva the Elder it is thus said and established,
that the beginning of the beard cometh from the supernal ChSD, Chesed, Mercy.

664. Concerning which it is written, "LK IHVH HGDVLH VHGBVRH VHThPARTh, Leka,
Tetragrammaton, Ha−Gedulah, Ve−Ha−Geburah, Ve−Ha−Tiphereth, Thine, O Tetragrammaton, Gedulah
(another name for Chesed), Geburah, and Tiphereth (the names of the fourth, fifth, and sixth Sephiroth, which
Protestants usually add to the end of the Lords Prayer, substituting, however, Malkuth for Gedulah), Thine,
O Tetragrammaton, are the Mercy, the Power, and the Glory (or Beauty)." And all these are so, and thus it
(the beard) commenceth.

665. Therefore the nine (conformations) arise from and depend from the beard; and thus it commenceth from
before the ears. But ( the conformations) remain not in permanence save through another cause, as we have
before laid down.

666. For whensoever the universe hath need of mercy, the Influence, Mezla, of the Ancient one is uncovered;
and all those conformations which exist in the most adorned beard of Microprosopus are found to be entirely
mercies, yet so that they can exercise vengeance against the haters of the Israelites, and against those who
afflict them.

CHAPTER XVIII. CONCERNING THE BEARD OF MICROPROSOPUS. 174


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

667. But the whole ornament of the beard consisteth in those locks which hang down, because all things
depend thencefrom.

668. All those hairs which are in the beard of Microprosopus are hard and rigid, because they all subject the
judgments when the Most Holy Influence is manifested.

669. And when there is to be contention, then He appeareth like unto a brave hero, victorious in war. And
then that becometh bare of hair which is bare of hair, and that becometh bald which is bald.

670. Moses commemorated these nine conformations a second time, Num. xiv. 17, when there was need to
convert them all into mercy.

671. For although he recite not now the thirteen conformations ( of the beard of Macroprosopus), yet from
this idea the thing depended; for he did not allow himself to enter into those conformations simply that he
might enumerate them.

672. But unto the Influence directed he his meditation, and made mention thereof. As it is written, Num. xiv.
117: "And now, I beseech thee, let KCh, Kach, the Power of Tetragrammaton, be great! "

673. What is to be understood by KCh IHVH, Kach Tetragrammaton , the Power of Tetragrammaton? Thus
is MZLA QDIShA, Mezla Qadisha , the Holy Influence, called, even the Concealed with all Concealments.
And from the Influence that Strength and that Light depend.

674. And since of this (Influence) Moses was speaking, and this (Influence) he was commemorating, and
concerning this ( Influence) he was meditating, he then immediately recited those nine conformations which
belong unto Microprosopus.

675. So that they all might exist in light, and that judgment might not be found therein. And therefore this
whole judgment (otherwise, this whole beard) dependeth from the Influence.

676. When the hairs begin to be restrained He Himself is as the hero of an army victorious in war.

677. In this beard (of Microprosopus) floweth down the oil of dignity from the Concealed Ancient One, as it
is said, Ps. cxxxiii, 2: "Like excellent oil upon the head, descending upon the beard, the beard of Aaron."

CHAPTER XIX. CONCERNING THE LIPS AND MOUTH OF


MICROPROSOPUS.
678. THOSE hairs cover not the lips, and the entire lips are red and rosy. As it is written, Cant. v. 13: "His
lips as roses." (In the ordinary version ShVShNIM, Shushanim, is translated "lilies," not "roses.")

679. His lips murmur Geburah, Severity, but they also murmur Chokmah, Wisdom.

680. From those lips alike depend good and evil, life and death.

681. From these lips depend the Lords of Vigilance. For when those lips murmur, they all are excited to bring
forth secret things, as well as the Lords of judgment in all the tribunals wherein they have their abiding−place.

682. And therefore are these called the Watchers; as it is written, Dan. iv, 17: "This matter is by the decree of
the Watchers, and the demand by the word of the Holy Ones."

CHAPTER XIX. CONCERNING THE LIPS AND MOUTH OF MICROPROSOPUS. 175


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

683. What is a Watcher? In the book of the dissertation that is explained from this passage, 1 Sam. xxviii. 16:
"And is become thine enemy."

684. Seeing that judgments are stirred up against those who obtain not mercy from the Supernals.

685. Hence are those stirred up who are the lords of the enmity of all things.

696. And, nevertheless, in each case is there mercy and judgment. And therefore is it said, Dan. iv. 13: "A
watcher and a holy one;" judgment and mercy.

687. And between those lips when they are opened is the mouth disclosed.

688. By that RVCh, Ruach, breath, which goeth forth from His mouth, many thousands and myriads are
enshrouded; and when it is extended by the same are the true prophets enfolded, and all are called the mouth
of Tetragrammaton.

689. When forth from His mouth the words proceed through His lips, the same are muttered through the
whole circuit of eighteen thousand worlds, until they are all bound together at once in the twelve paths and
the known ways. And one thing ever expecteth another.

690. By the tongue is the vocal expression of the sublime spoken, in the middle nexus of the utterance.

691. And therefore is it written, Cant. v. 16: "His mouth is most sweet." And this same palate of His
conveyeth a sweet taste; wherefore He smileth when He tasteth food (which is pleasant).

692. "And He is altogether the desirablenesses (or delights)" (of the powers of) fire and (the powers of) water,
because the fire and water are counterchanged with each other mutually (otherwise, are conformed together),
and are beautiful in his conformation.

693. For the colours are mutually associated together. 694. In His palate are the (guttural) letters (of the
Hebrew Alphabetnamely, A, H, Ch, O) formed and constructed; in the circuit of His (mouth) are they
condensed (into the palatals G, I, X Q).

695. The letter A, Aleph, which cast forth the kings and constituted the kings (i.e., that guttural letter which
is referred to the First Sephira, Kether, the Crown, becometh the palatal letter G, Ghimel).

696. The letter Ch, Cheth, which goeth forth and descendeth and ascendeth, and is crowned in the head
(referring to the Second Sephira, Chokmah, Wisdom), and is fire condensed in ether (i.e., developeth in the
palatal letter I, Yod).

697. The letter H, He, the golden−yellow colour (otherwise, germinating power) of the Mother, Aima, having
been connected with the Female Power, is extended in the Greater Female Potency into the desire of the Holy
City, which two (otherwise, for these places) are mutually bound together the one unto the other (these two
are Aima, the supernal H of IHVH, and the Holy City, the Bride, as She is called in the Apocalypse, the final
H of IHVH). (And the guttural letter H, He, formeth the palatal letter K, Kaph, which is referred unto the
Queen.) As it is written, Cant. iv. 6: "Unto the mountain of myrrh, unto the hill of frankincense."

698. The letter O, Ayin (which denoteth the seven Inferiors which were destroyed) is the medium or
splendour of mediation (i.e., the internal Light of the broken vessels), hath been formed forth in His lips by
revolution therein (and it hath been condensed in Q, Qoph, which goeth forth from the middle of the palate
unto the lips ). For the branches (of the Tree of Life, namely) are connected in Him (Microprosopus) in the

CHAPTER XIX. CONCERNING THE LIPS AND MOUTH OF MICROPROSOPUS. 176


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

spirits (such as they were in the prior world) formed forth (such as they are in the restored world).

699. For in the mysteries of the letters of Solomon the King, those four letters, A, H, Ch, O, are surrounded
by GIKQ.

700. But it is written in Job vi. 6: "Can that which is unsavoury be eaten without salt?" &c.

701. Also it is written, Isa. xxxii. 17: "And the work of TzDQ, Tzedeq, Righteousness (or Justice), shall be
peace." Also, Ps. xix. 10: "More to be desired are they than gold, yea, than much fine gold," &c.

702. But King David saith, ibid. 11: "Also by them is thy servant warned."

703. I affirm concerning myself, that I have been every day cautious concerning them, so that concerning
them I might not err (i.e., concerning the judgments, Meshephath, referred to in verse 9).

704. Excepting a certain day when I was binding together the Crowns of the King in the Cave of Maranæa, I
beheld a Splendour of devouring Fire flashing from His wrathful Countenance of Flame, and with terror I
trembled at the sight.

705. From that day forth I ever acted with caution in my meditations concerning them, neither have I omitted
that all the days of my life.

706. Blessed is his portion who is prudent regarding Him who is more ancient than (otherwise, concerning
the gentleness of) the King, so that he may taste thereof, as is fitting.

707. Therefore is it written, Ps. xxxiv. 9: "Taste and see that Tetragrammaton is good," &c.

708. Also it is written, Prov. ix. 5: "Come, eat of my bread," &c.

CHAPTER XX. CONCERNING THE BODY OF MICROPROSOPUS.


709. THE masculine power is extended through Däath; and the Assemblies and Conclaves are filled.

710. It commenceth from the beginning of the skull, and it is extended throughout the whole body, through
the breast, and through the arms, and through all the other parts.

CHAPTER XXI. CONCERNING THE BRIDE OF MICROPROSOPUS.


711. UNTO His back adhereth closely a Ray of most vehement Splendour, and it flameth forth and formeth a
certain skull, concealed on every side.

712. And thus descendeth the Light of the two brains, and is figured forth therein. 713. And She (the Bride)
adhereth unto the side of the Male; wherefore also She is called, Cant. v. ii., "My dove, my perfect one."
Read not, "ThMThI, Thamathi, My perfect one;" but "ThAVMThI, Theomathi, MY twin sister," more
applicably.

714. The hairs of the Woman contain colours upon colours, as it is written, Cant. vii. 5: "The hair of Thy head
like purple."

CHAPTER XX. CONCERNING THE BODY OF MICROPROSOPUS. 177


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

715. But herewith is Geburah, Severity, connected in the five Severities (i.e., which are symbolized in the
numerical value, 5, of the letter H final of IHVH, which is the Bride), and the Woman is extended on Her
side, and is applied unto the side of the Male.

V6. Until She is separated from His side, and cometh unto Him so that She may be conjoined with Him, face
to face.

717. And when They are conjoined together, they appear to be only one body.

718. Hence we learn that the Masculine, taken alone, appeareth to be only half the body, so that all the
mercies are half; and thus also is it with the Feminine.

719. But when They are joined together, the (two together) appear to form only one whole body,. And it is so.

720. So also here. When the Male is joined with the Female, They both constitute one complete body, and all
the Universe is in a state of happiness, because all things receive blessing from Their perfect body. And this
is an Arcanum.

721. And therefore it is said, Gen. ii. 3: "Tetragrammaton blessed the seventh day and hallowed it." For then
all things are found (to exist) in the one perfect Body, for MTRVNIThA, Matronitha, the Mother (i.e., the
Inferior Mother) is joined unto the King, and is found to form the one Body with Him.

722. And therefore are there found to be blessings upon this day. 723. And hence that which is not both Male
and Female together is called half a body. Now, no blessing can rest upon a mutilated and defective being,
but only upon a perfect place and upon a perfect being, and not at all in an incomplete being.

724. And a semi−complete being cannot live for ever, neither can it receive blessing for ever.

725. The Beauty of the Female is completed by the Beauty of the Male. And now have we established these
facts (concerning the perfect equality of Male and Female), and they are made known unto the Companions.

726. With this Woman (the inferior H) are connected all those things which are below; from Her do they
receive their nourishment, and from Her do they receive blessing; and She is called the Mother of them all.

727. Like as a mother containeth the body (of her child before birth), and that whole body deriveth its
nourishment from her. (Otherwise, containeth a garden, and the whole garden is from her.) Thus is She unto
all the other inferiors.

728. It is written, Prov. vii. 4: "Say unto Chokmah, Thou art my sister." For there is given one Chokmah
(Male), and there is also given another Chokmah (Female).

729. And this Woman is called the Lesser Chokmah in respect of the other.

730. And therefore is it written, Cant. viii. 8: "We have a little sister and she hath no breasts."

731. For in this exile (i.e., separated from the King) She appeareth unto us to be "our little sister." At first,
indeed, she is small, but she becometh great and greater, until she becometh the Spouse whom the King
taketh unto Himself.

732. As it is written, Cant. viii. 10: "I am a wall, and my breasts are like towers."

CHAPTER XX. CONCERNING THE BODY OF MICROPROSOPUS. 178


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

733. "And my breasts," &c., since they are full with the nourishment of all things; "like towers," because
they are the great rivers which flow forth from Aima the Supernal.

CHAPTER XXII. CONCERNING THE REMAINING MEMBERS OF


MICROPROSOPUS.
734. THE Male is extended in right and left, through the inheritance which He receiveth (i.e., from Chokmah
and Binah).

735. But whensoever the colours are mingled together then is He called Tiphereth, and the whole body is
formed into a tree (the Autz Ha−Chaiim, or Tree of Life), great and strong, and fair and beautiful, Dan. iv.
11.

736. "The beasts of the field had shadow under it, and the fowls of the heaven dwelt in the boughs thereof,
and all flesh was fed of it."

737. His arms are right and left. In the right arm is Chesed and Life; in the left is Geburah and Death.

738. Through Däath are His inner parts formed, and they fill the Assemblies and Conclaves, as we have said.

739. For thus is it written: "And through Däath shall the Conclaves be filled." 740. Afterwards is His body
extended into two thighs, et intra hæc continentur duo renes, duo testiculi masculini.

741. Omne enim oleum, et dignitas, et vis masculi e toto corpore in istis congregatur; nam omnes exercitus,
qui prodeunt ab iis, omnes prodeunt et morantur in orificio membri genitalus.

742. And therefore are they called Tzabaoth, the Armies; and they are Netzach (Victory, the seventh Sephira)
and Hod (Glory, the eighth). For Tiphereth is Tetragrammaton, but Netzach and Hod are the armies; hence
cometh that name, Tetragrammaton Tzabaoth.

743. Membrum masculi est extremitas totius corporis, et vocatur Yesod, fundamentum, et hic est gradus ille
qui mitigat fœminam. For every desire of the Male is toward the female.

744. Per hoc fundamentum ille ingreditur in fœminam in locum qui vocatur Tzion et Jerusalem. Nam hic est
locus tegendus fœminæ, et in uxore vocatur uterus.

745. And hence is Tetragrammaton Tzabaoth called Yesod, the Foundation (the ninth Sephira). Also it is
written, Ps. cxxxii. 13: "Since Tetragrammaton hath chosen Tzion to be a habitation fur Himself, He hath
desired Her."

746. When Matronitha, the mother, is separated, and conjoined with the King face to face in the excellence of
the Sabbath, all things become one body.

747. And then the Holy Oneblessed be He!sitteth on His throne, and all things are called the Complete
Name, the Holy Name. Blessed be His Name for ever, and unto the ages of the ages.

748. All these words have I kept back unto this day, which is crowned by them for the world to come. And
now herein are they manifested, O blessed be my portion!

749. When this Mother is conjoined with the King, all the worlds receive blessing, and the universe is found

CHAPTER XXII. CONCERNING THE REMAINING MEMBERS OF MICROPROSOPUS. 179


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

to be in joy. 750. Like as the male (Microprosopus) existeth from the Triad (Kether, Chokmah, and Binah),
and His beginning is with the Triad, in this same manner are all things disposed, and the end of the whole
body is thus; also the Mother (Inferior) receiveth not the blessing except in the Syntagma of the Triad, and
these paths are Netzach, Hod, and Yesod.

751. And she is mitigated, and receiveth blessing in that place which is called the Holy of Holies below.

752. As it is written, Ps. cxxxii. 3: "Since there Tetragrammaton giveth His blessing." For there are two paths;
that which is above, and that which is below.

753. Hence there is permission granted unto none to enter therein, save unto the High Priest, who entereth
from the side of Chesed, in order that none other might enter into that supernal place save that which is called
Chesed.

754. And He entereth into the Holy of Holies, and the Bride is mitigated, and that Holy of Holies receiveth
blessing, in the place which is called Tzion.

755. But Tzion and Jerusalem are two paths, one denoting Mercy, and the other justice.

756. For concerning Tzion it is written, Isa. i. 27: "Through Meshephat, judgment, it is redeemed." And
concerning Jerusalem it is written, ibid. 21: "Justice, Tzedeq, abideth in Her," as we have before explained.

757. And every desire of the Male is toward the Female. But thus are these called, because hence proceed
blessings for all the worlds, and all things receive blessing.

758. This place is called Holy, and all the holinesses; of the Male enter therein, through that path of which we
have spoken.

759. But they all come from the supernal head of the Male skull, from that portion of the supernal brain
wherein they reside.

760. And this blessing floweth down through all the members of the body even unto those which are called
Tzabaoth, the Armies. 761. And all that which floweth down throughout the whole body is congregated
therein, and therefore are they called Tzabaoth, the Armies; because all the armies of the superiors and
inferiors go forth therefrom.

762. And that which floweth down into that place where it is congregated, and which is emitted through that
most holy Yesod, Foundation, is entirely white, and therefore is it called Chesed.

753. Thence Chesed entereth into the Holy of Holies as it is written, Ps. cxxxiii. 3: "For there
Tetragrammaton commanded the blessing, even life for evermore."

764. Rabbi Abba said: "Scarcely could the Holy Light−bearer ( i.e., Rabbi Schimeon) finish the word, 'life'
before his words ceased altogether. But I was still writing them down, and thought that there would still be
more for me to write, but I heard nothing.

765. "But I raised not mine head, since the light around him was so great that hereunto I could not look that
way.

766. "Therefore I trembled, and I heard a Voice, which cried aloud and said, Prov. iii. 2: 'Length of days and
years of life,' &c.

CHAPTER XXII. CONCERNING THE REMAINING MEMBERS OF MICROPROSOPUS. 180


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

767. "I heard another Voice, Ps. xxi, 5: 'Seeketh life from thee,' &c.

768. "Through that whole day the fire departed not from the house, and there was no one who could come
near unto him, because they were unable, for the fire and the light encircled him through that whole day.

769. But I tell upon my face on the ground, and cried aloud.

770. When therefore the lire was withdrawn, I saw that that Holy Light−bearer, the Holy of the Holy Ones
(i.e., Rabbi Schimeon) had been taken away from this world.

771. "But having been turned round, his body had fallen on his right side, and his face still bore a smile.

772. "And Rabbi Eleazar, his son, arose, and having taken his hands in his, kissed him; but I kissed the dust
which was beneath his feet.

773. The Companions wished to mourn for him, but they could not speak. Yet the Companions began to
weep, and Rabbi Eleazar prostrated himself thrice, and could not open his mouth.

774. At last he began, and said O my father! O my father! there were Three, and into One have they
returned.

775. "Now shall the living creatures (the Cherubim) rush forth (from the Name); the birds shall fly upward
and hide themselves in the opening of the Great Sea, and all the Companions shall drink their blood."

776. But Rabbi Chiya arose upon his feet and said: Hitherto hath the Holy Light−bearer (Rabbi Schimeon)
taken care of us (otherwise, hath occupied himself with us). Now is the time not fitting for any other thing
save to pay him due honours."

777. Therefore Rabbi Eleazar and Rabbi Abba arose, and put upon him the sepulchral garment; and who ever
saw such a disturbance and mingled crowd of learned men? Through the whole house ascended fragrant
odours ( of spices brought for the dead).

778. Then they placed him in the coffin; and no man except Rabbi Eleazar and Rabbi Abba did these services
for him.

779. But the lictors and soldiers came from Kaphar (otherwise, from Tzipori and Tardaia, or doctors and
learned men from the country). and drove them away.

780. But the inhabitants of Maronæa rescued them with great tumult, because they thought that he was not to
be buried there.

781. When therefore the sepulchral bier was borne forth, he ( i.e., the body of Rabbi Schimeon) was raised
above it in the air, and a fire flamed around him.

782. And a Voice was heard (saying): "Come ye and assemble together, and enter in unto the nuptials of
Rabbi Schimeon. Isa. lvii.: 'Let him enter in with peace, and let them rest in their chambers.'"

783. When he was carried into the sepulchral cave, a Voice was heard in the cave saying: "This is He who
disturbed the earth, and made the kingdoms tremble."

784. How many liberties are stored up in. heaven for thee!

CHAPTER XXII. CONCERNING THE REMAINING MEMBERS OF MICROPROSOPUS. 181


KABBALA DENUDATA: THE KABBALAH UNVEILED

785. This is that Rabbi Schimeon Ben Yochai, concerning whom his Lord was glorified daily. Blessed is his
portion above and below!

786. How many highest treasures are reserved for him!

787. Concerning him it is said, Dan. xii. 13: "But go thou thy way till the end be, for thou shalt rest, and stand
in thy lot at the end of the days."

Hereunto is the Lesser Holy Assembly.

CHAPTER XXII. CONCERNING THE REMAINING MEMBERS OF MICROPROSOPUS. 182

You might also like